SHORT DISCOURSES Upon the Whole Common-Prayer, Designed to Inform the JUDGMENT And Excite the DEVOTION Of such as DAILY use the same.

By Tho. Comber D. D.

LONDON, Printed by Samuel Roycroft, for Robert Cla­vell at the Sign of the Peacock in Saint Paul's Church-Yard. 1684.

TO THE MOST NOBLE AND High-Born Princess, ANNE, PRINCESS OF DENMARK.

Madam,

YOUR Careful Education in the Primitive and Pure Reli­gion of the Church of England hath given a Lasting Honour to his MA­JESTY, [Page] a general Satisfaction to the Nation, and will bring not only many Present Comforts, but Eter­nal Blessings to Your Self hereafter. And on this Account I did with great Thankfulness to God, and with much Pleasure receive from Your own Mouth the Notice that my Larger Books on the COMMON-PRAYER had been Serviceable to your Most Excellent Sister the Princess of Orange and Your Self. It is my Duty to serve the Meanest, but a Part of my Reward to be Useful to Persons of so High Birth and Admirable Quali­ties, whose Example hath given so great Encouragement and Reputa­tion to True Devotion; this is, as Plutarch calls the Conversing of Phi­losophers with Princes, To Profit ma­ny by Teaching one. Wherefore when the Importunity of my Friends had engaged me to write these Shorter [Page] Discourses, for the Use of those who wanted time to consider the Larger Work; I resolved to present this Short Account to Your HIGHNESS Hands, and beg leave to Honour it with your Most Grateful Name, supposing its Brevity may better suit the Present Circumstances of Your Married Condition, wherein it is not to be hoped that You can have so much Happy Leisure for Your Devo­tion, as in the Eminent Piety of Your Virgin State. And because Your Goodness hath Entituled me to the Honour, but my Distance permits me not to Perform the Duty of Your HIGHNESS Chaplain, I hope these Papers may Compensate for my Ab­sence, and serve to Revive the Me­mory of what You have Formerly Read more at Large, and also to Con­tinue and Encrease Your Affection to this Excellent Church which hath [Page] so carefully provided such Incompa­rable Helps in Order to the Salvation of all within the Bosom thereof: Wherein that God may long preserve Your HIGHNESS to be an Orna­ment to it, and make You a Happy Encreaser of that Royal Family who have been the Great Supporters of it, is the Hearty Prayer of all Good Subjects, and the Daily Petition of

Madam,
Your HIGHNESS Most Devoted Chaplain, and Most Humble Servant, Tho. Comber.

THE PREFACE.

THere is no clearer Acknowledgment of our Dependance upon God, nor more Effectual means to procure all Good Things, than Publick and Common-Prayer; the Cessation of which S. Hie­rom makes a Sign of the Coming of Antichrist; and the Scripture-Character of the Wicked is, that they Call not upon God: And I doubt all the Sins and Miseries which abound in this Evil Age, are chiefly to be ascribed to the shameful Neglect of Daily Publick Pray­ers; and because 'tis in vain to shew Men how to be devout at the Church unless we can perswade them to come thither, we will take off all Pretences by conside­ring [Page] the usual Excuses which Men make for the Neglect of this Duty.

First, Some pretend Business and say they cannot come, and I would have these consider, That the very Heathens worshipped their Gods daily, and the E­gyptians three times a day; the Turks are called to Prayers five times every day, and six times on Friday. The Jews had of old, and still have three set hours of Prayer, and the Pharisees doubled this: yet Christ saith, our Righteousness must exceed theirs. Now doubtless others had Business as well as we; yet all the World, except some of us, do publickly own their God at least twice every day. We are commanded to pray without cea­sing, 1 Thess. v. 17. that is, at the set Hours of Prayer every day; and from the Apostles times to our Fathers days all good Christians constantly observed them, yea even in the times of Persecution and [Page] extream Danger; and will not we lose one half hours Business, to perform a Duty which brings a Blessing on us in all the rest of our Affairs? I am sure we lay aside our Employments for a longer time on less Occasions every day, and if all would come who are not hindred with un­avoidable Business, many might come al­ways, and all sometimes who now stay away; and let them who stay away on this Pretence remember, God will one day try whether this be real or no, and if they will come as oft as God can expect them I ask no more.

Secondly, Others plead dislike of the Prayers themselves, and therefore say they will not come: But if these Persons have Patience to peruse the following Pages without Prejudice, they will find this Liturgy to be so plain that all may understand it; so full, that it omits no­thing necessary; and so short, that no [Page] Devout Man can be wearied with it: Its Doctrine is pure, its Ceremonies few, pro­per and primitive, its Method exact, and its Phrases are taken out of Scrip­ture and the purest Antiquity, and, as Grotius thought, comes nearest to the Primitive Forms of any Liturgy in the World. The Composers were Men of great Piety and Learning, most of them Mar­tyrs for the Protestant Religion; and all Foreign Reformed Churches do admire it, and blame such as dissent from it. Nor do any condemn it but the Papists for not being Popish enough, and the Sectaries for being too much so, but their Witness agrees not together: As for the Latter, they object, First, That it is a Form, and hinders praying by the Spirit; I reply, The Saints of the Old Testament used Forms, and so did Christ in the New, he taught his Disciples a Form, and all Christians in the World, East and West, Romish and Reformed did and do still use [Page] Forms in Publick, and do none of these pray by the Spirit? Surely, whoever is deeply affected with his own Wants and Gods Sufficiency, and heartily desires what he asks, this Man prays by the Spi­rit though the Words be a Form: And when the Words are prepared to our hands we are more at leasure to mind our Affe­ctions, and keep our Hearts close to the Petitions, than when our Fancy is taken up in inventing or expecting a Novel Phrase; Yea, Extempore Prayer is a Form to the Hearers, and the Speaker hath not time wisely and warily to digest it: But our Forms were deliberately com­posed by Men assisted by the Spirit, and many good Men do feel the Spirit assisting them daily in the use thereof. Secondly, they alledge, If these Prayers be good, they will grow flat by daily use: I an­swer, We come not to the Church as to a Theatre for Recreation, we have old, con­stant, daily Wants, and if we bring dai­ly [Page] a new Sense of them, our old Prayers will serve: Publick Wants, which are the Subject of Publick Prayers, are much the same, and why need we vary the Phrase? it is Wantonness, not Devotion, makes that necessary. The poor laborious healthful Man hath a fresh Appetite daily to the same Dish, and 'tis sickly and luxurious Men that need Sauces and Va­riety: The Carnal Jews loathed Manna with long use, though it was the Bread of Heaven, and suted it self to every good Mans Taste. I might easily recrimi­nate and lay more and greater Inconve­niencies to the charge of Extempore Prayers, but I had rather vindicate my own, than give an Odious, though de­served Character, of other mens Devo­tions.

And now 'tis time to give Account of the Method and Design of this Discourse, wherein first the Original and Antiquity [Page] of every Part of Common Prayer is de­clared; Secondly, The Method of each several Piece is cleared: Thirdly, The Sense of all is opened by divers plain and natural Observations on the Matter of these Offices, to help all to perform them with a Devotion sutable to their great Worth. And it is designed, First, To instruct those who did not understand, or rather not observe these Excellencies to be in the Common Prayer, for all must admire it that can but calmly consider it. Secondly, It is intended to furnish the Devout Sons of the Church with Profit­able Meditations, to enlarge upon in their Minds in the use of these Prayers, and to put them into a right Frame for saying them affectionately and with a Holy Im­portunity. Thirdly, It is designed to convince the mistaken Dissenters if they will hear Reason; if not, to discover to others the Injustice and Malice of their Clamours against it. And if it please God [Page] to grant it may attain these Ends, it will be very serviceable to the Church in gene­ral, as well as to many particular Per­sons; if not, I have the Comfort of my good Intention, and shall remain well satisfied therein.

But it will much conduce to the Ends of this Discourse, if two concluding Ex­hortations be but well observed; First, If the Clergy do frequently read the Common Prayers, as by the Rubrick and the Ca­nons they are bound to do; and if they always do it with a very grave and deli­berate Voice, and with a most affectionate Fervency to give the People Opportunity and time to joyn with them in every Peti­tion, and to excite them to Devotion by the Warmth of their Zeal: And though few shall come to it, let not that discou­rage us, since Jesus is always one, if but two or three be gathered together in his Name, and if our People will not pray [Page] with us, we had more need pray for them, who by their Absence may take away some­what of the Comfort, but nothing of the Success of our Devout Prayers. Second­ly, Let the People not judge of these Common Prayers by the Character Ill Men fasten on them, but frequently come with Honest and Pious Hearts to them, (as it is their Duty) and the more they use them the more they will love them: And when they are in Gods House, let their Po­stures be humble and agreeable to the Or­ders of the Church, which shews Reve­rence to God, and Obedience to our Go­vernors, and makes a very comely Ʋni­formity. Let the People also always an­swer their own Part with a clear audible Voice, which will keep their Minds from wandring, and shew their consent to every Petition; and indeed this is a peculiar Priviledge of the Sons of this Church, the Papists being hindred from joyning, by Latin Prayers; and the Sectaries by [Page] one long Extempore kind of Supplicati­on. And let every Man come with a Heart sensible of Gods Greatness and Goodness, as also deeply affected with his own and his Neighbours Wants, and let them with those Affections joyn in every Request, and then they will never be tired with the length, nor wearied with the frequency thereof, but find such Comfort in it and Benefit by it, that they will account it the most Ʋseful and the most Pleasant of all Christian Duties.

THE CONTENTS.

PART I.

  • OF Morning and Evening Prayer, Pag. 1.
  • Sect. I. Of the Sentences, ibid.
  • II. Of the Exhortation, Pag. 9
  • III. Of the daily Confession, Pag. 13
  • IV. Of the Absolution, Pag. 20
  • V. Of the Lord's Prayer, Pag. 26
  • VI. Of the Responses. Pag. 34
  • VII. Of the xcv. Psalm, Pag. 40
  • VIII. Of the Psalms, Pag. 44
  • IX. Of the Lessons, Pag. 48
  • X. Of the Hymns, and particularly the Te Deum. Pag. 52
  • XI. Of the Benedicite, Pag. 58
  • XII. Of the Benedictus, Pag. 60
  • XIII. Of the Jubilate, or the c. Psalm, Pag. 63
  • XIV. Of the Magnificat, Pag. 65
  • XV. Of the xcviii. Psalm, Pag. 69
  • XVI. Of the Nunc dimittis, Pag. 72
  • [Page]XVII. Of the lxvii. Psalm, Pag. 74
  • XVIII. Of the Apostle's Creed, Pag. 76
  • An Appendix concerning S. Athanasius's Creed, Pag. 88
  • XIX. Of the Versicles and Responsals, Pag. 90
  • XX. Of the Collects for the Week and for Fe­stivals, Pag. 96
  • XXI. Of the Collects for Peace and Grace, proper for the Morning, Pag. 99
  • XXII. Of the Collects for Peace and Safety, proper for the Evening, Pag. 103
  • XXIII. Of the Collects for the King and his Family, Pag. 107
  • XXIV. Of the Collect for the Clergy and People, Pag. 113
  • XXV. Of the Prayer of S. Chrysostom, and of the Blessing, Pag. 116

PART II.

  • OF the Litany, with the Occasional Pray­ers and Thanksgivings, Pag. 121
Partition I.
  • Sect. I. OF the Invocation, Pag. 125
  • II. Of the Deprecations, Pag. 129
  • III. Of the Intercessions, Pag. 149
  • [Page]IV. Of the Supplications, Pag. 175
Partition II.
  • OF the Occasional Prayers and thanksgi­vings, Pag. 186
  • Sect. I. Of the Occasional Prayers in gene­ral, ibid.
  • II. Of the Prayer for Rain, Pag. 188
  • III. Of the Prayer for Fair Weather, Pag. 192
  • IV. Of the Prayers in time of Dearth and Famine, Pag. 195
  • V. Of the Prayer in time of War and Tu­mults, Pag. 201
  • VI. Of the Prayer in time of Plague or Common Sickness, Pag. 204
  • VII. Of the Prayers in Ember Weeks, Pag. 208
  • VIII. Of the Prayer for the High-Court of Parliament, Pag. 212
  • IX. Of the Prayer for all Conditions of Men, Pag. 216
  • X. Of the Collect for Pardon, Pag. 219
  • XI. Of the General Thanksgiving, Pag. 220
  • XII. Of the Thanksgiving for Rain, Pag. 225
  • XIII. Of the Thanksgiving for Fair Wea­ther, Pag. 227
  • XIV. Of the Thanksgiving for Plenty, Pag. 228
  • XV. Of the Thanksgiving for deliverance from Enemies, Pag. 230
  • XVI. Of the Thanksgiving for restoring [Page] Peace at Home, Pag. 232
  • XVII. Of the Thanksgiving for deliverance from the Plague, &c. Pag. 234

PART III.

  • OF the Communion Office, Pag. 239
Partition I.
  • OF the more General Preparation, Pag. 243
  • Sect. I. Of the Lords Prayer, ibid.
  • II. Of the Collect for Purity, Pag. 245
  • III. Of the Ten Commandments, Pag. 247
  • IV Of the Prayers for the King, Pag. 253
  • V. Of the Epistle, Gospel, and the Creed, Pag. 256
  • VI. Of the Offertory and Sentences, Pag. 261
  • VII. Of the Prayer for the whole Church, Pag. 267
  • VIII. Of the Warning before the Commu­nion, Pag. 274
  • IX. Of the Exhortation to the Communion, Pag. 281
Partition II.
  • OF the more Immediate Preparation, Pag. 289
  • Sect. I. Of the Exhortation at the Commu­nion, ibid.
  • II. Of the Invitation, Pag. 295
  • III. Of the Confession, Pag. 296
  • IV. Of the Absolution, Pag. 299
  • V. Of the Sentences of Scripture, Pag. 301
  • VI. Of the Prefaces and Trisagium, Pag. 303
Partition III.
  • OF the Celebration, Pag. 308
  • Sect. I. Of the Address, ibid.
  • II. Of the Prayer of Consecration, Pag. 310
  • III. Of the Form of Administration, Pag. 315
Partition IV.
  • OF the Post-Communion, Pag. 323
    • Sect. I. Of the Lord's Prayer, ibid.
    • II. Of the first Prayer in the Post-Communi­on, Pag. 325
    • [Page]III. Of the second Prayer in the Post-Com­munion, Pag. 329
    • IV. Of the Gloria in Excelsis, or the Ange­lical Hymn, Pag. 332
    • V. Of the Final Blessing, Pag. 335
  • OF the Office of Baptism, Pag. 337
    • Sect. I. Of the Preparation before Bap­tism, Pag. 339
    • II. Of the Administration of Baptism, Pag. 344
    • III. The Consequents after Baptism, Pag. 346
  • Of the Catechism, Pag. 349
  • Of Confirmation, Pag. 352

PART IV.

  • OF the Occasional Offices, Pag. 357
Partition I.
  • OF Matrimony, ibid.
  • Sect. I. Of the Preparation, Pag. 360
  • II. Of the Solemnization, Pag. 366
  • III. Of the Devotions concluding the Office, Pag. 375
Partition II.
  • OF the Visitation of the Sick, Pag. 386
  • Sect. I. Of the Supplications, Pag. 390
  • II. Of the Prayers, Pag. 391
  • III. Of the Exhortation, Pag. 395
  • IV. Of the Consolations, Pag. 405
    • An Appendix of the Prayers in Singular Cases, Pag. 413
Partition III.
  • OF the Burial of the Dead, Pag. 421
  • I. Of the Sentences used in the Way, Pag. 425
  • II. Of the Psalms and Proper Lessons, Pag. 428
  • III. Of the Devotions used at the Grave, Pag. 443
  • THe Thanksgiving of Women after Childbirth. Pag. 450
    • Sect. I. Of the Preface and Psalms, Pag. 452
    • II. Of the Prayers, Pag. 455
  • THe Commination, Pag. 457
    • Sect. I. Of the Preface, ibid.
    • II. Of the Homily or Discourse, Pag. 459
    • III. Of the Penitential Psalm, Pag. 461
    • IV. Of the Penitential Prayers. Pag. 462

Shecinah

See pious Soule how every thing conspires
To kindle in thy brest Seraphiqu Fires
Altar and wood prudent and learned guides
Helps to devotion holy Church provides
Thy duty's only a cleane heart to bring
An humble cheerfull free will offering
To this oblation Heaven a flame will lend
God doth accept it Angels shall attend.

PART. I. Of Morning and Evening Prayer.

Sect. I. Of the Sentences.

§. 1. PRAYER is the lifting up of the Soul to converse with God, and a Means to obtain all Blessings; 'tis an high Ho­nour and a huge Advantage to us, and withal is ac­cepted by him as an acknowledgment of his Autho­rity, and a testimony of our Observance: But then it is difficult as well as fair, requiring so much at­tention and serenity of mind, that it can never be well done without some preceding Preparation; for which reason, when the Jews enter into their Sy­nagogues to pray, they stand silent a while and me­ditate before whom they stand, and the Christian Priests in the Primitive Ages prepared the Peoples Hearts to Prayer by a devout Preface; in imitation whereof we now use the Sentences of holy Scripture: Which are all of them chosen to be Admonitions to [Page 2] Repentance, since nothing makes us more unfit to pray or more unlikely to be heard, than Sin unre­pented ofPsal. lxvi. 18. Isai. lix. 2. John ix. 31.. And being gather­ed out of the Sacred Text, the Church hopes we will not dare to disobey them, as coming from the Mouth of that God whom we address to in our Prayers, and who may justly reject our Petition if we hearken not to his Com­mandments. As for the particular Sentences, the Reverend Composers of our Liturgy have been cu­rious and exact in the choice of them, selecting di­vers of the plainest and properest places, to bring all sorts of Sinners to repentance. There are variety of Dispositions, and the same man is not always in the same temper; wherefore they have collected ma­ny, and left it to the discretion of him that mini­sters, to use such of them every day as best suit with his own and his Peoples Circumstances: Yet be­cause every Man best knows his own Estate, we will put those of one kind together, so that they who come (as all ought to do) before Prayers begin, may find a Meditation fitted for their present frame of Spirit, in order to the better disposing them to pray with true Devotion.

§. 2. The first Rank may consist of those Sen­tences which contain Support for the Fearful, and are designed to prevent that excessive Dread of Gods Wrath, which hinders the Exercise of a sprightly Devotion by too much dejecting the Spi­rit: Wherefore when we are oppressed with these Fears, the practice of Holy David and Jeremy will teach us not to run from the Almighty, but to come so much the more speedily before him, and to [Page 3] pray the more humbly and earnestly to him for the Pardon of our Offences and the abatement of his Anger, which we may do in this manner:

Psal. LI. 9. O thou Righteous Judge of all the World, who canst not behold Iniquity without In­dignation, I beseech thee [Hide thy face from] strictly observing [my sins,] which are so many and so great that I fear they will bring some present Judgments on me, and occasion my final condem­nation hereafter; O do thou please therefore to par­don [and blot out] of thy Book [all my iniqui­ties,] and then I shall be safe.

Psal. CXLIII. 2. I do not deny my Debts, nor stand upon my Innocence, but before thou summon­est me I pray thee [not to Enter into judgment] nor reckon strictly [with thy Servant, O Lord,] who confesses his guilt, and relies on thy Mercy as his only Plea: and indeed nothing but Mercy can save any of us, [for] when we appear at the last day [in thy sight] before the Tribunal of thy Justice [no man living] no not the most righteous [shall be justified] or acquitted by pleading their Merits, the best need a favourable Allowance there, which if thou pleasest to afford me, I may be forgiven also.

Jerem. X. 24. And if it be not fit for thee to for­give, and for me to be forgiven without some Cha­stisement, [O Lord, correct me] with temporal Af­flictions here, that I may be spared hereafter; only let my correction be inflicted moderately [with judgment] and respect to my Infirmities, for my amendment; but punish me [not in thine anger,] as thou dost thy incorrigible Enemies, [lest thou bring me to nothing] and I should not survive to reap the benefit of thy salutary correction.

[Page 4]§. 3. Not much unlike this is the case of those who doubt of Gods Favour, and through the false glass of Despair look upon God as irreconcileable; and though he be not so in himself, yet these Doubts by discouraging Men from confessing and repenting, do as effectually hinder their being reconciled, as if God were not to be intreated: but because it is not for want of Mercy in him, but of Faith in these mistaken Souls, that the difference is not composed; the Church hath provided three Sentences also for those in this estate, the first to shew how fit they are to ask a Par­don, the other two to declare how likely God is to grant it upon their repentance notwithstanding their unworthiness; upon which they may thus meditate.

Psal. LI. 17. Oh, that I had any thing to offer to procure the favour of my offended heavenly Father! were I Lord of the whole World, I would give it all for the purchase of his love; but he neither needs nor desires such gifts, I am told [The Sacrifices] most likely to be accepted [of God, are a broken spirit,] a heart almost dashed to pieces with sorrow for its sins and fears of his displeasure: Grant me therefore by thy Grace such [a broken and a con­trite heart,] and I will offer that unto thee [O God] knowing [thou wilt not despise] it, but kind­ly accept it, and him that doth present it.

Dan. IX. 9. Why do we run from him by despair, who is so able and so likely to relieve us? [To the Lord our God] whom we have offended by our Sins, most properly [belong mercies] infinite [and forgivenesses] more than our Souls can need: They are inseparable from his Nature, wherefore we will seek for Mercy [though we have rebelled against him] by frequent and grievous sins of Com­mission, [Page 5] [neither have we] abstained from sins of Omission, nor [obeyed the voice of the Lord our God,] who strictly enjoyns us [to walk in his Laws which he] in his Word hath most plainly [set before us.] All this with shame and sorrow we con­fess; yet since we heartily repent us now, all this can­not hinder so merciful a Father from receiving us af­ter our return from folly.

Luke XV. 18, 19. Which we may learn from the Example of the returning Prodigal, who when he came to himself after his ungrateful deserting his Fa­ther and riotous wasting of his Portion, said, Why do I sit still in my sin and misery under a fruitless sor­row? Surely [I will arise] by repentance [and] by Faith [go to my Father] who can yet relieve me; and to move his bowels of Compassion towards me, as soon as I see him, I will fall on my knees be­fore him [and will say unto him, Father,] by all the kindness of that endearing name, give ear to me who now confess, that [I have sinned against heaven] and the God that dwells there, [and be­fore thee] I am guilty of so base Ingratitude, that I deserve to be deserted in my extream misery; for I have forfeited my relation by my disobedience [and am no more worthy to be called thy Son,] yet I hope thou wilt not let me perish who feedest the meanest of thy Servants.

§. 4. Though those of the former blessed temper are fewest in number, and meanest in their own eyes, yet because they are dearest to God, the Church hath shewed her chief care of them in select­ing the most and choicest of the Sentences for their comfort: Yet she hath not forgot, Thirdly, The Ig­norant, who know not how to make these Peniten­tial [Page 6] Addresses, as being neither sensible of their guilt nor danger, because they think, either they have no Sin, or that a slight repentance will procure pardon for it, for whose information the two following Sen­tences are designed.

1 Epist. S. John I. 8, 9. Let us not be so vain as to fancy our selves Innocent, and so become secure in our evil ways, or slight in our daily Confession; for [If we say] with our Mouths, or do but think in our hearts [that we have no sin,] and so no need of daily repenting before we pray as the Church requires, [we deceive] not God (who sees our guilt,) but cheat [our selves] of our Par­don, because we believe a Lye, [and the truth] of Gods Word, which declares that we all have sinned, [is not in us:] This denying our Sin will hasten our Condemnation; [But if we] by searching our hearts and trying our ways, be brought to discern and [confess our sins] with sorrow, shame and de­testation; God hath promised and Christ hath pur­chased a Pardon for us, so that as [he is faithful] to his own Promise [and just] to the Merits of his dear Son, he hath obliged himself upon our re­pentance, both [to forgive us our sins,] by re­moving moving the guilt of them, [and to cleanse us from all unrighteousness] by giving us Grace to forsake every evil way, so that we shall be justified and sanctified also.

Ezek. XVIII. 27. But let no man imagine he can have these benefits without a hearty reformation and amendment, since the promise of God is made upon those Terms, where he saith, [When the wicked man] not only confesseth, but also [turn­eth away from his wickedness that he hath] formerly [committed,] so as he never practiseth [Page 7] those sins any more, [and] instead of his old evil courses performs the contrary acts of Piety and Virtue, and [doth that which is lawful] in it self, [and] in such a manner as is [right in mine eyes,] I will free him from Eternal death which he had deserved, and by this change of his ways [he shall save his soul alive,] for I will give him a part in my heavenly Kingdom.

§. 5. Others there are who are not ignorant, but Negligent; and though they know they are daily sin­ning and cannot be saved without repentance, yet defer this duty from day to day: On these both God and the Church call by the two next Sentences: The first of which is the example of a very good Man, who after the Commission of one great Sin, spent all the rest of his life in sad reflexions on it; The second being a strict Command from Christ himself for the performance of this duty, on which they may thus enlarge their Thoughts:

Psal. LI. 3. O how numerous and how heinous are my Sins! yet I am obdurate and unconcerned, whereas poor David, after he had once offended God, melted into tears, and said, O Lord, [I ac­knowledge my transgression] of thy righteous Law, and confess I have deserved thy wrath, which is so dreadful that the terror thereof is daily upon my Spirit, [and my sin is ever before me,] My fear will not suffer me to take my eye off from it till thou art pleased to forgive it.

Matth. III. 3. Doubtless my danger is greater than his was, only I am more stupid and less appre­hensive; but 'tis certain, that in this state of Impe­nitence I am neither fit for Grace nor Glory, as ap­pears by that Summons, [Repent ye] Sinners, and [Page 8] speedily turn from your wicked ways, [for the King­dom] of Jesus that offers Grace from the God [of heaven] to all true Penitents is just now present, and if any reject these tenders, his Kingdom of Glo­ry [is at hand] to condemn them eternally for their disobedience, so that I who have been negligent all this while had need to make haste.

§. 6. Lastly, Those who by custom grow cold and Formal, saying this Confession with external Reve­rence only, without any affections or devotion, are presented by the Church with that direction and re­proof which God gave the hypocritical Jews, who were very ready at all the outward rites of Sorrow, but utterly void of true Contrition; which these persons may thus apply to their own Case.

Joel II. 13. When you come to confess your Sins before the Lord, let your chief care be to [Rent your heart] with grief for your offences, and fear of his displeasure; 'tis this inward sorrow, [and not] the Ceremony of tearing [your garments,] or such like outward Forms which he expects; Wherefore be not too solicitous about those things, but repent sincerely [and turn to the Lord] whom you call [your God,] so that you may be received, [for he is gracious and] ready to give, [merciful] and apt to forgive: He is [slow to anger] toward those who have offended him, [and of great kind­ness] to such as deserve no favour from him: He is more desirous to spare than to punish, [and repent­eth him of the evil] which he threatned, when we repent of the evil we have committed; And shall we not be serious and earnest when we ask Pardon of such a God?

Sect. II. Of the Exhortation.

§. 1. THis Exhortation is designed both to apply and set home the preceding Sentences, and to direct us how we ought to perform the fol­lowing Confession; it collects the necessity of it from the Word of God, and when it hath convinced us that we must do it, it instructs us in the right man­ner, and gives us the reasons why we must confess and repent sincerely just now; and then it invites us to that necessary duty for which it hath so well pre­pared us: So that it connects the Sentences and the Confession, making those so useful in order to this, that whoever hears them and considers the Infe­rences here made, cannot but be rarely disposed for a devout Confession; and though neither the Roman nor Greek Offices have any such Form in this place, yet the Pertinency and the Usefulness thereof will shew, that our prudent and pious Reformers have every where contrived, that the People might per­form each part of the Office with the Spirit and with understanding also.

The parts of this Exhortation are Three, First, A loving Compellation, [Dearly Beloved, &c.] Se­condly, A profitable Instruction, shewing, 1. That we must confess, [The Scripture moveth us, &c.] 2. How we must confess,] with an humble low­ly, &c.] 3. Why we must confess our Sins, [to the end that we may obtain, &c.] 4. When we must confess them, viz. in general [Although we [Page 10] ought at all times, &c.] and in particular in the Publick Assemblies, [Yet ought we most chiefly so to do, &c.] Thirdly, an earnest Invitation to accompany the Priest herein, [Wherefore I pray and beseech you, &c.] All which may be thus made plain.

§. 2. The Minister begins this necessary Admo­nition with the Apostolical Salutation, [Dearly beloved Brethren,] Philip iv. 1. and his care to make them repent, shews he loves his People as Bre­thren: And to add weight to his Exhortation he in­timates, that it is not He only, but God himself who moveth them thereunto in these and [sundry] o­ther [places] of [Scripture] Nehem. i. 6. Psal. xxxviii. 18. Isai. i. 16, 17. Lam. iii. 40, 41. Acts xvii. 30. so that he who refuseth, re­fuseth not Man, but God: 'Tis the King of Heaven, who by us summons and warns you [to ac­knowledge] the guilt he charges you with, [and] to [confess] those [manifold sins] for which your own Conscience accuses you: They are many in Number and of divers kinds, every single Act helping to increase the heap and add to the weight of them: And since they are all known to Almighty God who understands your thoughts, words and works, it is but folly to [Dissemble] your guilt by feigned Excuses, and impudence to [cloak] and cover it with false denials, for He that covereth his Sins shall not prosper, Prov. xxviii. 13. Though we could deny our Faults so confidently or dissemble them so cunningly as to deceive all the World, we cannot conceal them from him who will find them out and condemn us for the transgression and the hy­pocrisie also. The Scripture therefore teacheth us [Page 11] a wiser way, viz. [to confess them,] shewing us withal what frame of Spirit we must put on when we do confess, for we must have 1. [An Humble and Lowly] heart, truly sensible of our vileness by sin, and judging our selves Unworthy to lift up our Eyes to HeavenJob xlii. 6. Luke xviii. 13.. 2. [A Pe­nitent] heart, full of sorrow and indignation against our selves for offending so good a God, and thereby being in danger not only to lose endless joys, but to fall into eternal misery for short and empty pleasures, Matth. xxvi. 75. and this will produce 3. [An obedient Heart,] and make us firmly resolve and earnestly endeavour to keep Gods Commandments better hereafter, John v. 14. And we must the more diligently strive to get our hearts into this blessed Frame, considering the happy [End] of so confessing our Sins, for then we shall undoubt­edly [obtain forgiveness of the same,] not for any desert in us, but because the Lord to whom we confess is of [infinite Goodness and Mercy;] who would not the death of poor Sinners, but is ready to acquit them as soon as they are truly sorry for their misdoings, and sincerely desirous to amend: Wherefore let us who need Remission so exceedingly, and desire so passionately to be reconciled to our God, make such a Confession, and we shall prevail for our Pardon: Indeed our daily Sins make it ne­cessary for us to [acknowledge them at all times] and in all places, Morning, Noon and Night, in our Closets as well as in the Church,Psalm cxi. 1. 1 Tim. ii. 8. for even in secret we are [before God] and he hears our most private and retired ac­knowledgments: But the fittest time and properest [Page 12] place for this Duty is in Gods House, there the Jews made their confessionsNumb. v. 7. Luke xviii. 10., and the Primitive Christians theirs; and if we consider for what Ends we [assemble and meet together] in those Sacred Places, we shall soon per­ceive that every one of the Duties to be done there, do require, that we be first prepared by Repen­tance, and till we have confessed and bewailed our Transgressions, we are not fit nor likely to be accept­ed in any other part of the Offices. S. Augustine tells us that the Christians in his time assembled, To learn Gods Law, to declare his wonderful Work, to praise him for his Gifts, and pray to him for his Blessing: And our Church here shews we have these four things also to do in our Assemblies, 1. [To render thanks] to God for his Benefits, as we do in our Thanksgivings: 2. [To set forth that Praise] of which he is most worthy, which is done in our Psalms, Hymns, Anthems, and Doxologies: 3. [To hear his Word] as we do in attending to the read­ing of Scriptures, and giving heed to Sermons and Homilies taken from thence: 4. [To ask things necessary for our Bodies and Souls] which we do in our Collects, Supplications and Intercessions: But unless true Repentance go before, we are un­worthy either to give thanks or to sing Praise to God, Psal. xxxiii. 1. unfit to hear his most Holy Word, Math. vii. 6. or to offer up any Prayers to him, John ix. 31. None of these Services will be acceptable to God or can be profitable to us unless we repent be­fore we go about them: [Wherefore] that you may not come to Church in vain and lose the bene­fit of so many Holy Duties, the Priest [prays and] earnestly [beseeches you all that are now pre­sent] [Page 13] to joyn with him in the following Confession; there are none so Holy but they have need to make it, and none so sinful but may be profited by it: He who is Gods Embassador to you offers to [accom­pany you] to the [Throne of Grace] knowing his Master will be glad to see him return with so ma­ny Penitents in his Retinue; Yea, He will put Words in your Mouths and speak with you and for you; Only since you confess to God, be careful to do it [with pure hearts] free from hypocrisie and di­straction; And since you are all Sinners, let every one of you [say after] the Minister with a clear but an [humble Voice,] that your Repentance may be as publick as your Faults have been, so shall God be glorified and you accepted in this great Duty, up­on the right performance of which the success of all that follows doth depend.

Sect. III. Of the daily Confession.

§. 1. IT is so certain that Sin unrepented of hinders the success of our Prayers,Isai. i. 15. Chap. lix. 1, 2. that such as would pray effectually have al­ways begun with Confession; be­cause when the guilt is removed by penitential acknowledge­ments, there is no Bar to Gods Grace and Mercy. Thus Ezra and Daniel prayedExra ix. 5, 6. Dan. ix. 4, 5. and Christ taught his Disciples to ask for Pardon as oft as they prayed for their [Page 14] Daily Bread.Math. vi. 11, 12. S. Hierom also assures us, that he daily asked God forgiveness on his Knees.Hieron. ad Abig. Epist. 32. And for the Publick S. Basil affirms, it was the Custom then for every one to make profession of his Repentance in his own words: And accordingly all ancient Liturgies have some Form for that very purpose; But none more full and proper can be found any where than this of ours, which consists of four Parts:

First, A proper Introduction, viz. [Almighty and most merciful, &c.]

Secondly, An humble Confession, concerning, 1. The manner of our sinning [We have erred, &c.] 2. The Nature of our sins, viz. By improve­ing our Original Corruption [We have followed, &c.] And by doing Actual Sin, as well in general, [We have offended, &c.] as in particular, by Sins of Omission, [We have left undone, &c.] and Sins of Commission, [And we have done, &c.] 3. The Effect of our Sins, [and there is no health, &c.]

Thirdly, An earnest Deprecation, containing, 1. The Evils we would be delivered from, viz. The Guilt of Sin, [but thou O Lord, &c.] the Punish­ment, [Spare thou them O God, &c.] and the Power of it, [Restore thou them, &c.] 2. The Ground on which we hope to prevail, [according to thy Promises, &c.]

Lastly, A Devout Petition, intimating to whom we pray, viz. God the Father through Christ, [And grant O most merciful, &c.] for what we pray, viz. for Piety, Charity and Temperance, [That we may hereafter live a Godly, &c.] to what End, [To the Glory of thy Holy Name: Amen.]

[Page 15]§. 2. Since none are fit to pray till they have con­fessed their Sins, it is necessary for every one to come early to Prayers, and always to be there so soon, as to joyn in this Confession, which will rarely assist and direct us in the Exercise of our Repentance, if we duly consider it as we go along. 1. The Intro­duction sets Him before us whom we have offended under those two proper Titles of [Almighty and most merciful Father;] the first to shew us his Power and strike us with a Holy Fear of his Anger; the second to manifest his Love and melt us with the sense of his Mercy: The former minds us of the danger of standing out in our Disobedience, the lat­ter declares the hopes of being received into his Fa­vour again upon our Repentance; and though his Omnipotence might terrifie us, yet his Mercy in­vites us to return and confess all our sins both small and great, viz. That we have frequently [erred] by sudden, lesser and unobserved sins; yea, some­times [strayed] further out of the [Ways] which Gods Law prescribes, by wilful, gross and customary Transgressions, so that we are become [like lost sheep] (as the Scripture doth express itPsal. cxix. 176. Isai. liii. 6. 1 Pet. ii. 25.,) That is, we are helpless and exposed to many dangers, surrounded with cruel Enemies who seek to devour us, and of our selves are as well unable as unlikely to return to Jesus the good Shepherd of our Souls: Now the folly of this is so great and the consequences so sad, that we ought to reflect upon the cause of these our desperate wan­drings, viz. Our Original Sin, which is here pro­perly expressed by [The Devices and Desires of our own hearts,] for the Jews call that cor­ruption [Page 16] of our Nature, The Evil Device, and our ninth Article, The Desire of the Flesh; and both together imply, That (since the Fall) our Under­standing is apt to Imagine and Devise Evil, and our Affections to lust after it; we devise false notions of evil things and call them good, and under that false Disguise we naturally desire them: But we do not charge God as the Author of this Corruption, but confess it springs from Our own Hearts, James i. 13, 14, 15. Nor do we accuse our selves for Having, but for [following] these Evil Devices and Desires; it is our Misery that we have them, but that which we confess as our Sin is, our aptness to follow them [too much,] our not Checking these desires as we ought, but too often fulfilling them, and then they produce Actual Sins, which S. John defines to be The Transgression of Gods Law, 1 John iii. 4. And these we here confess under that general Phrase of our [offending against his holy Laws.] We cannot say but we knew his Commands, yea, and though we have been so wicked to break them, yet we must confess they were Holy, Just and Good, Rom. vii. 12. which makes our Sins appear exceeding sinful: but we must be more particular, and therefore we re­duce our Actual Sins to two Sorts, First, Sins of Omission, that is, the [Leaving undone those things which we ought to have done;] Pray­ing and Praising God, reading and hearing, recei­ving the Sacraments, and giving of Alms, &c. are all of them Duties enjoyned by God, yet these we have either wholly omitted or else performed them in an ill manner: To which we have added Secondly, Sins of Commission, that is, the [Doing those things which we ought not to have done:] Though God have under the Penalty of Damna­tion [Page 17] forbidden Blasphemy, Swearing, Cursing, Ly­ing and Slandering, Pride and Rebellion, Anger and Malice, Drunkenness and Lust, Fraud and Co­vetousness, &c. Alas! we have too often ventu­red to act these Crimes, and had done oftner but for want of Opportunity, so that we are very guil­ty and lyable to Gods Wrath and everlasting Dam­nation: Nor can we any ways deliver our selves out of this sad Estate, for [there is no Health in us,] that is, no means of Help or Salvation (which Scripture expresseth by HealthPsal. cxix. 155. Compare the Old and New Translation.) in us: We are all overspread with this deplore­able Disease of SinIsai. i. 5, 6., but have no Power of our selves to help our selvesHosea xiii. 9., in God only is our Help, for Health and Salvati­on alone belongs to HimPsal. iii. 8., wherefore unto him we turn our Petitions, in the next Part of this Confession.

Having described the sad Estate we have brought our selves into by our Iniquities, we are taught to look up to him who is able to deliver us from the Guilt, the Punishment and the Power of them also: And First, Since we are [miserable Sinners] by the Guilt of these Offences, we cry unto the [Lord] to [have Mercy upon us,] that is, to pity and pardon us (as the Phrase implyesPsal. li. 1. Luke xviii. 11.,) for Misery is the proper Object of Mercy, and Forgive­nesses peculiarly belong to God; We therefore who account our selves miserable so long as we are obnoxious to his Justice, do first beg for the taking away our Guilt; and then 2dly, We shall hope to be delivered from the Punishment of [Page 18] our Sins also, which makes us add a Request that [our God will spare us,] and not inflict those Temporal Judgments on us which our Iniquities de­serve, however that he will not Eternally condemn us; And we hope to prevail in this Petition, because [we confess our Faults;] And one main End of his Judgments, is to bring Obstinate Sinners to that Sight and Sense of their Sins, which we have already; He punishes and condemns only those that deny and hide their SinsGen. xliv. 16. Exod. ix. 27. Judg. i. 6. 2 Chron. xxxii. 12., but spares such as acknowledg them, for these are in the way towards amendment; and therefore 3dly, We pray against the Power of Sin, to shew that we abhor the Crimes for their own sakes, as well as for the Smart which follows them. We find that frequent sinning hath darkned our Minds and hardned our Hearts, strengthened our Corruptions and emboldened our Enemies, weakned our Graces and made Gods Spirit ready to withdraw from us, out of which Unhealthful Estate of Soul, we beseech him [to restore us,] that we may recover our wonted Strength and Vigour, and shew it in resisting Evil and doing Good, Psal. li. 12. 'Tis true, we have loved our Disease formerly, but now [we are penitent] for those Follies, and there­fore pray that Sin and Sathan may never have Domi­nion over us again, but that we may be restored to the Glorious Liberty of Gods Children. Now if any think that Pardon and Deliverance from the Guilt, Punishment and Power of Sin are too great Favours for us to ask, we reply, That all these are no more than God hath engaged to give Repenting Sinners; so that 'tis not likely those Requests should fail which are [according to his Promises de­clared] [Page 19] in his Gospel [unto Mankind] through his Dear Son [Iesus Christ,] there he hath assured us we shall be forgivenHebr. viii. 12., spa­red1 John i. 9., and restoredMath xi. 28, 29., and shall we fear, the God of Truth will not perform so many pro­mises so openly proclaimed, and solemnly made known to us by Jesus Christ? Let us not do him the Dishonour to harbour such a thought of him, but make it our business to repent sincerely, and then we may assuredly believe we shall have all these Blessings.

And then we have no more to do but to Petition Heaven for Grace to amend our Lives, which is the last part of this Confession. The Evils being now removed, we are encouraged to pray [our most merciful Father] in the Name and [for the sake] of that same [Iesus] by whom our Pardon was obtained, That we may spend the rest of our life [hereafter] better than hitherto we have done, and his very forgiving that which is past, obliges us not to run into the like again: Being therefore weary of our Evil Ways, it is our Desire as well as our Duty [to live a godly, righteous, and a so­ber Life]; for S. Paul teaches us Titus ii. 12. this was the very End why God shewed us Mercy in Christ Jesus; and it must be our Endeavour as well as our Prayer to live, 1. Godly, that is, exercising all Piety and Devotion in our Services towards God. 2. Righteously, that is, in all Honesty, and Equity, Fidelity and Charity towards our Neighbours. 3. Soberly, that is, governing our selves and our own Bodies and Souls with all Temperance and Moderation, Humility, Modesty and Charity, which is the Sum of our whole Duty to God and Man; [Page 20] Especially if we not only do these things, but de­sign [the Honour and Glory of Gods Holy Name] thereby, 1 Cor. x. 31. And doubtless if he please by his Mercy to pardon us and by his Grace to reform us; so blessed a change in the Estate of so Miserable Sinners, will give many occasion to Glo­rifie God upon our account; and if we be as grate­ful as we ought to be, it will be very pleasing to us, that he, who hath done us so mighty a Favour, should gain abundant Honour thereby. Finally, to testifie our desire to have all these Petitions granted, our Faith in the Promises and our hope of Accep­tance, we sign all with an unfeigned [Amen,] and God grant it may be to us according to our Faith.

Sect. IV. Of the Absolution.

§. 1. THe Penitent having been thus humbled for his Sins, doth now deserve and need some Comfort: And since our Lord hath endued his Am­bassadors with the Ministry of Reconciliation, 2 Cor. v. 18. they can never have a more proper occasion to exercise it, than now. Sin is compared to a BondActs viii. 23. Prov. v. 22., because it binds down the Soul by its guilt and power, and hinders it from free con­verse with God, yea, makes it ly­able to eternal condemnation: But Jesus came to unloose these BondsIsai. lxvi. 1., and actually did so to divers when he was upon Earth, [Page 21] and left this Power to his Apostles and their Suc­cessors when he went to Heaven; and this Unloos­ing Men from the Bond of their Sins is that which we properly call Absolution, and it is a necessary and most comfortable Part of the Priests Office. But 1. The Sectaries do wholly disown this Power, and are so bold as to deride us for the Use thereof: Yet it is certain that Christ did give his Disciples the Power of Binding and Loos­ingMath. xvi. 19. Chap. xviii. 18., or, as it is elsewhere called, of Remitting SinsJohn xx. 22. & v. 23., frequently repeating this Com­mission, and solemnly promising to Ratifie in Heaven what they did on Earth: 'Tis plain also that the Apostles exercised this PowerActs ii. 38. 2 Cor. ii. 10. and gave their Successors a charge to use it alsoGalat. vi. 1. James v. 14, 15.; and the Primitive Histories do abundant­ly testifie they did so very often: so that they must cancel all those lines of Scripture, and Records of Antiquity also, before they can take away this Power: Nor can they fairly pretend it was a Personal Priviledge dy­ing with the Apostles, since the Church hath used it ever since, and Penitents need a comfortable Ap­plication of their Pardon now, as well as they did then: And whereas they object with the Jews, That none can forgive Sins but God only, Luke v. 21. We reply, That God alone can exercise this Power in his own Right, but He may, and hath communi­cated it to others who do it in his Name, and by His Authority, or as S. Paul speaks, in the Person of Christ, 2 Cor. ii. 10. so that S. Ambrose saith, God himself forgives Sins by them to whom he hath granted the Power of Absolution; which may suffice to check [Page 22] those who despise it. 2. The Romanists on the o­ther hand abuse this Power of Absolution, 1st. By af­fixing it to the particular Church of Rome, exclu­ding all those from using it who derive not their Au­thority from thence: But Christ gave this Power to all the Apostles as well as to S. Peter, and those Bishops who had no dependance on, nor sometimes communion with Rome, did exercise this Power as lawfully as the Pope himself. 2dly. They abuse this Power, by selling Pardons and Absolutions for Money, so that they get largest Indulgences who have most to give, and those who are wickedly dis­posed are hereby encouraged to sin, in hopes of pur­chasing Remission at last. 3dly. They abuse it by making it an Engine to entice the People into re­vealing all their Secrets to the Church, even those of Princes as well as private Families, by which accursed Policy their Priests carry on their Secular Designs, and obtain a considerable Interest in world­ly Affairs. But this Church hath rejected these A­buses, yet retains the Thing it self, and hath three different Forms of Absolution in these Publick Of­fices: The First, Declaratory, in this place, which is no more than the solemn promulgation of a Par­don upon the conditions of Faith and Obedience, which to those so qualified is indeed an Absolution, and a Warning to others to seek for those Condi­tions that they may be forgiven; and this is all the Church thinks fit to do in a Mixt Congregation. The Second is Petitionary in the Communion Ser­vice, where, besides the recital of Christs Promise, to forgive upon these Terms, there is a Prayer, that all present may obtain the benefit thereof; which Petition must needs be of great Force, because it is made by that Officer whom Jesus hath Commissio­nated [Page 23] to grant Absolution; and yet he chooses ra­ther humbly to beg it, than Authoritatively to dis­pense it, and this is proper for such a Congregation as are supposed to have prepared themselves for this Mystery by Faith and Repentance. The Third Form only is Judiciary in the Office for the Sick, and there, unto the Declaration of the Priests Com­mission, is annexed a Solemn Absolution in the Name of Jesus Christ; but this is only to be used to such as give good Testimony of their Repen­tance, and both desire and need it in their Last A­gonies: Which cautious Proceeding shews, that this Church doth neither withold it when there is just Occasion, nor promiscuously grant it so as to en­courage impenitent Sinners. As for the present Form it hath three Parts: First, the Commission, setting forth the Author of it, [Almighty God, &c.] the Occasion of granting it, [who desireth not the death, &c.] the Persons to whom the Com­mission is made, [And hath given Power, &c. to his Ministers:] And the Subject Matter of it, [to declare and pronounce, &c.] Secondly, the Execution of this Commission, by declaring, The Benefit granted, [He pardoneth, &c.] and the parties likely to receive it, [all them that tru­ly repent, &c.] Thirdly, the Application, di­recting them what to ask, [wherefore let us be­seech him, &c.] and shewing what are the Bene­fits of being heard, [that those things may please, &c.] Finally, concluding all in Christs Name, [through Iesus Christ our Lord, A­men.]

§. 2. The News of Pardon is most desirable to a troubled Soul, but those that are truly humbled are [Page 24] apt to fear it is too good to be true, and so are wont to question whence we have this Power: for satisfaction of which doubt we declare, that our Commission is derived from an [Almighty God] who as the Supreme of all Beings can grant it with­out controul, and as he is [the Father of our Lord Iesus Christ,] by whose Blood he bought us, he cannot but be inclinable to save us; Yea, we have his Royal Word confirmed by an Oath, to assure us, that [he desires not the death of a Sinner,] nor hath any pleasure in their Destruction, He is not willing to condemn them, and (if they would take any course to prevent it) [He had rather they would turn from their Wickedness,] so as they might be saved [and Live] in eternal Glory, Ezek. xxviii. 23. & xxxiii. 11. And lest the despair of his Mercy should discourage penitent Sinners from seeking forgiveness as a thing impossible to be had, this our merciful Lord [hath given power] in a solemn Commission divers times repeated in the Gospel, and special [Commandment] besides (Galat. vi. 1. 1 Thes. v. 14. Ezek. xxxiv. 4.) [to his Mi­nisters] when the necessities of distressed Souls re­quire it, [to declare] to all, his willingness to for­give, and more particularly [to pronounce to his People] when they are heartily grieved and truly [penitent] for their Sins, that they shall have [ab­solution and remission:] And since you that are here, have now declared by this humble Confession, that you do sincerely repent, We, by vertue of this Commission, do declare, that though no mortal Man can by any Right or Power inherent in him­self forgive Sin, yet [He] who is the Maker of those Laws you have broken, both can and will [pardon] the Guilt, and [absolve] from the Pu­nishment [Page 25] of their Sins [All those] who are endued with the Gospel Conditions of Pardon, (Mark i. 15. Acts xx. 21.) viz. [True Repentance,] and an unfeigned [belief of his Holy Gospel:] So that if you be truly sorry for your Sins, and desi­rous to amend your Lives, trusting in Gods Mer­cy through Christ, we can in Gods Name assure you of a Gracious Pardon. [Wherefore] since there is so infinite a Blessing to be had upon such easie terms, [let us] with all possible importunity [beseech] this our Merciful Father, whose Gifts alone Faith and Repentance are, Acts v. 31. Ephes. ii. 8. James i. 17. that he will bestow these Graces on us, and [grant us true repentance] for all our Sins [and his holy Spirit,] to enable us to believe and em­brace the Mercy offered to us; for if we can ob­tain these Graces, we shall first have our Absolution certainly confirmed in Heaven, and that once obtain­ed, there will follow three very advantagious Conse­quences thereupon; First, Upon this Pardon of our Sins all [those Duties which we do at this present,] viz. our Prayers, Praises, hearing, &c. will un­doubtedly [please God,] and be as well acceptable to him, as profitable to us. Secondly, When our former Offences are remitted, we shall regularly proceed to amend all that hath been amiss, so [that the rest of our life hereafter may be pure] from Sin, and very [Holy]; by which means, Thirdly, we shall most assuredly [come at last] unto the glorious Reward of such Piety, even to [Ever­lasting Ioy,] where we shall be happy with him to all Eternity: All which is mentioned to move every one of you earnestly to endeavour and pray for Faith and Repentance, the only Conditions of Absolution, and the means to obtain all these inesti­mable [Page 26] Benefits: And since we must procure them by the Merits, let us devoutly beg them [through] the mediation of Iesus Christ our Lord.] We must not say the words of this Absolution after the Minister with an audible Voice, because it is his Pri­viledge and the property of his Office only to pro­nounce it; but our hearts must be intent upon the Directions, and our Souls must embrace the Com­forts thereof; and finally, we must seal all with an [Amen] full of vigour and devotion, that God and Man may hear, how firmly we believe, how highly we value, and how earnestly we desire these Comforts.

Sect. V. Of the Lords Prayer.

§. 1. HItherto we have been preparing our selves to pray, and now we begin with Prayer properly so called, viz. The Lords Prayer; which being made by Jesus, and indicted by his Spirit, de­served to stand in the first place, but that we were not fit to call God, Our Father, till we had re­pented of our Sins against him: And being thus prepared, we dare not omit it, because we are sure our Lord intended it not only for a Pattern to make other Prayers by, when he said, After this manner pray ye Matth. vi. 9., but as a Form to be used in so many words, be­cause when he delivered it the second time, he says expresly, When ye pray, say, [Page 27] Our Father, &c. Luke xi. 1. and there­fore S. Hierom saith, it is recited in the Liturgy by our Lords TraditionHieron. adv. Pe­lag. l. 3.; S. Cyprian also, and divers other Ancients, call it, The Daily Prayer; and all the Primitive Liturgies have it in every one of their Services, so that S. Augustin tells us, In the Church of God it is daily used at the Altar August. Homil. 42.; yea the whole congregation joyned in repeat­ing it, (as our Rubric requires now) for that Father adds, If any of you do not say this Prayer, though you be present in Body, you are out of the Church Idem, De Verb. Apost. Ser. 31.. And if we con­sider the Stile of it, we shall be convinced that its Divine Au­thor intended it chiefly for Publick Assemblies, it being, as S. Cyprian speaks, A Common Prayer, and all its expressions so general (Our Father, &c. Our daily Bread, &c.) that every Man prays for others as well as himself, and exercises his Charity as well as his Devotion. The Phrases and particular Sen­tences thereof, are all taken out of those Forms which were in use among the Jews in our Saviours time, to shew that he liked not unnecessary Novel­ty in Prayer; but the whole Composure is truly Wonderful, being so short, that the meanest may learn it, so plain, that the most ignorant may un­derstand it, and yet so full, that it comprehends all our Wants, and intimates all our Duty, shew­ing not only what is fit to be asked, but what man­ner of persons we that ask ought to be, whence Ter­tullian calls it, The Epitome of the Gospel; as con­taining, our perswasion of Gods Love, our desire of his Honour, our subjection to his Authority, our [Page 28] submission to his Will, and our dependance on his Providence; our Need of his Mercy to pardon for­mer Offences, and of his Grace to keep us from future Sins, and of both to deliver us from the Pu­nishment due unto them all; concluding with Acts of Faith, and Praise, and Adoration: And being drawn up by our glorious Advocate, who knew his Fathers Treasures as well as our Wants, it is cer­tainly the most compleat in it self, the most accept­able to God, and the most useful for us of any Form in the World: For which cause it ought to be united to all our Offices, to make up their De­fects, and recommend them to our Heavenly Fa­ther, who cannot deny us when we speak the very same words which his dear Son hath put in our Mouths, if we use them with understanding and devotion. To which purpose let us observe the Parts of this Prayer, which are, First, A Preface expressing the Goodness, [Our Father,] and the Greatness of him we pray to, [which art in Heaven:] Secondly, The seven Petitions, the first three concerning Gods Glory, viz. 1. The honour of his Name, [Hallowed, &c.] 2. The Advance­ment of his Authority, [Thy Kingdom, &c.] 3. The fulfilling of his Will, [Thy Will, &c.] The four last Petitions concerning our own Good: viz. 1. For temporal supplyes, [Give us, &c.] 2. For remission of Sins past, [and forgive us, &c.] 3. For prevention of future Sins, [and lead us not, &c.] 4. For deliverance from Punishment, [but deliver us, &c.] Thirdly, the Doxology, ascribing unto God Dominion and Might, Mercy and Praise, [for thine is the Kingdom, &c. A­men]

[Page 29]§. 2. The Jews begin divers of their Prayers with this very Preface, Our Father which art in Heaven; but since they are in Bondage to the Law, they cannot so properly call God, Father, as we who are his Children and Sons,Galat. iv. 6. not only by Creation as they were also, but by our Adoption and Regeneration in Baptism through Jesus Ghrist, who hath given us Power to become the Sons of GodJohn i. 12., and hath here taught us to cry, Abba, Father; which while we pronounce, let us think of that Fatherly Love he bears towards us, and of the Filial Affection and Duty we owe to him; not proudly appropriating this Honour to our own particulars, but calling him Our Father, belie­ving every Christian hath a Title to his Mercy, who is loving to every Man; and therefore we must in imitation of him put on an Universal Charity, and pray for all men. And that we may not fear the sufficiency of his Bounty, we do here acknowledge that He is in Heaven, and therefore can do whatsoe­ver he pleasesPsal. cxv. 3.; He reigns over all Creatures, and lives for ever in infinite Glory, so that we ought to come with great Humility in respect to his Majesty, and yet with a lively Faith because of his Supream Power, which enables him to grant whatsoever we ask of him. Since therefore we are before such a God, our first Petition must aim at his Glory, especially since his Glory is so closely united to our good, that in asking the one, we gain the other; And First, As God is our Father, we are obliged to pray that [his Name] may [be hallowed,] for every good Son desires above all [Page 30] things that his Father may be honoured. His Name indeed is most Holy and Excellent in it self, nor can it be hurt by the Blasphemy or irreverence of any vile Creature; yet we cannot but pray it may have its deserved Honour and Veneration among all Men, and that not only his Essential Name, which is himself, may be thus respected, but that what­ever is called by his Name, and belongs to him, as his Word, his Worship, his Ministers, with the Places, times, and things dedicated to his Service, that all these may be treated with reverent Regard for his Sake, and esteemed far above Common things. And because we Christians bear our Ma­sters Name, we pray that we may bring no disho­nour on that blessed Name by which we are cal­ledRom. ii. 25., but may live so holily, that Men seeing our good works may glorifie our Father who is in Heaven. Secondly, As our God is by undoubt­ed right the King of all the Earth, we are concerned to see Evil Men despise his Authority, break his Laws, and injure his dearest Subjects, and long to see [his Kingdom come], as well the Kingdom of Grace which is set up and enlarged outwardly by the conversion of Infidels and Hereticks to the true Faith, and inwardly by the strict and sincere obedi­ence of all professed Christians to the Holy Laws of this Blessed King: But in regard that the most loyal Subjects of our Lord meet with many Injuries, and his bold Enemies cease not to rebel against him here, we pray also that his Kingdom of Glory may come as soon as he pleases, and we are fit for it; For then his Supream Authority shall appear in perfection, because all his Foes shall be condemned, and his Friends and Servants delivered from all their pres­sures; [Page 31] Yea these shall be advanced to reign with their Lord in endless Glory, and what good Man will not wish for that Happy Day? Thirdly, Yet since God knows better than we, when it is fittest to bring this to pass, we submit to his pleasure, and pray that [his will may be done:] It is his Will that all Men should be saved, 1 Tim. ii. 4. and he defers the coming of his Kingdom to give his Ene­mies space to repent, and therefore we pray they may do his Will in securing their own Salvation be­fore that day surprize them. It is also his Will, that we should be sanctified1 Thes. iv. 1., and we are obliged to wish this his Will may be accomplished in us, that we may ever act according to his Will decla­red in his Word, and then his Will appearing in his Providence, shall order all things to work toge­ther for our good: His Will must be done by us, and then we may chearfully consent it should be done upon us, for he can will no Evil to those that serve him: The Angels of Heaven do perfectly o­bey his Will, and absolutely submit to it, and there­in they are to be our Example, which makes us pray that Gods Will may be done as freely, fully and constantly [on Earth as it is in Heaven].

§. 4. Having thus sought the Kingdom of God in the first place, we proceed to beg a Supply for our Wants, for we are not able (as the Angels) to do his Will without constant Supports, and there­fore we beg that he will please to [Give us this day our daily bread:] Meaning by Bread all that is necessary for our subsistence, viz Food and Ray­ment, Habitations, and a competency of Health, Wealth and Friends, all which we own to be his [Page 32] Gifts; For the quality, we ask no Delicacies; for the quantity, no Superfluities: Nor do we with anxiety look too far before us, we ask no more than necessaries for the present day, because we intend to come again to Morrow, and desire every day to be at Gods Allowance, who knows better than we our selves what is fit for us. The Bread we desire also is that which is Ours by his Blessing on our honest Endeavours, not that which is unjustly taken from others; and that which we have justly gotten, we beg from him a Power to enjoy it, and a Blessing on it, and then it will be truly comfort­able unto us. The Second Petition concerning our selves, respects our Souls, as the former did our Bodies; For while our Sins are unpardoned, our Food and other earthly Enjoyments do but fit us for Ruine, and feed us for Destruction, so that we pray that God will [forgive us our Trespasses,] which is a Confession that we have offended, as well as a Petition for Mercy; we acknowledge that our Sins are heinous in their nature, no less than Inju­ries and Trespasses against God, and terrible for their Number, not one, or two, but many Tres­passes, for all which we ask Pardon through the Merits of Jesus Christ. And as we need forgiveness infinitely from our Heavenly Father, so we give it readily to all our Brethren [that trespass against us,] for their Offences are fewer and lesser than those we are guilty of against God, who will deny us Absolution, if we be malicious and implacable. Thirdly, As we look back and pray for remission of Sins past, so we look forward, and fearing to fall into the like hereafter, we beg that [He will not lead us into temptation.] 'Tis true, God doth never tempt us to sinJames i. 13., yet to try our [Page 33] sincerity he suffers Satan to tempt us, and if we de­light in the occasions, desire the opportunities, and love the pleasures of Sin, then he will restrain his Providence, and withold his Grace from us, where­upon we willingly choose our own ruine, and fall into actual Transgression: But considering the na­ture of sin is so evil, and the consequents so sad, we had need pray earnestly that we may not provoke him to leave us to our selves, and let loose Satan upon us (which is here called, leading us into temp­tation) lest we cancel our lately begged Pardon by reiterated Provocations. Fourthly, Because Sin is the certain way to Punishment, which we are apt to count the greatest Evil, we pray to be [delivered from evil] that is, from all the just and dreadful consequences of Sin continued in, viz. from Evils temporal; Judgments, Curses, and Calamities on our Persons and Estates: Evils spiritual; that is blindness of mind, hardness of heart, and Gods de­serting our Souls in this World: And finally from eternal Evils; that is, the loss of Heaven, and the pains of Hell for ever and ever in the World to come: 'Tis the reason why we pray to be deliver­ed from Sin, that we may escape all these Evils that are the Punishments thereof. Lastly, We con­clude with the Doxology which St. Matthew's Gospel hathMatth. vi. 13., and the Greek Fathers expound it, and therefore we use it here: But since St. Luke's Gospel leaves it outLuke xi. 4. and most of the Latin Fathers, therefore we also omit it some­times, when the Office is not matter of Praise, as it is here after the Absolution. Here then we bless God for our Pardon by this Conclusion, wherein [Page 34] we both give the reason why we ask all these things of God, viz. because [His is the Kingdom, Power, and Glory] he may grant them all by his Supreme Authority, he can do all this by his Infinite Power, and will for his Eternal Glory. We ascribe Kingdom, Power and Glory to him, and declare he deserves all this, because he uses all these Perfections for our good; so that we desire he may reign and exercise this Power over us, yea, and re­ceive his deserved Glory from us, and all the World [for ever and ever] which, with all our prece­ding requests, we do every one now sign with a devout [Amen.]

Sect. VI. Of the Responses.

§. 1. IT was a very ancient practice of the Jews to recite their Publick Hymns and Prayers by course, and many of the Fathers assure us that the Primitive Christians imitated them therein; so that there is no old Liturgy wherein there are not such short and devout Sentences as these, wherein the People answer the Priest, and therefore they are called Responses: And (as a late Traveller observes) the Armenian Christians, at this day, do make these Responses in their own Vulgar TongueBellonii obser. lib. 3. c. 12.; and the use of them in the first A­ges do fully prove, that Pray­ers were then made in a Language which the Peo­ple [Page 35] understood: But this Primitive Usage is now excluded, not only from the Popish Assemblies by their praying in an unknown Tongue, but also from those of our Protestant Dissenters, who by the new device of one long extempore Prayer, have depri­ved the People of bearing any part in the Service, which ancient right of theirs the Church of Eng­land still allows them, and that for very good rea­son. 1. Because hereby the consent of the Congre­gation to what we pray for is declared: And it is this Unity of Mind and Voice, and this Agreement in Prayer which hath the Pro­mise of prevailingRom. xv. 6. Matth. xviii. 19.. 2ly, This grateful variety and different manner of Address serves to quicken the Peoples devotion. 3ly, It engageth their Attention; and since they have their share of duty, they must expect till their turn come, and give heed to do it right, and prepare for their next Re­sponse; whereas when the Minister doth all, the People naturally grow sleepy and heedless, as if they were wholly unconcerned. This being then so ancient and useful a way of Praying, let all those who come to Common Prayer, gratefully embrace this priviledge which our Church allows them, and make their Responses gravely, and with an audible voice, which they will find to be a great help to their Devotion.

§. 2. The Responses here prescribed consist of Prayers and Praises; the two first are Prayers ta­ken out of David's Psalms, the great Storehouse of Primitive Devotion.

First, Psalm LI. 15. [O Lord open thou, &c.] This Sentence is very frequent in ancient Liturgies, [Page 36] particularly in those of S. James and S. Chrysostome; and it is fitly placed here, with respect to those sins we lately confessed, for it is part of David's Peni­tential Psalm, who had looked on his guilt so long, till the grief, the shame, and the fear which fol­lowed thereupon, had almost sealed up his lips, and made him speechlessGen. xliv. 16. Matth. xxii. 11., (as the deep sense of guilt is wont to do) so that he could not praise God as he desired, unless it pleased God, by speaking peace to his soul, to re­move those terrors, and then his lips would be o­pened, and his mouth ready to praise the Lord. 'Tis said that Origen, reflecting on his offences when he was reading that verse in the Church, But unto the ungodly, saith God, what hast thou to do to take my Laws into thy mouth, &c. stopt, and could go no further for tears; and if we be as fully sensible of our guilt, as we ought to be, it will be needful for us to beg such evidences of our Pardon as may free us from the terrors which seal up our lips, and then we shall be fit to praise God heartily in the Psalms which follow. Secondly, Psal. lxxi. i. and xl. 13. [O God make speed, &c] This also is of anci­ent use in the Western Church, and it is the Para­phrase of that remarkable Supplication, viz. Hosan­nah, which signifies, Save now, Lord, we beseech thee, Psal. cxviii. 25. when (with David, Psal. xl. 12.) we look back to those innumerable evils that have ta­ken hold of us, we cry to God to save us speedily from them by his Mercy: and when we look forward to the duties we are about to do, we pray as earnest­ly that he will make haste to help us by his Grace, without which we cannot do any acceptable service: Both of these are necessary for us just now, and [Page 37] that is the reason why we are so importunate for a speedy answer, and we hope he that gives so freely, will give speedily, and double the kindness there­by.

§. 3. The other two Responses are Acts of Praise; upon supposition that our pardon is granted, we rise up with joy to sing, First, [Glory be to the Father, &c.] which excellent Hymn, though it be not the very words of Scripture, yet it is a Para­phrase upon the Song of the Se­raphins, Holy, Holy, Holy Isai. vi. 3., and gives equal worship to eve­ry Person of the Trinity, because each Person is very God1 John v. 7.. It was a custom from the be­ginning of Christianity (as the Fathers shewClem. Alex. Atha­nasius▪ &c.,) to give Glory to the only Father, with the Son and the Holy Ghost: which Orthodox form the Arrian Hereticks at­tempted to change into Glory be to the Father, by the Son, and in the Holy Ghost: whereupon the Church enlarged the old Form, and annexed it to their Li­turgies in this form, Glory be to the Father, to the Son, and to the Holy Ghost, now and ever, world without end: and so the Greek Church now uses it; to which the Western Church added, in a Council An. 442. [As it was in the beginning] to shew this was the Primitive Faith, and the old Orthodox way of praising God. And to this very day it serves for these two uses; first, as a shorter Creed and Con­fession of our believing in three Persons and one God, whereby we both declare our selves to be in the Communion of the Catholick Church, and also renounce all Hereticks who deny this great and di­stinguishing Article of our Faith. Secondly, It [Page 38] serves for a Hymn of Praise, by which we magnifie the Father for our Creation, the Son for our Re­demption, and the Holy Ghost for our Sanctifica­tion; and to quicken us herein, we declare it was so in the [beginning,] for the Angels sung the praises of the Trinity in the morning of the CreationJob xxxviii. 7.: The Patriarchs, Prophets, and Apostles, Saints and Martyrs, did thus worship God from the beginning: The whole Church Mi­litant and Triumphant doth it now, and shall do it for ever, not only in this world, but in that which is without end. Let us therefore with great devo­tion joyn with this blessed Company in so good a work, and give Glory to the Father who granted our pardon, to the Son who purchased it, and to the Holy Ghost who sealed it: Let every Person of the glorious Trinity have due praise; and as God is not weary with repeating his blessings, let us never be weary of repeating this Hymn, but in Psalms, Litanies, or wherever we find it, let us say it with a fresh sense of God's infinite love, for he justly de­serves our most hearty praises: Amen.

Secondly, [Praise ye the Lord, &c.] which is no other but the English of Hallelujah; a word so sacred, that S. John retains itRev. xix. 1, 3, 4, 6. &c., and S. Austin saith the Church of old scrupled to tran­slate it. The use of it is fre­quent in the Psalms, being the Title to, and the Conclusion of many of them; particularly of six Psalms, which were the Pas­chal Hymn, and called the great Hallelujah Psal. cxiii. —to Psal. cxviii. See Tobit xiii. 18.. And among the Christians it was so usual to [Page 39] sing Hallelujah, that St. Hierome saith little chil­dren were acquainted with itHieron. ad Laetam ep. 7.: And when Olympius, a Heathen Philosopher, heard an Hallelujah sung in the Temple of Serapis, before the doors were open, or any Mortal had gone in, he fled from the place, con­cluding from this Prognostick, that the Heathen Temple would shortly be changed into a Christian Church. The solemn times of singing it among divers Churches were different; but it was used e­very where on the Lords day; and among us it is used every day, and placed here, 1. As a return to the Gloria Patri, for in that we worshipped the Tri­nity, as we do the Unity in this. 2ly, As a tri­umphant Hymn upon the joyful News of our Ab­solution, and the overthrow of our spiritual ene­mies, for which (saith the Priest to the People) Praise ye the Lord, and they readily obey him, re­plying, The Lords name be praised. 3ly, It is a proper Preface to the Psalms, called in the He­brew, The Book of Praises. The Office hath been thus far Penitential, and now it begins to be Eu­charistical, what more proper Introduction can there be, than this, Hallelujah?

Sect. VII. Of the XCV. Psalm.

§. 1. THis Psalm containing directions and exhor­tations to Prayer, to Praise God, and hear his holy Word, is a very proper Preparatory for the following duties, and the matter of it shews it was designed at first for the Publick Service, on the Feast of Tabernacles, (as some) or on the Sabbath day (as others think;) but S. Paul judges it fit for eve­ry day, while it is called to day Hebr. iii. 15., and so it hath been used in all the Christian World, as the Liturgy of S. Basil testifies for the Greek Church; the testimony of S. Augustine witnesses for the A­frican Church; and for the Western Church all its antient Offices retain it, and in the Capitulars, it is called the Invitatory Psalm Addit. 1. capit. 66.; yea the very Jewish Do­ctors have confessed it belongs to the times of Messiah, and there­fore our Reformers did very prudently place it here, before the Psalms, Collects & Lessons; for it con­tains a threefold Exhortation: First, to praise God; shewing 1. the manner how, viz. externally and internally, vers. i, ii. And 2. the reason why, viz. because of his infinite greatness; vers. iii. and his mighty Power declared by his Providence over all, vers. iv. and his Creating of all, vers. v. The Second Exhortation is, to pray to this mighty God; for the manner, very humbly, vers. vi. giving the reason for it, because it is his due from us, vers. [Page 41] vii. The Third Exhortation is, to hear his Word, directing us as to the manner, viz. speedily, wil­lingly, and with tender hearts, vers. viii. And warning us by the Example of the Jews, whose sin is set before us, vers. ix. and their punishments, vers. x. and xi. that we may not destroy our Souls, by despising and distrusting Gods word as they did.

§. 2. Psalm XCV. 1, 2. In the entrance upon this Eucharistical part of the service we stir up and ad­monish one another (as S. Paul adviseth)Ephes. v. 19. Coloss. iii. 15., with this Psalm: And first the Priest invites the People saying, [O come let us sing] with our voices [unto the Lord,] and that our Souls may make a confort to our lips, [Let us] all the while inwardly and [heartily rejoyce in the strength of] that mighty God who is [our Salvation]: To which the People readily agree, and mutually encouraging one another answer, [Let us come] into this house the place where we are immediately [before his presence with thanksgiving] for all his Mercies, and let our inward gratitude declare it self so, that all men may see we [are glad] and rejoyce [in him] while we are repeating this and the following [Psalms.]

Vers. iii, iv, v. And the more effectually to stir us up thereto, let us consider, 1. his infinite greatness [For the Lord] whom we praise [is] so [great a God] that he is present in all places, and the whole World cannot comprehend him; and so ve­ry high in dignity, that he is [a great King above all] that are called [Gods;] the glorious An­gels, and all the Heathen Deities, are but his Crea­tures. 2ly, Consider his Mighty Power, which [Page 42] may be seen in the vastness of his Dominion, and the extent of his Providence. [The] furthest and most secret [Corners of the Earth] which were never yet discovered by Man, these are [in his hand,] and he disposeth all things there; Those lofty tops, which are [the strength of the] high­est [Hills,] and inaccessible to Mortal Princes, [are his also,] he can protect his friends there, and pull his Foes from thence. His Power also ap­pears in that he made all those things which he go­verns; [The Sea] which is so wide, that we know not the bounds thereof, this [is his,] for [he made it,] He took this vast abyss of waters from off the Earth, [and his hands prepared the dry land,] for all Nations to inhabit, and shall we not heartily praise this glorious God?

Vers. vi, vii. He can do whatever he please for us, and therefore when we have praised him for for­mer mercies, [O come let us] all that are here present [worship] and pray to him for the supply of all our wants, and because he is so great a Ma­jesty, let us approach with the lowest reverence, let us [fall down and] meekly [kneel] while we present our Supplications [before the Lord,] who is [our maker,] and therefore justly expects re­verence both from our Souls and Bodies: And if we thus humbly call upon him, no doubt he will hear us, [For he is the Lord] whom by this ser­vice we do peculiarly own to be [our God,] He is the great Shepheard that watches over us, [and we are the People] which he hath chosen for his flock: We are fed in [his pasture] with a­bundance of blessings, and are those [Sheep] which he defends by [his Hand] from all evils and dangers; on him therefore let us devoutly call.

Vers. viii, ix, x, xi. And since his own Sheep hear his voice, you (who expect he should hear your Prayers) must hear his commands, which will be read to you this Day out of his Holy word; and you must obey them without delay, for he saith, [To day,] even this very day (which is the only time you can be sure is your own) [if ye will hear his voice,] and do what he requires you, then you must [not harden your hearts,] by pre­suming to go on in sin, and yet vainly expecting more time, and falsly promising your selves mercy at the last. For there is a terrible Example of the sad event of such vain hopes; thus did those old Jews flatter themselves [in the provocation, and in the day of temptation in the wilderness,] of whom God thus complains, they would neither obey my Precepts nor fear my threatnings, but [tempted] me to destroy them, [and proved] my Patience, by many bold acts of Disobedience, not­withstanding [they saw] all my wonderfull [works.] 'Tis true, I put up, and passed by ma­ny affronts, for even [Forty years long was I grieved with] the sins and presumption of that [generation,] (and I have born as long with some of you) yet I did not finally forgive them; for at last I utterly rejected them, [and said,] these wretches, who hope for my mercy, while they disobey my Laws, [are a people which do erre in their hearts,] and their practices shew [they have not known my ways,] which are to be merciful only to the penitent and obedient: And therefore [I sware in my wrath] and high displeasure against them, [that they should] all dye in the wilderness, and not one of them [enter into] Canaan, which was [my Rest] promised to [Page 44] them on Condition of their obedience: Which dreadfull example shews us how dangerous it is to neglect, yea, even to defer our obedience to the calls and commands of Gods word; and if their fall be a warning unto us, we shall then have rea­son to bless God for this admonition: and to con­clude it with, [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

Sect. VIII. Of the Psalms.

§. 1. THe Book of Psalms is a Collection of Prai­ses and Prayers endited by the Spirit, com­posed by holy men on various occasions, and so suit­ed to Publick Worship that they are used and com­mended by the Jews and Mahometans, as well as by the Christians; and though the several Parties of Christians differ in most other things, in this they all agree: So that Cassander designed to compose a Liturgy out of the Psalms, in which all Christians might joyn. They contain variety of Devotions, agreeable to all degrees and conditions of Men, so that without much difficulty every Man may apply them to his own case, either directly, or by way of accommodation; for which cause the Church useth these oftner than any other part of Scripture. 'Tis certain, the Temple Service consisted chiefly of forms taken out of this Book of Psalms1 Chron. xvi. 7. to vers. 37., and the Pray­ers of the modern Jews also are mostly gathered thenceBuxtorf. Synag. Jud. cap. 5.. [Page 45] The Christians undoubtedly used them in their Pub­lick Service in the Apostles times1 Cor. xiv. 26. Coloss. iii. 16., and in the following Ages 'tis very plain that they sung Psalms in the Church by turns, each side of the Choir an­swering to the otherAugustin. de verb. Ap. ser. 12. Constit. Apostol. l. 2. cap. 57.; yea, it appears the Psalms were pla­ced about the beginning of Pray­ers, soon after the ConfessionS. Basil. Epist. 69. & Balsamon notis ad Concil. Antiochen. can. 2.: And that they were so of­ten repeated at the Church, that the poorest Chri­stians could say them by heart, and used to sing them at their labours, in their houses, and in the fields. The Author of them, Holy David, first set them to vocal and instrumental musick, and Pious Antiquity did use them in their Assemblies with Musick al­soEuseb. histor. l. 2. cap. 7. Eccles. hierar. cap. 3. Resp. ad orthod. quaest. 107. Isid. Peleus. l. 1. ep. 90., and so may we very fit­ly do where we have conveni­ence; for this makes our Church­es the very emblem of the hea­venly Choir, which is always represented as prai­sing God in this manner; and experience shews that Musick works very much on the affections of well tempered Men, it calms their minds, composes their thoughts, excites their devotion, and fills their Souls with a mighty pleasure while they thus set forth his Praise.

§. 2. The Church having thus fitted the Psalms for our daily use, it is our duty to say or sing them with great Devotion; and if we have performed the foregoing parts of the Liturgy as we ought, no­thing can fit us better to sing Davids Psalms, with Davids Spirit; for all that hath been done hitherto [Page 46] was to tune our hearts, that we may say, O God my heart is ready (or, fixed) I will sing & give praise; Psalm cviii. 1. And as S. Basil notes, this frame of Spirit is more necessary in the use of the Psalms, than of any other part of Scripture, the rest being only read to us, but every man is to repeat these as his own words. Wherefore, that we may be devout in this holy exercise, let us consider of what sort every Psalm is, that we may be suteably affected in the use thereof. First, some are Psalms of in­struction, explaining the Crea­tionPsalm viii.civ. &c., or the Providence of GodPsalm xxxvii.cxxxix. & cxlvii. &c. the PassionPsalm xxii.lxix. &c., Re­surrection, and Ascension of ChristPs. ii.xvi.cx. &c., or his last coming to JudgmentPsalm l. xcvii. &c., in reading of which we must strive to under­stand the mystery, profess our belief of it, and draw such practical inferences from it as become so holy a Faith, and then let us give [Glory] to the [Father, Son and holy Ghost] for instructing us thus in the true Religion, and for doing so many great and won­derfull works for us. Secondly, Others are Psalms of Exhortation, stirring us up to some Acts, either of Moral VertuePsalm xv.ci. &c., or Posi­tive Religion, viz. to study God's Law, or call on his NamePsal. i.xxxiv.cxix. &c., or warning us against sin by Threatnings and Exam­plesPsal. vii.xi.lviii.lxiv., especially by the pu­nishments inflicted on his own people for itPsal. lxxviii.cv.cvi.. When we read these, we must love and labour for the Vertues recommended, and both hate and forsake the Vices forbidden, looking at the [Page 47] promises inviting us to the one, and the threatnings deterring us from the other, giving Glory to the Father, &c. for all these gracious endeavours to bring us out of the way of destruction, and to re­store us to the paths of life. Thirdly, Others are Psalms of Supplication, either for our selves, for pardonPsalm xxv.li.cxliii. &c., for peace with GodPsal. iv.xlii.lxiii. &c., for patiencePs. x.xxiii.xxxix. &c., and deliverance from all sorts of e­nemiesPsal. lv.lix.lxxi. &c., as also for others, especially for the KingPsal. xxi.lxxii., and the ChurchPsal. lxviii.lxxix. & lxxx. &c.: When we re­peat these, let us consider our own and our brethrens misery for want of the blessings desired; and how happy we shall be in obtaining them: remembring that God hath heard these very words often from the mouths of his Saints, and in hopes he will once more accept them from us also, let us give Glory to the Father, &c. for we may, and ought to pray in faith, and rejoyce in hope, before we have actu­ally received the Mercy desired. Lastly, Others are Psalms of Praise and Thanksgiving, as well for all Gods merciesPsal. ciii.cxxxvi.cxlv. &c., as for our healthPsal. cxvi.cxxx. &c., our plenty and wealthPsal. lxv.cxliv. &c., our victories over our enemiesPsal. xviii.cxlix. &c., and for his mercy to our immortal soulsPsal. lxvi.cxi.cxviii. &c.: in using of these we must me­ditate of our own unworthi­ness, and of his free and un­wearied bounty, of our obligations for that we have received, and our hopes to receive more; and then reflecting with all gratitude on his mercies to us, and all the world, we may properly conclude [Page 48] with [Glory be to the Father, &c.] Finally, let us preserve those flames of Devotion which the Psalms have kindled, by leading such holy lives as the inspired Pen-men of these Divine Hymns did, and then, when the hour of Prayer returns, we shall easily fall into right frame again, and always find abundant benefit and pleasure also in this use of these sacred Anthems.

Sect. IX. Of the Lessons.

§. 1. HOly Scripture is a perfect Revelation of Gods will, as far as is necessary to our salvation, and a compleat Rule both for our Faith and Manners; wherefore we must esteem it as the ground of our Religion, the guide of our ways, and the evidence of our hope: And it is our dutyJohn 5.39. and our inter­est2 Tim. iii. 15. & James i. 21. to read it privatelyDeut. xvii. 19. & Josh. i. 8., and to hear it in publick, where the Jews read Moses and the ProphetsLuke iv. 16. & Acts xv. 21., as the Christians did also, only they added the E­pistles and Gospels to the for­merJustin Martyr A­pol. 2.; and as Tertullian notes, it was one main end of their Assembling to hear Gods word read; as it was went then always to be, in a Language understood by the people: for the old Testament was by a special Providence translated [Page 49] into Greek a little before Christs coming, and the New was writ in the same Tongue immediately af­ter, because that was the most known Language in those parts: Yet when the Gospel spread further, it is evident the Scriptures were translated into all Languages; by which example our Reformers have also translated the Bible into English, which is now at last so compleat, that Forreigners have confes­sed that no Nation can shew the like: The Bible being (not lockt up from the people as in the Ro­man Church, but) made plain to all, we have it daily read unto us, especially the more profitable Chapters, the difficulter being not so properly said to be omitted, as to be remitted to private conside­ration. Indeed the Primitive Church did read some practical Lessons out of the Apocrypha, not as any part of the Rule of Faith, but for instruction of Manners; and so do we, after we have evidently distinguished it from the Canonical Books. As to the particular Lessons, they are very well chosen, especially those for particular Occasions, some of which (particularly Genes. xxii. for Good Friday) are the same which the Church used in S. Augustine's timeAug. Serm. de Temp. 71.; wherefore let us for whom all this care hath been taken, make it our endeavour so to hear them, that we may reap the benefit intended unto us thereby.

§. 2. To which end, First, Let us remember God is the Author of these Holy Books, and he writ them in kindness to our souls, to prevent corrup­tions and mistakes from creeping in to the rule of our Faith, and they are put into a plain and conde­scending stile, comprizing all necessary Truths [Page 50] which yet are so dispersed, as to invite us to read it all, in private or publick; for God hath writ no­thing but what is or may be useful: We ought also to praise God for preserving these sacred Records in all Ages, and transmitting them down intire to us in these last Times. Secondly, When it is about to be read (as the Ancients used then to wash their hands) let us cleanse our hearts from the love of sin, and come with earnest desires to learn our duty, and stedfast resolutions to practise it: And that God may help us so to do, let us say, Open thou mine eyes, that I may see the wondrous things of thy Law Psal. cxix. 180. or if there be time, say the Collect for the se­cond Sunday in Ad­vent.; and then composing our selves into a reverend posture, as if God himself were speaking to usNehem. viii. 6., let us give diligent heed to eve­ry word, that we may under­stand it, and apply it to our own souls, for vain thoughts are very pernicious now; and therefore (S. Chrysostom saith) the Deacon of old cried, Let us give good heed, for thus saith the Lord: And since he speaks, let us observe the precepts, and take en­couragement from the promises made to, and the blessings bestowed upon holy men: On the contra­ry, let us fly the things forbidden, and be warned by the threatnings and judgments against transgres­sors, so shall we truly profit by our hearing. More particularly the first Lesson out of the Old Testa­ment is either, 1. The Law (that is, the Moral part of it, which is principally read by us) which will teach us what is sin, together with the blessings of obedience, and the curses due to disobedience, expressed often in phrases relating to things tempo­ral, but we may spiritually apply them. 2. The [Page 51] History serves to confirm our faith in God's provi­dence, and comfort us in affliction, by shewing what care God hath ever taken of his servants; it warns us also against all iniquity, which the Lord ever finds out and punishes. 3. The Poetick Books give us directions to act prudently in all estates and conditions, and furnish us with excellent proofs of that great Truth, That it is the wisest thing in the world to be a good Man. 4. The Prophecies (most of which are now fulfilled) will excite us to ad­mire the foresight and the truth of God, and teach us to trust in him for that which is not yet accom­plished; and particularly, they abundantly prove that Jesus is the Messiah and Saviour of the world, and so prepare us for, The second Lesson out of the New Testament, which is either out of, 1. The Gospels, where we may see God's love to us, and the great things which Jesus did and suffered for us, whose Doctrine is the perfect Rule, and his practice the compleat Example of all Piety and Vertue; and while we admire his Meekness and Patience, his De­votion and Charity, his Zeal for God, his Love to his Disciples, and his Compassion to all Men, we must imitate him in these blessed Qualities; for God hath set him for our Example, that we might fol­low his steps. Or, 2. Out of the Epistles, where we may learn the higher mysteries of Faith, and the more peculiar duties of our Religion; these will in­struct us how holily and unblameably Christians ought to live, and how happy they are while they live so, whatsoever their outward estate be; as also what infinite glories are provided for them after this world is at an end. Thus every part of Scrip­ture may be of singular use to us, if we hear it with attention, apply it with discretion, and practise it [Page 52] with diligence: This kind of hearing will furnish us to resist all evil, and to do every good work; yea, it will give us just cause to sing those Hymns which the Church here prescribes, of which we are next to treat.

Sect. X. The Hymns, and particularly the Te Deum.

§. 1. IT is certain from holy Scripture, that the Christians were wont to sing Hymns in the Apostles times, and it is likely enough that Igna­tius might appoint they should be sung by each side of the ChoirSocrat. Eccles. Hist. l. 6. c. 8., since Pliny writing at that time to the Em­peror Trajan, reports that the Christians used then to sing ver­ses to Christ by turnsPlin. l. 10. Epist. 97., which was not much above 100 years after our Saviour: And it is probable the place of these Hymns was (as now) after the Lessons; for S. Ambrose notes, that after one Angel had publish­ed the Gospel, a multitude joyned with him in praising God: So when one Minister hath read the Gospel, all the faithful glorifie GodAmbros. de nativ. ser. 1.. And S. Augustine ob­serves, that a Psalm followed the Lesson out of the Old Te­stamentAugust. Hom. 31.: not much like [Page 53] was that Constitution of the Council of Laodicea, that a Lesson should be read, and then a Psalm sungConc. Laod. Can. 17. An. 365. & Balsam. ibid., that by this variety the people might be secured against weariness and distraction. But besides Antiquity, there is great reason for this interposition of Hymns, in respect to the great benefit we may receive from the word of God, for which we do daily praise him; and if we bless him for our meat and drink, how much more are we obliged to glorifie him for the food of our souls? As for the particular Hymns, they are (as of old in the primitive Church) generally ta­ken out of the Scripture; yet as they did also make use of some Hymns composed by inspired and extraordinary menTertul. Apol. cap. 39 Euseb. Eccles. Hist. l. 5. c. 26., so do we; and particular­ly, we retain that ancient and excellent Hymn called Te Deum, said to be compo­sed by S. Ambrose, and first sung at the Baptism of S. Augustine, though afterwards the people (as S. Ambrose himself saith) daily repeated it with great devotion and delightAmbros. Concio 1. Tom. 5. p. 404., as the excellent matter of it deserves; for it contains three Particulars: First, An act of Praise offered to God by us, [We praise thee, &c.] and by all creatures, as well in earth, [All the earth, &c.] as in heaven, and particularly the Angels, [To thee all Angels, &c.] and the Saints which are there, [The glorious Company of the Apostles, &c.] joyn with us.

Secondly, A Confession of Faith, declaring 1. The general consent unto it, [The holy Church, &c.] 2ly, The particulars of it, viz. concerning every [Page 54] Person in the Trinity, the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, [The Father of an infinite, &c.] And more largely concerning the Son, as to his Divini­ty, [Thou art the King of glory, &c.] His Hu­manity, and particularly his Incarnation, [when thou tookest upon thee, &c.] His Death, [when thou hadst overcome, &c.] His present glory, [Thou sittest at, &c.] His return to judgment, [we believe that thou shalt come, &c.]

Thirdly, A Supplication grounded upon it, 1. For all his people, that they may be preserved here, and saved hereafter, [we therefore pray thee help thy servants, &c.] 2. For our selves, who daily praise him, [Day by day we magnifie thee, &c.] that we may be kept from future sin, [vouchsafe, O Lord, to keep, &c.] and pardoned for what is past, [O Lord, have mercy, &c.] because we trust in him, [O Lord, in thee have I trusted, &c.]

§. 2. Having heard the holy Precepts and useful Examples, the comfortable Promises and just Threatnings contained in the first Lesson, we begin this Hymn with acts of praise to the Author of this holy Book, saying, [We praise thee, O God,] and to shew we will be not only hearers, but also doers of his Word, [we acknowledge] him to be the [Lord] of us and all the world, who is served and praised both in heaven and earth; [All] the inhabitants of the [earth] ever did, and now do [worship this everlasting Father,] who gave be­ing to every generation: Yea, all the Orders of [Angels, Cherubins and Seraphins] with all the [Heavenly powers,] do loudly proclaim, and sweetly sing his praise, in that mysterious Hymn, [Page 55] Holy Father, Holy Son, Holy Spirit, the whole [heaven and earth is full] of the testimonies of thy [glory] and MajestyIsai. vi. 3.; and all the glorified Saints joyn in this Celestial Musick, [The] now glorious Company of the [Apostles] who saw the accomplishment of his Promises, the good­ly Fellowship of the [Prophets,] who believed and foretold those Mercies, and the noble Army of [Martyrs,] who sealed the truth of this Faith with their blood, all these behold his glory, and make up the harmony of this heavenly Choir, to which we desire to unite our praises in magnify­ing our most glorious and universal King. And though we cannot behold our God face to face, as they do, yet we see his glory by Faith, and are Members of that [Holy] Catholick [Church] which in all ages and places hath [acknowledged] the ever blessed [Trinity,] which we now con­fess, declaring, we believe in God [the Father] whose [Majesty] is infinite, in God the [Son,] the only begotten of his Father, whose honour is eternal, and in God the [Holy Ghost] the [Com­forter] and Sanctifier of all true Believers; but more especially we confess the glories of the blessed Jesus, who hath done so many and so great things for us, we acknowledge his Divinity, and that he is that [King of Glory] Psalm xxiv. 7, 10. whom the Angels do adore; That only [Son] of the Father, who was begotten from [everlasting,] and is very God: We confess his Humanity, and remember with joy and thanksgiving, that when he under­took to save and [deliver man,] he disdained not to partake of our flesh and blood, and was content [Page 56] to be conceived in the blessed [Virgins womb] on purpose to make himself capable of dying for us; and being thus both God and Man, he submit­ted to the cruel death of the Cross, and by dying thus for us, he [overcame] death, and took away [the sharpness] of its sting1 Cor. xv. 57., so that [all Believers] are now capable of entring into the [Kingdom of heaven,] and shall not dye e­ternally, because our mighty Redeemer, as a glo­rious Conqueror, [sitteth at the right hand] of his [Father,] having all power given unto him both in heaven and earth: And at the end of the world [we believe] he shall [come] from thence with innumerable Saints and Angels to be the [Iudge] of us and of all MankindActs xvii. 31.. Wherefore, since our Redeem­er is to be our Judge, we apply our selves by [Prayer] to be­seech himJob ix. 15. to [help] us and all his [servants,] whom we hope he will not forget, because he hath [redeemed us] with his most [precious blood.] Blessed Jesus! who art appointed to pass the final Sentence upon all, be pleased [to] reckon us [among the number] of thy [Saints] Wisdom v. 5., that we may have our part in that [glory] which is [everlasting;] And in the mean time do thou even in this world, [save thy people] from all evil, and [bless] those whom thou hast chosen for thine [he­ritage] with all good thingsPsalm xxviii. ult. vulg. Lat.. Thou art their King, and there­fore be pleased [to govern them] by thy Laws, and [lift them up] by thy [Page 57] Providence above the reach of their malicious foes, which [evermore] pursue them with deadly hatred. And for our own selves, we have a peculiar Title to thy protection, because we are thy constant ser­vants, [Day after day] we meet in thy house to [magnifie] thee with Hymns, and to [worship] thee with our PrayersPsal. cxlv. 2., and will do so every day we live; keep us therefore by thy grace, that we may not contradict our Morning Devotions, by committing [sin] and living wickedly in the re­maining part of this day; and do thou not only preserve us from running into more offences, but forgive us all those we are already guilty of, [Have mercy upon us] for they are many; and again we cry, [have mercy] upon us, for they are greatMatth. 20.30, 31.: Let thy [mercy] be evidently shewed upon us, not for any merit in us, but because our only [trust] is in [thee] Psal. xxxiii. 22., and doubtless thou wilt not leave [us to be confounded] Psal. xxxi. 1. by the failing of these our hopes, which rely intirely upon thy never failing mercy: Amen.

Sect. XI. Of the Benedicite.

§. 1. THe Song] of the [three Children] is sometimes used instead of this after the first Lesson, which though it be not Canonical Scripture, yet it is an exact Paraphrase on the cxlviii. Psalm, and so like thereto in words and sense, that whoever despiseth this, reproacheth that part of the sacred Canon. Besides, the Hymn it self is of great Antiquity, being used, as S. Augustine affirms, in his time, on the solemn Festi­vals of the Church; and when some negligent Priests in Spain did omit it, An. 681. the fourth Council of Toledo ordains, That this Hymn of the three Chil­dren, in which every Creature of Heaven and Earth praiseth God, and which the Catholick Church, dispersed through the World, celebrates, shall hereafter be sung in the Divine Service daily, in all the Churches of Spain and France, and the Priests who omit this anci­ent custom shall be excommunicated Concil. 4. Toletan. Can. 13. vel 14.. As for the matter of it, it is an elegant summons to all Gods Works to praise him, like that of David, Psal. cxlviii. intimating that they all set out his glory, and invite us who have the bene­fit of them, to praise and magnifie his Name for them. The Method is curious and exact, begin­ning with the whole Creation, even [all the works of the Lord] and then particularizing the Highest heavens with the [Angels and powers] [Page 59] therein, the Celestial Orbs also with the [Sun, Moon and Stars,] the Aiery Heaven, with all the changes wonderfully wrought there, and the seasons of the year which have their divers influen­ces thereon, [Showrs and dew, winds, fire, heat, winter and summer, frosts and cold, ice and snow, nights and days, light and darkness, lightning and clouds:] Thence it descends to the [Earth] and its more eminent parts, viz. [Mountains and Hills,] with its productions of plants and every [green thing,] proceeding to the waters of all kinds, [Wells, Seas and Flouds:] And so on to living Creatures, [Whales and all Fishes, Fowls] of the air, and [Beasts] of the Earth, and especially the [Sons of Men,] and among them it more parti­cularly invites Gods own [People, Priests and Servants,] both in this and the other World, to joyn with these three Children (to whom so great and wonderful a deliverance was given) in praising and magnifying God for ever. So that when we would glorifie God for his Works, which is one main duty and end of the Lords day, or when the Lesson treats of the Creation, or any wonderful act of Gods Providence, then it is very proper to use this Hymn.

Sect. XII. Of the Benedictus.

§. 1. WHen the Gospel was first published to the World, the Angels sung praise, and all holy Men to whom it was revealed, enter­tained these [Good tidings] with great joy; And since it is our duty also, whenever we hear this Go­spel read, to give glory to God, therefore the Church appoints this Hymn, which was composed by holy Zachary upon the first notice that God had sent a Saviour to Mankind, and is one of the first Evangelical Hymns indited by Gods Spirit upon this occasion, so that the Original of it is Divine, the matter unexceptionable, and the fitness for this place unquestionable; only that we may say it with holy Zachary's devotion, we shall give this brief ac­count of the particulars whereof it consists. The parts of it are two, viz. First, An Act of Praise for our Redemption, with respect, 1. To the na­ture of it, as it declares Gods Infinite Mercy, Luke i. 68. [Blessed be the Lord God, &c.] his Mighty Power, vers. 69. and his never-failing Truth since it is according to his holy Word, vers. 70, 71. his gracious promise, vers. 73. and his inviolable Oath, vers. 73. 2ly, With respect to the end of our re­demption, viz. Our freedom from Sin, vers. 74. and our liberty to serve God, vers. 75. Secondly here is an Act of praise for the Promulgation of the Gospel, shewing 1. the instrument by whom it was first done, and his office, vers. 76. and duty, [Page 61] vers. 77. 2ly, The motives inciting God thereto, viz. His own mercy, vers. 78. and our Misery, vers. 79.

§. 2. As soon as ever holy Zachary's tongue was loosed, he stays not to rejoyce in his own Perso­nal Mercy, but perceiving God had now sent Sal­vation to the World, his inward joy breaks out into this Hymn of praise, [Blessed be the Lord God of Israel,] who as he first looked down on the affliction of his people of old in Egypt Exod. iii. 16., and then de­livered them from thence; So now he hath in a more emminent manner by his own Sons coming down from heaven [visited] mankind, and [redeemed] them from the bondage of Sin and Sathan. It was he alone [raised] up this Deli­verer, and it was a [mighty] and noble Salvati­on indeed; since our Redeemer was very God, though (that he might dye for us) he was pleased to become man, and to be born of the Royal fami­ly of David: Wherein we now see a glorious instance of Gods truth; For Christ being now sprung from the lineage of David, confirms all that was pro­phesied of him, promised & sworn concerning him so many hundred years before; This is according [as he spake] by his holy Prophets from the be­ginning of the World, who all, as it were with one [mouth,] prophesied of this Messiah. This is the [performance] of that sweet promise made to the Patriarchs, who upon the hopes of this Sal­vation entred into Covenant with God; This is the fulfilling of that [Oath] which he [Sware to Abraham] the Father of the faithfull, that he would give us one of his Seed, in whom all the Na­tions [Page 62] of the World should be blessed. Nor is his truth more evident in sending this Saviour, than his ends are gracious for which he sent him: For whereas we were loaden with the guilt of past Sins, and lyable to be overcome and drawn into more of­fences for the future, as also unable vigorously and with hope to serve God, he sent him to pur­chase our pardon, to conquer our Enemies, and procure grace for us; [that we being thus de­livered] from the guilt and power of Sin and Sa­than, [might] be at liberty [to serve God] cheerfully and sincerely [in holiness and righte­ousnes] all our days, and not doubt of everlasting glory at the end of our lives. Oh what praises are sufficient for these things! But further, next to his goodness in sending this Salvation, we must own his favour in proclaiming it so early and so ful­ly to all the World, in order to which he sent John the Baptist to be the last [Prophet] of his coming, even to be the immediate Harbinger of Jesus, to go [before the face] of our Lord, and to make the [way] ready for him, by preaching unto all Men to repent; and to encourage us so to do, that Blessed S. John of old, and the History of the Gospel now do [give knowledge] unto all Gods pople, that there is now [Salvation] to be had by Christ [through the remission of their Sins:] Which infinite blessing we had ne­ver obtained but [through] those bowels of [ten­der mercy in our God] which moved him to pi­ty us in our perishing condition, and to send his dear Son, who now breaks forth like [the day­spring] from Heaven, and makes a gracious [vi­sit] to us miserable Sinners who [sat in darkness and the shadow of Death,] liable to eternal con­demnation, [Page 63] out of which he shews us the way to escape, and by these precepts of his Holy Gospel doth [guide our feet into] that Holy [way] which gives us true peace here, and will bring us to everlasting [Peace] hereafter. [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

Sect. XIII. Of the Jubilate, or the C. Psalm.

§. 1. AT other times we use (after the second Lesson) another Divine Hymn taken out of the Old Testament, but wholly respecting the Evangelical state then revealed to Holy David. The Title it bears is, A Psalm of Praise, and it was first composed for a form of publick Thanks­givingMollerus in loc. to be sung by course, at the oblation of the Peace-offeringHammond in Psal. 100., and so may well be used by us after we have heard the Gospel of Peace, after which it seems to have been sung about the year 450. for Petrus Chrysolo­gus expounds it immediately after the GospelChrysolog. ser. 6. pag. 14.. And indeed the subject mat­ter of this Psalm shews it is very proper for this place, for it contains a double Exhortation to Praise God, with two sorts of motives thereunto. The First Exhorta­tion implies, who are the persons obliged to this duty, viz. [all the world,] Psal. c. vers. 1. and [Page 64] also how and where it must be done, viz. with joy and Hymns of praise when we meet in his house, vers. 1. And the motives to it are taken from his Divine Nature, and his wonderfull works of crea­ting and providing for us, vers. 2. The Second Exhor­tation intimates also, where and how we must make our acknowledgments, viz in his house, with Songs of Thanksgiving, vers. 3. And the new mo­tives to it are taken from his great goodness, his endless mercy, and his never-failing Truth, vers. 4.

§. 2. When David foresaw by the Spirit of God, how the joyfull tidings of this Gospel, which we have now heard, was to be preached over all the World, he strives to excite them to all possible gra­titude, saying [O be joyfull] with a holy kind of Rejoycing [in the Lord, all] ye Countries of the Earth, where the sound of this Gospel comes; you hear there is mercy for you, so that now you may mingle frequent Hymns among your Devoti­ons, [and serve the Lord with gladness,] you may come to the place of his solemn Worship cheer­fully; and though you are then to remember you are [before his presence,] yet you ought to sing Psalms of praise there: His very essential Excellen­cy deserves this, for you do believe and are [sure] that this [Lord is our God,] and his wonderfull works command all thankfulness from us; He gave us our life and being, [He made us] out of no­thing, we did not make our [selves;] And he provides graciously for both our Souls and Bodies, taking upon him to be our Shepheard, and feeding us inwardly with his word, and outwardly with all Earthly blessings, as his own [People and the sheep of his Pasture:] Wherefore since these [Page 65] mercies are so universal, do not content yourselves with single and secret praisesIngratus est qui remotis arbitris gratias agit. Senec. de benef. l. 2. c. 23., but [Go your ways] to the [Gates] of his house with your Sacrifices of [thanksgiving] and at the Church among your Brethren offer up your [Praises] in a solemn Man­ner, let all the World see that you are [thankfull to him,] and hear that you [speak good] of his most glorious [Name:] He deserves this from all Men, but more especially from us Christians, who by what we hear in this Gospel are daily assured, that [the Lord is gracious] in his nature and apt to give the greatest blessings to us; that [his mercy is e­verlasting,] and inclines him to forgive our many and grievous transgressions against him, and that [his truth] never fails, but whatever he pro­mises, he certainly performs from one [generati­on] to another; wherefore let us devoutly praise this God, and say, [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

Sect. XIV. Of the Magnificat.

§. 1. AS soon as the blessed Virgin was filled with the Holy Ghost she endited this Divine Canticle, which is the very first Hymn recorded in the New Testament, and may be reckoned the first-fruits of the Spirit, and therefore it hath been [Page 66] anciently used among the Christians, and is receiv­ed at this day into the Service of all the Reformed Churches of Holland and Germany, as well as re­tained in ours, where it is placed very fitly after the First Lesson at Evening Prayer, in which is u­sually set forth those Acts of Gods gracious Provi­dence over the pious, and those Prophecies and Promises of a Saviour to come, which this Hymn doth praise the Lord for: The Blessed Virgin then experienced Gods goodness to his Servants, and saw the accomplishment of all his promises, and in this form she expressed her joy and gratitude; and when we hear in the Lesson like examples of his Mercy, and are told of those Prophecies and Promises which are now fulfilled in Christs birth, we may be ex­pected to rejoyce with her in the same words.

The Hymn it self contains, First, a general Thanksgiving to God, Luke i. 46, 47. [my Soul doth magnifie, &c.] Secondly, the reasons thereof, which are three, 1st, His peculiar Favour to the blessed Virgin, in taking her from so low an estate, and advancing her to so high an Honour, vers. 48, 49. 2ly, His General Providence over all, which appears by his Mercy to the pious, and his Justice on the the proud, vers. 50, 51. as also by his raising the lowly, and casting down the arrogant, vers. 52, 53. 3ly, His extraordinary grace in our Redemption, wherein is manifested his infinite Mercy, vers. 54. and the truth of his promises, vers. 55.

§. 2. Luke I. 46, 47. When God had chosen blessed Mary to be the instrument of the greatest blessing that ever the world had, she declared by the fruit of her lips, as well as by the fruit of her womb, that she was full of the Holy Ghost; and [Page 67] she here expresses so much love and gratitude, hu­mility and devotion, that it appears she was full of Grace, as well as highly fa­vouredLuke i. 28. [...], Vulg. & Bez.; and if we repeat it with the same affections, and be as truly thankful for the ful­filling of Gods promises, as she was, we may be said also to conceive Christ in our hearts by Faith, since he hath told usMatth. xii. 50., They who do the will of God, are e­steemed by him as his Brethren, Sisters, and Mother. The Lesson hath shewed us Examples of the Divine Mercy to the pious and humble, and of his Vengeance on the proud and ar­rogant: We know the Prophecies and Promises now read unto us are all fulfilled in Christ, and there­fore the blessed Virgin seems to say to us, O praise the Lord with me, and let us magnifie his Name to­gether: We cannot indeed make him greater than he is, but when we publish his real magnificence, and rejoyce in the greatness of our Salvation, who have [God] himself to be [our Saviour] then we are said to [magnifie the Lord;] and let us not do this with our lips only, but let us meditate so long of his inexpressible loving-kindness, till [our souls] do magnifie the [Lord] and [our Spirit] within us re­joyceth in God our Saviour.

Vers. 48, 49. The blessed Virgin excited her self to this devout acknowledgment by considering the meanness of her Condition, being a poor obscure Maid, till God [regarded the lowliness] of her that never aimed any higher than to be reputed a­mong the meanest of his servants, and called by the name of [his handmaid;] but because her mind was as low as her estate, he that gives grace to the [Page 68] humble, chose her to be the Mother of the worlds Saviour and his own Son, so that [all generati­ons] shall for ever from [henceforth] account and [call her blessed] above all other women; but she did not ascribe this peculiar favour to any merit of her own, but confesseth it was the free grace of [the mighty God] which did thus [magnifie] her, and therefore she gives him the praise, decla­ring that [his Name is holy] and to be hallow­ed and adored by all mankind who receive the bene­fit of this mercy; nor doth she desire us to worship her, as Papists impiously do, but to give him the Glory.

Vers. 50, 51, 52, 53. And indeed he justly de­serves it, not only on the account of this particular favour to her, but also for his universal goodness. For holy Scripture records, and the History of all Ages testifie that [his mercy] is vastly large, and endures for ever, reaching unto all [that fear him,] and continuing upon them and their poste­rity [throughout all generations:] And as for his proud and haughty enemies, who expect to en­joy the highest honours and dignities, [he shews the strength of his arm] in pulling them down, and scattering these [proud] wretches, to let all the world see how vain [the imaginations of their hearts] were. Blessed be his wise and just Provi­dence, he always [puts down] the wicked, though never so wise and [mighty,] from those [seats] and thrones on which their pride had mounted them, and [exalts] into their places [the humble and meek] whom the world despises, and who least expected such honour, and these are the most thankful for it: The poor [hungry] souls that long­ed for the least of his favours, it is his Custome [to [Page 69] fill] with [all good things,] and those who had a­bundance, and thought themselves [rich] and most considerable, these he despises, and [sends empty away] without any spiritual graces or eminent tokens of his love.

Vers. 54, 55. But the most illustrious testimony of this wise and gracious Providence is seen in Gods sending his dear Son into the world to save sinners: [Israel] was the least of all people, yet [God remembring what mercy] he had ever had for that Nation, caused Jesus [to be born] among them for the salvation of all people; wherein as he expressed his infinite goodness, so he manifest­ed his never failing [Truth,] for this is the fulfil­ling of all his prophecies and [promises] made to [our Forefathers,] and peculiarly to [Abra­ham,] to whom he gave many assurances that he would from his loins raise [up] a Saviour to re­deem all Mankind, and to bring deliverance [to] all the faithful, even [to his Seed for ever,] for which let us now most devoutly sing, [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

Sect. XV. Of the XCVIII. Psalm.

§. 1. INstead of the Magnificat made by the most excellent of the Daughters of David, we sometimes use a Psalm of David's own composing, out of which, part of the Magnificat was taken, viz. [Page 70] Luke i. 54. He hath remembred his mercy and truth to­ward the house of Israel: which is the fourth verse of this Psalm, and as there the strength of Gods arm is celebrated, so is the power of his holy arm magnified here also, vers. 2. And indeed there is a great si­militude between them, only this seems more pro­per when the Evening first Lesson mentions some great and eminent deliverance of Gods people, for it contains a two-fold Exhortation to praise God: The former requiring that we give him new praises, 1. for his marvellous works, vers. 1. 2ly, for his mighty power, vers. 2. 3ly, for his illustrious glo­ry, vers. 3. 4ly, for his infinite mercy toward his own people, and all the world besides, vers. 4. The latter Exhortation invites all people to bless God for his righteous judgment, vers. 5. shewing, first, in what manner it must be done, viz. by Vocal and Instrumental Musick, vers. 6, 7. 2ly, In what places, viz. all the world over, vers. 8, 9. 3ly, For what reason, because of the certainty and the equity of his judging all sorts of men, vers. 10.

§. 2. The Fathers observe, that every Psalm which mentions A new Song, as this doth, belongs to the times of the Gospel: The Lesson daily pre­sents us with New wonders of Gods Wisdom, Pow­er, and Mercy, and if we seriously hearken to them, and ruminate on them, they will fill us with a New devotion, and make it every day a New Song. The pages of Scripture, and the records of Provi­dence, are full of the [marvellous things] he doth done; his [right hand] is so mighty, that it conquers all that oppose him; yet [his arm] is so [holy,] that it is stretched out against none but the wicked, and he alone, without any human [Page 71] aids, can easily subdue them; yea, he doth so of­ten, and so eminently deliver his People from their power and malice, that [the very Heathen] World hath taken notice of his Justice in this kind. And this help which he gives [to Israel] (that is, to his own People) shews both his Mercy and his Truth; [his Mercy] moved him to promise them [his Salvation and] defence; [his truth] obliges him to perform that promise: And this hath often been made good in Temporal deli­verances; but never so eminently as when the re­membrance of his Mercy and Truth moved him to send his own dear Son to redeem all the true Israel of God; [for all the corners] of [the World] either saw, or heard of this great [Salvation:] Wherefore since all Mankind are either sharers in these Acts of his Power and Mercy, or witnes­ses of them, let them all give publick Testimony of their gratitude; [Let] the people of [all Lands] (especially where the Gospel is preached now) come and [shew themselves joyfull] in Gods house, by Hymns and Psalms of Joy and Thanksgiving, yea, let there be used both Voices and Instruments of Music of all sorts, not only to express, but excite a holy joy in us, when we are before the [Lord the King] of Heaven and Earth: Let the very inanimate Creatures, The Sea and all in it, the World and its whole furniture, the low­ly Floods and lofty Hills (the Scenes on which are Acted these wonders of Power and Mercy) let them joyn in setting out his Praise: However, let all People that remain either at Sea or on the Land, all that dwell in Valleys or on Hills, high and low, rich and poor, as they all in every part of the World, and in all conditions, do behold the evi­dences [Page 72] of God's goodness, let them all set forth his Praise: They may see by many temporal acts of his righteous Judgment, that he will right his faith­full servants, and every eminent Deliverance of this kind is a pledge [that he] is coming very shortly [to judge all the World,] and especially his [people in righteousness;] and then all their wrongs shall be righted, and all their enemies for ever destroyed; wherefore both for the mercies present, and those to come, let every good Man daily sing, [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

Sect. XVI. Of the Nunc dimittis.

§. 1. AFter the second Evening Lesson out of the Epistles of the holy Apostles, this Hymn is most commonly used; The Author of it is sup­posed to be that Holy Doctor whom the Jews call Simeon the just, son of the famous Rabbi Hillel, A Man of eminent integrity, and one who opposed the then common opinion of the Messiahs temporal KingdomScultet. exerc. e­vang. l. 1. c. 61.. The Occasion of composing it was his meeting Christ in the Temple when he came to be offered there, where­in God fulfilled his promise to him, that he should not dye till he had seen the Messiah; Taking Jesus therefore in his Arms, inspired with joy and the holy Ghost, he sang this Nunc dimittis; And though [Page 73] we cannot see our Saviour with our bodily eyes as he did, yet he is by the writings of the Apostles daily presented to the eyes of our Faith, and if we were as much concerned for Heaven, and as loose from the love of this World as old Simeon was, and as we ought to be, we might upon the view of Christ in his holy Word by Faith, be daily ready to sing this Hymn; which was endited by the Spirit, recorded in Holy Writ, and is adopted into the Publick Service of all Christian Churches, Greek and Latin, Reformed and Roman, and used to be sung in extraordinary by divers Saints and Mar­tyrs a little before their DeathWolfij Lect. me­morab. Tom. 1. p. 323.. It contains First, an high expression of his joy, which was so great as not to desire any greater happiness in this World, Luke ii. vers. 29. 2ly, The reason thereof, with respect to himself, he had seen the Worlds Saviour, vers. 30. and to others, because he was like to be known by all Men, vers. 31. and beneficial to all both Jews and Gen­tiles, vers. 32.

§. 2. Whosoever loves Heaven better than Earth, and desires to live to no other end than the setting forth Gods glory, and securing his own Salvation, He upon hearing the mercies revealed, and promi­sed in the Holy Epistles, may embrace Jesus by Faith, and say, I have all I can wish for here, and [if the Lord] will now dismiss me so as [I may] dye, and [depart in peace,] and in his Favour, I can be well content to leave this earthly Prison; for [mine eye] of Faith hath seen, and mine ears have now heard of [his Salvation] by Jesus Christ our Redeemer, who was designed by his Heavenly Father to bring us to everlasting glory, [Page 74] and therefore God did manifest him in the Flesh, and by writing his holy Word, declares this good News [before the face of all people:] This is that Sun of Righteousness who did arise to be [a Light] to guide [the Gentiles] and unconverted Heathens to eternal happiness, and [to be the glo­ry] and honour of all true believers, who by his Mercy and grace are made eminent in lovely vir­tues here, and most resplendent in eternal glory hereafter; for which infinite Mercy we do most devoutly give thanks saying, [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

Sect. XVII. Of the LXVII. Psalm.

§. 1. THe Parallel to the former Evangelical Hymn is this Psalm of David, who prayed for that [saving health,] which old Simeon rejoyced to seeVulg. Lat. Saluta­re tuum, Psalm lxvii. 2. & Luke ii. 30., and both of them praised God upon the foresight they had, that it would be [made known] to us, and to all People, as it is this day by the Voices of the Apostles. Since David endited this Psalm for a Form of Prayer, for the sending this Salvation, and of Praises to God, to be used by those who should see it accomplished, it cannot but be very suteable for our use, after we have heard out of the Epistles, how this Salvation appeared to us, and [Page 75] to all men: For there is in it, First, a Prayer for the Mercy and Grace that comes by Jesus Christ, Psal. lxvii. ver. 1. with the motive to enforce it, ta­ken from the universal benefit which mankind will have by the knowledge thereof, vers. 2. Secondly, A double Exhortation for all People to praise God: The first Exhortation being contained in vers. 3. and the reason thereof from the worlds happiness under his government, vers. 4. The same Exhorta­tion is renewed, vers. 5. and as a Motive to it, there are set forth the benefits of this gratitude, viz. Plenty, Prosperity, and increase of Piety, vers. 6, 7.

§. 2. The Saints before the Gospel earnestly prayed for the coming of Christ, as the greatest mercy and the chiefest blessing: they longed to see his face shine upon them in that personal visit he in­tended to make in his Incarnation, to the end that God might be glorified in all places, and through­out all Ages, upon the publishing and preaching this good News. And now Christ is come, and preached among us by his Apostles (whose words we have just now heard) we may also pray for the blessed effects of Christs coming, even that for his sake [God will now be merciful] to us, [bless] us, and shew his favour, and grant forgiveness to us his people, and this will encourage many to become Christians, so that his [Salvation may be known over all the earth,] and all the Hea­then world may come to see it, as well as we: For our parts, we cannot sufficiently praise God for it our selves, and therefore we wish, [That all the people] of the earth might be converted and [praise God,] that [all Nations] might [rejoyce in him.] Oh happy were it for all Mankind if they were [Page 76] Christians, and under his Kingdom; his Laws are so gentle, his Government so righteous and so desi­rable, that all his own people, who have the ex­perience of it, do love and praise him: Where­fore we passionately again wish, that not only Gods own people, that are now converted, but [all the people] of the world may joyn in his [praise]: For such an universal gratitude would move God to bless us, and engage us still more and more to fear him, and [then the earth] would produce all [plenty, and God] who is [our own God] would [bless us] with such eminent prosperity, that all the Nations who heard of it, would be invited to [fear him] and to serve so good a Master; our thankful­ness multiplies his blessings, and they engage us and all men to love him, and serve him more affectio­nately; wherefore for all his spiritual and tempo­ral blessings, let us sing, [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

Sect. XVIII. Of the Apostles Creed.

§. 1. THough the Scripture be a perfect revelation of all Divine Truth necessary to Salva­tion, yet the Fundamental Articles of our Faith are so dispersed there, that it was fit and necessary for the Apostles to collect out of those sacred Wri­tings, one plain and short Summary of the Funda­mental Doctrines, which might be easily learned, [Page 77] understood, and remembred by all Christians, and this is called The Apostles Creed; because it was Composed by the Apostles themselves, which may be proved, First, by Scripture, where we read of A Form of Doctrine Rom. vi. 17., a form of sound words 2 Tim. i. 13., A RuleGalat. vi. 16., A Depositum committed to the Bishops trust1 Tim. vi. 20., and of the Faith once delivered to the Saints Jude, vers. 3. which the best Expositors, both ancient and modern, do understand of the Creed. Secondly, we may prove that the Apostles made this Form, by Authority, that is, by the con­current testimony of the Church in all Ages, which is the best way we have to prove who were the Au­thors of the several Books of Scripture. We might here produce the Testimonies of Irenaeus, Origen, Tertullian, S. Ambrose, S. Augustine, S. Hierom, Ruffinus, and many others, to shew, that the twelve Apostles made this Creed; but that of Sixtus Senensis may serve at present, who saith, All the Orthodox Fathers affirm that this Creed was composed by the Apostles themselves Sixt. Sen. Biblioth. l. 2. verb. Apostolus.; which hath prevailed not only with the Romanists, but with Luther, Calvin, Beza, Peter Martyr, and the most learned and judicious Pro­testants to receive this Creed, as being made and delivered by the Apostles. Thirdly, We may prove it also by Reason: for, first, It is certain in the very first Ages there was a Creed taught to the new converted Christians, which they were to re­peat at their Baptism, and the very words then spo­ken are yet upon Record in many Fathers, and are the same with this Creed. Secondly, We can shew [Page 78] what Council or what Father made all other Creeds, but no Council or Father can be produced as Au­thors of this, which therefore must needs descend from the Apostles. Thirdly, We are sure there was a Creed in the Church from the beginning, be­fore any Heretick arose, and this is that Creed, be­cause it is the shortest and plainest of all others, which are but so many Paraphrases upon this which is the Original of all the rest. But some may ob­ject, first, If the Apostles made it, 'tis a wonder they did not write it down in Scripture. Answ. I reply, many other things, as the Sunday-Sabbath and Infant-Baptism were not written, but convey­ed by Tradition, and of all other things this Creed was not fit to be written while the Heathens go­verned the world, because this was the secret and mystery of Christianity, the watchword, that no Enemy ought to know; and when they taught it to new Converts, they obliged them never to reveal it to the Heathens, for fear they should profane and deride it, for which cause they saw not fit to com­mit it to writing till persecution was ceased. Se­condly, It is objected, If the ancient Councils had known of this Creed, they would not have made new ones. Answ. We reply, those Councils do declare they did not make any new Creed, only more largely expounded such Articles of the Apo­stles Creed as the Hereticks disputed against, leaving still that of the Apostles as the Foundation. Third­ly, If this be the genuine composure of the Apo­stles, then it would be of equal Authority with the holy Scripture. I answer, The Creed and the Scripture are but the same Doctrine divers ways delivered, in writing there, and hereby Oral Tra­dition; yet since the latter way in which the Creed [Page 79] was delivered, is more liable to alteration and mi­stake than writing is; therefore we confirm every Article of it by Scripture, and shew by its consent therewith, that it was never altered; and therefore to us it is of equal authority with the Scripture, be­cause it is the same thing in a Compendium, and dif­fers only in form, not in sense. Having thus pro­ved this venerable Creed to proceed from such bles­sed Authors, I shall, first, shew the parts of it; se­condly, give a reason of its place and daily use in our Liturgy; thirdly, direct how to repeat it with profit.

§. 2. [The Apostles Creed] is a declaration of what we believe concerning God and concerning our selves. First concerning God; we believe, 1. In general, that there is a God, and but one God, Art. I. [I believe in God.] 2. That this one God is distinguished into three Persons; first the Father, described by his Nature and Works, [the Father Almighty, maker, &c.] Secondly the Son, described by his Name, his Office and Di­vine Nature, Art. II. [And in Iesus Christ his only, &c.] By his Incarnation and Human Nature, Art. III. [who was conceived, &c.] And by his Works for our Redemption, viz. his Passion, Art. IV. [suffered under Pontius, &c.] his Resur­rection, Art. V. [the third day, &c.] his Ascen­sion to glory, Art. VI. [he ascended, &c.] his re­turn to judgment, Art. VII. [From thence he shall come, &c.] Thirdly the holy Ghost, described by his Name and Office, Art. VIII. [I believe in the, &c.]

The second part of the Creed is what we believe concerning our selves, viz. First, That we are Mem­bers [Page 80] of a holy Society, called the Church, Art. IX. [The holy Catholick, &c.] Secondly, That we have many Priviledges thereby, 1. Mutually, [The Communion of Saints:] 2ly, Severally, we have priviledges, here, remission of sin, Art. X. [The forgiveness, &c.] and hereafter, 1. Resur­rection, Art. XI. [The resurrection of, &c.] 2. Eternal Life, Art. XII. [And the life ever­lasting, Amen.]

§. 3. The place of the Creed in our Liturgy is, First, immediately after the Lessons of Holy Scrip­ture out of which it is taken; and since Faith comes by hearing Gods word, and the Gospel doth not profit without Faith, therefore it is very fit upon hearing thereof we should exercise and profess our Faith. Secondly, The Creed is placed just before the Prayers, as being the foundation of our Petitions; we cannot call on him, on whom we have not be­lieved, Rom. x. 14. and since we are to pray to God the Father in the name of the Son, by the assistance of the Spirit for remission of Sins, and a joyfull re­surrection, we ought first to declare, that we be­lieve in God the Father, the Son and the Holy Ghost, and that there is remission here and resurrection hereafter to be had for all true Members of the Ca­tholick Church, and then we may be said to pray in Faith. And hence S. Ambrose and S. Augustine advise Christians to say it daily in their private De­votions, and so our old Saxon Councils command all to learn and use it not as a Prayer (as some ig­norantly or maliciously object) but as a ground for our Prayers, and a reason for our Faith and hope of their acceptance: Upon which account also, as soon as Persecution ceased, and there was no [Page 81] danger of the Heathens over-hearing it, the Creed was used in the Publick Service. And there are many benefits which we may receive by this Daily use of it; for, 1st, This fixes it firmly in our me­mories, that we may never forget this blessed rule of our Prayers, nor be at any time without this necessary Touchstone to try all Doctrines by. 2ly, Thus we daily renew our profession of fidelity to Almighty God, and repeat that Watchword which was given us when we were first listed under Christs Banner, declaring thereby that we retain our alle­giance to him and remain his faithful servants and souldiers, and no doubt that will move him the sooner to hear the prayers we are now making to him for his aid. 3ly, By this we declare our unity a­mongst our selves, and shew our selves to be members of that Holy Catholick Church, by and for which these Common Prayers are made; those who hold this one Faith, and those only, have a right to pray thus; nor can any other expect to be ad­mitted to joyn in them; and therefore this Creed is the Symbol and badge to manifest who are fit to make these Prayers, and receive the benefit of them. Wherefore in our daily use of this sacred Form, let us observe these Rules: 1st, To be heartily thank­full to God for revealing these Divine, mysterious and saving Truths to us; and though the Glory be to the Father, &c. be only set at the end of Athanasi­us's Creed, yet the duty of thanksgiving must be performed upon every repetition of this Creed also. 2ly, We must give our positive and particular as­sent to every Article as we go along, and receive it as an infallible Oracle from the Mouth of God, and for this reason we must repeat it with an Audi­ble Voice after the Minister, and in our Mind an­nex [Page 82] that word [I believe.] to every particular Article; for though it be but once expressed in the beginning, yet it must be supplyed, and is understood in every Article: and to shew our con­sent the more evidently, we must stand up when we repeat it, and resolve to stand up stoutly in de­fence thereof, so as if need were, to defend it, or seal the truth of it with our blood. 3ly, We must devoutly apply every Article, as we go along, to be both a ground for our Prayers, and a guide to our lives; for if we rightly believe the Power of the Father, the Love of the Son, and the Grace of the Holy Ghost, it will encourage us (who are Members of the Catholick Church) to pray hearti­ly for all Spiritual and Temporal blessings, and give us very lively hopes of obtaining all our re­quests. Again, since these Holy Principles were not revealed and selected out from all other Truths, for any other end but to make us live more Holily; therefore we must consider, How it is fit that Man should live, who believes God the Father is his Creator, God the Son his Redeemer, and God the holy Ghost his Sanctifier; who believes he is a Member of that Catholick Church, wherein there is a communion of Saints, and remission for Sins, and shall be a resurrection of the Body, and a life everlasting afterwards. No man is so ignorant, but he can tell what manner of persons they ought to be who believe this, and it is evident that who­ever firmly and fully believes all this, his Faith will certainly and necessarily produce a holy life. But for your better assistance, we will, by a brief Paraphrase, shew how this Application may be made.

[Page 83]§. 4. Art. 1. [I believe in] one infinite and eter­nal [God,] a pure and invisible Spirit, distin­guished into three Persons, the first of which is [the Father Almighty,] and the [Maker of] me and all Creatures in [Heaven and Earth,] as well as the Preserver of all things.

Application.] Wherefore I am obliged to love, fear and serve this my Almighty God, to ad­mire his works, and use them soberly, as also continually to rely on his Providence and pro­tection, as he is the Maker and disposer of all the World: I am also by this Faith encoura­ged to pray to this one God, and to him only, for my self, and for all Mankind, for deli­verance from all evil, and the supply of all our wants, trusting in his Power and Provi­dence.

Art. 2. [And] I believe in the second Person of the glorious Trinity [Iesus Christ,] who is ve­ry God equal to the Father, being [his only son] by eternal generation, and [our Lord] our Sa­viour and Redeemer.

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to trust in this Mighty and Merciful Saviour, and to obey his precepts, rely on his attonement and submit to his Authority, because he is anointed to be a Prophet, Priest, and King. And I am en­couraged to pray in his Name for all things necessary to my Salvation, which he hath un­dertaken and will accomplish.

Art. 3. I also believe that this very Son of God is he [who was conceived] without sin [by the] power of the [Holy Ghost,] and taking our nature [Page 84] upon him, was [born of the] blessed [Virgin Ma­ry] being both God and Man in one Person.

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to be thankful to Jesus for this his condescension, to learn hu­mility from thence, and to keep my flesh from all impurity, because Christ hath become In­carnate, and I am encouraged to pray to him for relief in all the necessities of this frail e­state, and for grace to make me partaker of his Nature, as he was of mine.

Art. 4. I believe further, That this Jesus, in or­der to our salvation, [suffered] the wrath of God due to our sins, being unjustly condemned [under Pontius Pilate,] by whom he [was crucified] on a Cross, till with extream torments he was [dead;] and as to his Body, it was put in the grave [and buri­ed;] as to his Soul, [he descended into Hell,] and conquered Satan in his own quarters.

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to forsake, hate, and mortifie those sins of mine which were the cause of his death, and to trust in the merits of this great Sin-offering: And I am encouraged to pray, by the vertue there­of, that I may obtain Mercy, and being sup­ported in death, and delivered from Hell, that I may attain the Kingdom of Heaven, which he thus purchased for me.

Art. 5. I believe also that to declare he had fully satisfied Gods justice, [the third day] af­ter his death [he rose again from the dead,] a­mong whom our sins and Gods anger had laid him, and now he lives again.

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to rise from the death of sin here, and to lay down my life willingly, in assurance of my own Resur­rection: And I am encouraged to pray to my victorious Redeemer to rescue me from the power of Sathan, Death, and Hell, which he hath so fully overcome.

Art. 6. I believe also, That when Jesus had gi­ven full proof of his rising again to life, [he as­cended] and went up triumphantly [into heaven] from whence he came, [and sitteth] there now [on the right hand of God the Father Almighty] in great glory and power, pleading his merits for us.

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to trust in this glorious Mediator for the acceptance of my services, and for relief in all my troubles, and to seek those things that are above, and not those things that are on earth: And I am en­couraged to pray with hope, notwithstanding my manifold failings and infirmities, that I may at last partake of his eternal Glory.

Art. 7. And I believe, That though Jesus be now so glorious in Heaven, yet [from thence he shall come] again at the end of the world [to judge] all men according to their deeds, both [the quick] who are then found alive, [and the dead] who departed long before.

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to judge no man, nor to revenge my self on any, but re­fer all my Injuries to this great Tribunal, and by preparing my own account, and living holily, to take care I be not condemned at [Page 86] that great day: And I am encouraged to pray to my Judge and Saviour, that I may daily re­member this great Account, and live so as to have a merciful Sentence finally passed on me.

Art. 8. Furthermore, [I believe in] the third Person of the glorious Trinity, [the holy Ghost,] who is very God, equal to and proceeding from the Father and the Son, and is our Sanctifier, Com­forter and Advocate.

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to obey the good motions of this blessed Spirit, nei­ther resisting the grace he offers, nor neg­lecting the means he useth to convey it: And I am encouraged to worship the Holy Ghost with the Father and the Son, praying for all sanctifying Graces, and a blessing upon all Gods Ordinances, that I may daily grow in Grace and in all Vertue.

Art. 9. I likewise believe this holy Spirit hath sanctified that Society of Christians throughout the world, called [the holy Catholick Church,] which Sathan never could, nor can destroy, because they are united to Christ their Head by Faith, and to one another by their mutual Charity, which makes [the Communion of Saints.]

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to hold fast the true Faith preserved in this Church, to joyn in the religious worship used by it, to convert the erroneous to it, and to live in Charity with, and do good to all the Members of it; and I am encouraged to pray for the conversi­on of Sinners, Hereticks, and Schismaticks; for the prosperity and success of all its Gover­nors, [Page 87] and for the peace and piety of all that belong to it.

Art. 10. I believe also that those who are of the true Catholick Church, may, if they repent and believe, obtain [the forgiveness of] all their [sins,] by the Mercy of God in Christ, and by the Mini­stry of those whom he hath commissionated to preach the Gospel.

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to repent me of my sins, and to believe in his promises, to be thankful for his Mercy, and to esteem his Ministers as being sent by him to reconcile us to himself: And I am encouraged to confess penitently, and hear the Absolution most thankfully, and daily to pray for forgiveness of my daily offences.

Art. 11. Likewise I believe, That though soul and body be separated by Death, yet we shall be restored to life again by [the Resurrection of the body,] which though turned to dust, shall be uni­ted to the Soul again by Gods Almighty Power, who made it at the first.

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to keep my bo­dy pure while I live, to resign my self, and my friends, up cheerfully when we dye, in assu­rance I and they shall all meet alive again: And I am encouraged to pray that I may rise from sin here, and being faithful to the death, may have a joyful Resurrection hereafter.

Art. 12. And finally, I believe that after this Resurrection there shall follow [the life everlast­ing] in which the wicked shall remain in endless [Page 88] torments, and the righteous continue in eternal hap­piness, without measure and without end: which Faith I seal with a hearty [Amen.]

Applic.] Wherefore I am obliged to spend the short moments of this life well, and to count nothing too grievous to suffer, or too hard to perform for so comprehensive and endless a felicity: And I am encouraged to pray to the Purchasor of this Eternal Life for Faith, Pa­tience, and Perseverance, and that the hope of this Happiness may support me here, and the fruition of it be given to me hereafter: Amen.

An Appendix concerning St. Athanasius his Creed.

§. 1. INstead of the shorter Creed of the Apostles, upon Trinity Sunday, and twelve other Festivals, one in each Month, this Church ap­points we shall use the Creed of S. Athanasius, which more largely explains the great Mysteries of the Trinity, and of Christs Incarnation, and therefore we will briefly observe; First, That the Author of it was the great Athanasius, Bishop of Alexandria, who was cast out of his Bishoprick by the Arrians, and accused of Heresie to the Empe­rors; and to purge himself from that false calum­ny, he is said to to have composed this Creed, and presented it to Julius Bishop of Rome, about the year 340. and Nazianzen, who then lived, [Page 89] mentions A Confession of his Faith presented to the Emperor, and received with great Veneration both in the East and West. Some passages also of this Creed are found in S. Augustine, and other very ancient Authors, as in Boetius, An. 510. in the 4th Coun­cil of Toledo, An. 671. in Hincmarus, An. 850. in Katrannus of Corbey, and Aeneas Parisiensis, An. 874. A Copy also of it, with the Title of The Faith of S. Athanasius, is found in an old Saxon Psalter, writ­ten about An. 924. And to this Father, the School­men ascribe this Creed, and the Greek as well as the Latin Churches, the Reformed as well as the Romanists, do hold that Athanasius was the Author of it. Secondly, As to the Matter of it; it doth very fully and particularly condemn all the Heresies that were of old in the time of this great Bulwark of the Catholick Faith, forbidding us to confound the Persons of the Trinity with Sabellius, or to divide the substance with Arrius and Eunomius: It shews us against Arrius and Macedonius, that both the Son is God, and the Holy Ghost is God: It confesses Christ to be God, of the substance of his Father, against Samosatenus and Photinus, and Man of the substance of his Mother, against A­pollinaris; yet he is not, as Nestorius dreamed, two, but one Christ, not by confusion of Sub­stance, as Eutyches held, but by Unity of Person: So that this Creed is the Quintessence of ancient Orthodox Divinity, and the means to extirpate all those accursed Heresies, some of which our Age hath seen revived, and therefore we have more need to hold and repeat this usefull Creed: And if any scruple at the positive denying Salvation to such as do not believe these Articles, let them re­member; such as hold any of these Fundamental [Page 90] Heresies are condemned in Scripture, 1 John ii. 22, 23. Chap. v. 12. and the Doctrines are called damnable Heresies, 2 Peter ii. i. From whence it was the Primitive Custome, after a Confession of the Orthodox Faith, to pass an Anathema against all that denied it: Wherefore let us firmly believe it, and devoutly use it, blessing God for these clear explications of the sublime Mysteries of the Trini­ty and Christs Incarnation, in which we must strive to understand as much as we can, and supply the rest with silence, submission and adorati­on.

Sect. XIX. Of the Versicles and Responsals.

§. 1. HAving all repeated our Creed together, and thereby given good proof, that we are Members of the Catholick Church, and such who have a right to joyn in the prayers thereof, we now prepare our selves to Pray: And since Salu­tations have ever been the expressions and badges of that mutual Charity, without which we are not fit to pray, therefore we begin with an Ancient Form of Salutation taken out of holy Scripture, the Minister beginning, Salutes the People with, Dominus vobiscum, [The Lord be with you] Ruth ii. 4. Psal. cxxix. 8. 2 Thess. iii. 16. and they return it with a like Prayer, Et cum Spiritu tuo 2 Tim. iv. 22. Gal. vi. 18.; which words have been of early use in the [Page 91] Christian Liturgies: For Isidore Peleusiota, An. 410. expounds the Response as used in the Publick Pray­ers thenIsid. Peleus. lib. 1. epist. 122. p. 44.; And the Council of Bracara notes some Hereticks would have altered these Phra­ses, but they enjoyn that no o­ther Salutation shall be used than this, [The Lord &c. and with thy Spirit] which all the East re­tains as instituted by the Apostles Concil. Bracar. I. can. 21. An. 563. Bin. T. 2. p. 2. pag. 112.; And indeed the phrase is the very words of S. Paul, and S. John forbids to say to any Here­tick, God speed, 2 Ep. John, ver. 10, 11. whence came that old Canon which charges Christians not to sa­lute such as are Excommunica­tedCapitul. Carol. M. l. 5. cap. 42. pag. 96., But when the Minister hath heard every one in the Congregation repeat his Faith, and seen by their standing up at it, a testimony of their assent to it, He can now safely salute them all as Brethren and Members of the True Church: And surely, as difference in Religion creates great animosities, so agreement in one Faith is an excel­lent means to beget Charity, and to make Minister and People heartily Pray for one another: The Peo­ple are going to Pray, which they cannot do without Gods help, and therefore the Minister prays that The Lord may be with them, to assist them in the Duty, according to that Gracious promise of our Saviour, that when two or three are met to pray he will be with them, Matth. xviii. 20. And since the Minister Prays for all the People and is their Mouth to God, they desire he may, heartily and devout­ly offer up these Prayers in their behalf, saying, [The Lord be with thy Spirit.]

[Page 92]§. 2. The Cryer of old among the Heathens, in the time of the Sacrifice proclaimed these words Hoc Agite, to warn all the Company to mind only that which they were about: And among the Chri­stians in all the old Liturgies, we find these words often repeated, [Let us pray,] or [Let us pray to the Lord,] which is a kind of Watch-word, or signal of Battel, to summon us all with united force to besiege heaven it self with our holy Im­portunities; and it is a warning to every one to lay aside all vain thoughts, and only to mind this great Work we have in hand; for though the Mi­nister only speak most of the words, yet your affe­ctions must go along with every Petition, for herein he desires you to joyn with him.

§. 3. Being unclean like those Lepers, Luke xvii. 11, 12. before we come near, we begin to cry, [Lord have mercy upon us;] which Form is ta­ken out of Davids Psalms, where it is sometimes repeated twice togetherPsal. vi. 2. & li. 1. & cxxiii. 3., to which the Christian Church hath added a third, viz. [Christ have mercy upon us;] that so it might be a short Litany, and Supplication to e­very Person in the blessed Trinity; we have offen­ded every person, and are to pray to every Person, and therefore we beg Mercy from them all: And truly this Kyrie Eleeson, is of great antiquity both in the Eastern and the Western Churches, as an old Council informs us, which orders it to be re­peated three times a day in the Publick PrayersConcil. Vasens. Can. 3. An. 529. ap. Bin. T. 2. p. 1. pag. 641.: And we are informed by History, that the City of Antioch was delivered from a dange­rous [Page 93] Earthquake by the Peoples solemn and devout repeating this short Litany; which is so very pro­per an Address to God, that the very Heathens imitated it; for one of them tells us, When they called upon God, they besought him thus, Lord have mercy upon us Arrian in Epictet. l. 2. cap. 7.. Wherefore we have reason to use it with ve­ry great devotion: Our sins make us unworthy and unfit to pray, but we do with ingeminated Cryes most pas­sionately crave Mercy and Pity, which if we can obtain, our Sins shall be pardoned, our Infirmi­ties covered and our Prayers accepted. Being thus prepared, we begin with [the Lords Prayer,] which consecrates all the rest of our Prayers, and makes way for them, and now it is again repeated; if we did not put up any Petition thereof with fervency enough before, we may now make amends for it, by asking that with a doubled earnestness.

§. 4. Before the Minister begins to pray alone for the People, they are first to joyn with him accor­ding to the Primitive way of Praying in some short Versicles and Responsals taken chiefly out of Davids Psalms, and containing the sum of all the follow­ing Collects; The 1st, [O Lord shew thy Mercy &c.] Psalm lxxxv. 7. being a Petition for Mercy and Salvation, answers to the Sunday Collect: The 2d, [O Lord save the King,] Psalm xx. ult. (accor­ding to the Greek Translation) for a blessing upon his Majesty, answers to the Collects for the King and his Family. The 3d, [Endue thy Ministers, &c.] Psalm cxxxii. 9. and the 4th, [O Lord save thy People, &c.] Psalm xxviii. 9. for the success of Ministers and the prosperity of their People, [Page 94] these two answer the Collect for the Clergy and People: The 5th, [Give peace in our time, &c.] 1 Chron. xxii. 9. for safety from our enemies, an­swers the Morning and Evening Collects for Peace and Safety: The 6th, [O God make clean, &c.] Psal. 21.10, 11. for the help of Gods Spirit, an­swers the Morning and Evening Collects for Grace. And thus we have the summ of all the ensuing Prayers, which Minister and People must devoutly joyn in by this alternate way of Responses, to fit them the better for the following Collects; and for their assistance, this brief Paraphrase may serve.

§. 5. Priest] [O Lord] we that are about to call upon thee, are miserable sinners, and need some evi­dence of thy favour to encourage us, wherefore [shew] some token of [thy mercy upon us] for our comfort.

Answer] Give us eminent deliverances here, [And grant us] through the same Mercy that we may obtain [thy salvation] hereafter.

Priest] Our temporal welfare depends under thee, upon the safety of thine Anointed, wherefore [O Lord save] and defend [the King] from all enemies and dangers, for in his peace we shall have peace also.

Answ.] In all his troubles do thou deliver him; [And mercifully hear us] his loyal Subjects, [when] in obedience to thy Word, and duty to our Soveraign, [we call upon thee] daily for him, and especially when his Enemies rise up against him.

Priest] Since the innocent lives of them who at­tend on thy Altar, is so very much for thy peoples [Page 95] good, and for thy own glory, O Lord [Endue thy Ministers with righteousness] that their con­versation may be pure, as their garments are white.

Answ.] We love these thy Servants, and shall re­joyce in their sanctification for their sakes and our own also, wherefore be pleased to grant this request, [And make thy chosen people joyful] under the care of holy Pastors, while they reap the benefit of their Graces and Ex­amples.

Priest] As thy people pray for us, so do we for them, beseeching thee, [O Lord,] to [save thy people] from all manner of evil.

Answ.] Yea, we all joyn in this request, and beg of thee to prosper [And bless] them with all good things, temporal and spiritual, for the Christian Church is [thine inheritance] O blessed Jesus, bequeathed to thee by thy heavenly Father, Psal. ii. 8.

Priest] There is nothing gives us more freedom in thy service, and more comfort in all other en­joyments than peace, wherefore [Give peace] to us, and all Christians, [in our time, O Lord,] that we may serve thee in all godly quietness.

Answ.] And the reason why we beg peace of thee, is [Because there is none other,] that we can rely upon, [that fighteth for us,] and can force our enemies to be at peace with us, [but only thou, O God.] The Primi­tive Christians, under Heathen Princes, had no temporal Arms to assist or secure them, and those we now have under our Christian King, cannot preserve us in peace, without thy gi­ving them success; and therefore we princi­pally, yea solely, rely on thee still for our peace.

Priest] Yet since Peace to wicked men doth but encrease their sins, and make them more wicked, [O God] do thou [make clean our hearts with­in us,] and when they are so purified, fill them with all the Graces of thy good Spirit.

Answ.] And because we are now to pray unto thee more largely for all these blessings, con­tinue the presence of thy grace with us, [And take not thy holy Spirit from us,] but let us feel the effects of it in the rest of our prayers, and of our whole lives: [Amen.]

Sect. XX. Of the Collects for the Week, and for Festivals.

§;. 1. OUr Saviour himself taught and commend­ed the frequent use of brief Forms of PrayerCasaub. exerc. ad Baron. 14. p. 235, 236.; and the Primitive Christians were wont to pray in that manner, from whom these Collects were derived; and they are called Collects, because they are collected generally out of the Epistle and Gospel, and be­cause they are a very brief Collection of all things necessary for soul and body; or if we respect the Phrase of the Ancients, because they were repeat­ed in Publick when the People were collected or gathered together: And the Form of them is, that [Page 97] they generally are directed to the Father, through the Son, and usually they begin with the Motive in­ducing us to ask, and then mention some great or comprehensive blessing desired, concluding with the ground of our hope, that we shall obtain it through Jesus Christ. They are most of them a­bove 1000 years old, having been used in the We­stern Church from the time of S. Gregory the great, and many of them before, and are so plain, they will need no Explication: But since here are pro­per and pious Forms of Prayer for any blessing, or any grace that we would ask for our selves or o­thers, I shall only direct where to find among them Prayers on every occasion.

First, If we would pray for things spiritual for our own souls, viz. for the gifts of the Spirit; See the Prayer for S. Barnabas day: Secondly, For pardon12, 21, 24 Sunday after Trinity.: Thirdly, For the benefit of Christs death and acceptance through himAnnunciation and Purification, and 2 Sun­day after Epiphany.. Fourthly, For the comfort, di­rection, and illumination of the Spirit1 after Ascension, Whitsunday, and 19 af­ter Trinity.. Fifthly, For the success of our hearing, reading, and fastingS. Barthol. S. Luke, 2 of Advent, 1 of Lent., and of our prayers10 & 23 after Trin.. Sixthly, For Grace in general, to convert us from sin1 Adv. 1 after Ea­ster, S. Andrew, S. James, S. Matth., to deliver us from temptation4 Adv. 4 after E­piph. 18 Trin., to ena­ble us to do good5 after East. 1, 9, 11, 13, 17, 25 after Trin., and bring us finally to eternal gloryEpiphany, 6 after Epiphany.. Seventhly, For the particular graces of RegenerationChristmas-day., CharityQuinquages. Sund., MortificationCircumcis. Easter Even., [Page 98] ContritionAsh-wednesday., Love of God3 & 4 after Easter, 6 & 14 after Trinity., Heavenly desiresAscension day., a rightTrinity Sunday. and a firm Faith7 after Trin. S. Tho­mas, S. Mark.. Eighthly, For Grace to imitate Christ6 of Lent, 2 after Easter. and his SaintsS. Stephen, S. Paul, S. Phil. & Jacob, S. John Baptist, All Saints, In­nocents..

Secondly, If we would pray for temporal blessings, 1. Gods Providence2, 3, 4 & 20 after Trin. S. Michael.; 2. Deliverance from Enemies and from Judg­ments3 of Lent. Sexages. Septuages.; 3. Support under our Afflictions4 of Lent.; 4. Both de­fence3, 4 after Epiph. and supply of all good things6, 15 after Trin.. Thirdly, If we would pray for body and soul both2, 5 of Lent.: Or if we would pray for those without the ChurchGood Friday.: Or for those within it, that the People may have Truth, Unity and Peace5 after Epiph. Good Friday, S. John, S. Simon and Jude, 5, 16, 22 af­ter Trin., and the Ministers may be fit, diligent, and successfulS. Matthias, S. Peter, 3 of Advent., here are proper Forms.

Sect. XXI. Of the Collects for Peace and Grace proper for the Morning.

§. 1. PEace and Grace comprehend all tem­poral and spiritual blessings, and there­fore are to be the subject of our daily Prayers; The Greek Church prayed thrice for peace, in the daily Service; the Latine twice, as we also do in forms very ancient and comprehensive. This first Prayer for Peace, proper to the Morning, con­tains, First, The reasons encouraging us to ask it of God: 1. From his Attributes, as he is the Author and lover of it, [O God who art the author, &c.] 2. From our happiness in knowing him, [in knowledge of whom, &c.] 3. From our safety in serving him, [whose service, &c.] Secondly, The request it self, for defence from our enemies, [defend us thy humble Servants, &c.] Thirdly, The ends for which we make it, for, 1. Confirming our Faith, [that we surely trust­ing, &c.] and, 2. removing our fears, [may not fear, &c.] Lastly, the means to obtain it, [through the might, &c.]

§. 2. Peace is used in Scripture for all Earthly blessings, because it is the Mother and the Nurse of them all; it is the most comprehensive benefit on Earth, and the Type of Heaven; wherefore the old Christians followed after it in their Lives, and begged it in their Prayers; and to encourage [Page 100] us to pray for it, our [God] is represented here as the [Author of Peace,] Isai. xlv. 7. and the [Lover of Concord,] Psalm cxxxiii. 1. he keeps us in peace, and loves us when we live in peace toge­ther▪ he makes us have peace from without, and delights when we have concord within, and so no doubt will be well pleased to hear us pray for that which he is so able to give, and so delighted with where-ever he finds it: And since we are in the midst of so many enemies who would rob us of this Peace, it is happy for us that we know him, and are his Servants, for [in the knowledge] of his Power and Mercy [standeth,] not only our hope of preservation here, but also our [eternal Life] hereafter; the greatest bliss of heaven it self being to know him the only true God, and Jesus Christ whom he hath sent, John xvii. 3. And he is also so certain a Protector of all that duly and faithfully serve him, that none have such [true freedom] from fears and dangers, such quiet and undaunted minds, as those who are imployed [in his Ser­vice.] John viii. 36. Wherefore we that know him that is the Author of Peace, and serve him that is the lover of Concord, (considering how able he is to secure us, and how unable we are to preserve our selves) do declare our selves [his humble ser­vants] and homagers, 2 Kings xvii. 9. and ha­ving put our selves under the Protection of this Al­mighty King, we beg of [him to defend us,] not from [the assaults of our enemies,] for that is more than ever he promised, or we can ex­pect, while they retain such malice, and we live in this frail estate; but we pray him to defend us in their assaults, so that though they shall attack us, they may not be able to hurt us: And when we have [Page 101] found by divers experiences that their most malici­ous and formidable attempts do not any real harm to us, this will make us so [surely trust in his defence,] that we shall be free [from fearing the power of any Adversaries] hereafter; where­fore we pray this may be effected, [through the might of Jesus Christ our Lord,] who hath all power in Heaven and Earth, and can obtain it for us by his intercession, and dispense it to us by his Power, [Amen.]

§. 3. The Collect for Grace follows that for Peace, for God hath joyned them in Scripture, 2 Cor. 1.2. Galat. 1.3. and we must not separate them in our devotions, because Grace alone makes Peace true, beneficial and lasting: The former Collect is for freedom from the evil of punishment, this from the evil of Sin, and it contains, First, A confession of Gods Attributes, viz. his Love, power, and eternity, [O Lord our heavenly, &c.] and of his providence over us the last night [who hast safely &c.] Secondly, A Petition for his Grace, 1. To keep us from evil, [defend us in the same, &c.] both from temptation, [and grant that this day we fall, &c.] and all outward danger, [neither run, &c.] 2ly. To asist us in doing good, by his direction, [but that all our doings, &c.] and with his acceptance, [to do always, &c.] Thirdly, the means to obtain it, [through Iesus Christ, &c.]

§. 4. The very name of Grace shews it is the Free gift of God, of him therefore we must ask it, James i. 5. And the Church hath selected such Attributes of his as are most proper to quicken [Page 102] our hopes of obtaining it. We are frail creatures on earth and need it exceedingly, but he is The [Lord our heavenly Father,] and so both loves and pities us: we are weak, but he is [Almighty,] and therefore able to help us: Our span of life is measured by Days and Nights, but he is an [ever­lasting God,] always the same without any change, and therefore ever ready to hear us: And as a further ground of our hope, that he will grant us grace to defend us in this day, we are taught thankfully to own that it is he [who safely] kept us in Soul and Body the night past, and [brought us] intire in both [to the beginning of this day;] and as he hath begun it with his Mercy, we must begin it with his praise, Lament. ii. 23. Our refle­cting on the dangers of last Nights darkness, will excite our thankfulness for the morning light, and that gratitude will incline God to continue his mer­cies to us this Day also, and former experience helps us to pray in Faith to him [to defend us] in the rest of this day [by his mighty power,] from all manner of evil, and in the first place from the worst of all evils, viz. from [falling into Sin,] to the temptations whereof our Company, our business, and our recreations in the day time do perpetually expose us; many traps are set every where for us, but we watch and pray that we may not fall into them, by consenting to any iniquity, from which his grace alone can secure us; And be­cause all Sin provokes God to take his Protection from us, and some Sins of their own nature bring many Mischiefs on us, therefore we pray that we may not by Sinning [run into any kind of dan­ger] this day, either to our life, health or estate, and then we shall be safe from outward and inward [Page 103] Perils, and neither hurt in Soul or Body: But since it is not enough barely to escape evil, unless we also do good, we further pray [that all our doings may be ordered by the governance] of his grace, Psalm xxxvii. 23. which will lead us in­to all pious and holy actions; and though our best performances be imperfect, yet what we do by the guidance of his Spirit, cannot but be [always acceptable in his sight,] who is to be the Judge of all our works, and happy are we if we can live so as to please him; wherefore we earnestly beg he will grant us this grace, [through Iesus Christ our Lord, of whose fulness we all receive, [Amen.]

Sect. XXII. Of the Collects for Peace and safety pro­per for the Evening.

§. 1. THough the words of these Collects be different, yet the subject is the same, only the former are suted to the Morning, and these to the Evening. These two are of ancient use in the Western Church; and the first being, The Evening Collect for Peace, contains, First, An Introduction describing him we pray to as the Au­thor and Finisher of all good, [O God, from whom all holy desires, &c.] Secondly, A Petition for Peace of the noblest kind, [Give unto thy ser­vants that peace.] Thirdly, The Arguments to prevail for it; 1. Our benefit, because it will [Page 104] tend unto our Sanctification, [that both our hearts may be set, &c.] and also our safety and comfort, [and also that by thee we being de­fended, &c.] 2. Our Saviour's merits, [through the Merits of Iesus Christ, &c.]

§. 2. Peace is so desirable a blessing, we cannot ask it too often; and since there are two kinds of Peace, external and internal Peace, we beg out­ward Peace in the Morning to secure us against the troubles of the world, in which the business of the day engageth us; and inward Peace in the Evening to comfort and quiet our minds when we are to take our rest: Now because this Peace of Consci­ence cannot be to the wicked, Isai. lvii. 21. since it is the fruit of holy purposes and good works; there­fore we pray for it to that [God,] who first puts in­to our hearts [holy desires,] and into our heads [good counsels,] and then strengthens our hands to do righteous [and just works;] the beginning and perfection of all good [proceeds] from him, James i. 17. Phil. ii. 13. We therefore pray unto him, that by making us truly holy, he will [give unto us that peace which the world cannot give, John xiv. 27.] Peace of Conscience cannot be bought with all the worlds riches, nor given by the greatest mortal Prince; it is a gift that makes the poorest and most miserable person to be happy in his lowest estate, and none but God can give it, and if we be [his Servants,] he will not deny it to us; and as well to move him to bestow it on us, as to incite our selves to beg it earnestly, let us consider that if we can obtain this blessed Peace, it will make [us set our hearts to obey Gods Commandments:] for when we taste the [Page 105] fruit and find the comfort of holiness and obedi­ence, it will confirm our purposes of persevering; for none who hath tasted of the ravishing delights of this inward and divine Peace, will part with it for the beastly pleasures of Sin; so that this Peace of God will keep our hearts firm in his love, Philip. iv. 7. And further, while we are at peace with God, we are secure against not only the attempts, but the very [fear of our enemies;] God will keep us by his Providence without, from being hurt by them, and by his Grace he will inwardly arm us against the very fear of any harm from them, so that we [may pass the time] we have to spend in this World [in rest and quietness,] being out­wardly safe and inwardly quiet and serene, which is as much happiness as we can wish on Earth: therefore let us beg this Peace (the cause of these blessed effects) most devoutly [through the me­rits of Iesus Christ our Saviour] who purcha­sed this peace for us, and left it to us, [Amen.]

§. 3. The next Collect is peculiar to and proper for the Evening: when Darkness is approaching and the Perils of the night draw nigh, we fly to the di­vine Providence for [Ayd] against them all. And this brief Form contains, First, Two Petitions. 1st, for inward illumination of our minds, 2ly, for outward safety of our Persons, particularly from the dangers of this Night: Secondly, the Motive used to prevail, viz. [for the Love] of Gods only Son Jesus Christ.

§. 4. We are always invironed with danger, but none are more dismal, sudden and unavoidable than those of the Night, when darkness adds to the ter­ror, [Page 106] and sleep deprives us of all possibility of fore­sight or defence; so that he must be an Atheist, and worse than Heathen, who doth not then by a special Prayer commit himself to Gods Providence, the knowledge of which doth enlighten our minds, and makes us full of inward peace and comfort when we are in the darkest shades of night; there­fore we pray with David, [Lighten our darkness we beseech thee, O Lord Vulg. Lat. Psal. xviii. 28. Deus meus, illumi­na tenebras meas.,] Light signifies in Scripture, Knowledge and Comfort, and under this Metaphor we pray for both, viz. that our Understandings may be en­lightened with the knowledge of his Providence, and our hearts cheered with the assurance of his protection, which is that [Light] which [ariseth] to good men in darkness, Psalm cxii. 4. and makes them spend their night in Goshen, while the wicked have thoughts as black and dismal as Egyptian dark­ness. But since our God is not only a Light, but a defence also, Psal. lxxxiv. 11. it is not only the terrors, but the perils also of the night, from which we would be [preserved;] wherefore we pray that he will [pity] our helpless estate, especially when we are wrapt up in sleep, and the nights darkness; then we beg his [great mercy] may pity us, and his mighty power defend us from all [perils] to the soul, and [dangers] to the body, in which we are like to be [this night:] And since we re­solve to renew the request every Evening and know not whether ever we shall see another night, there­fore we ask no further than only for the present night, viz. that we may not commit any of those works of darkness which call the night their oppor­tunity, nor want any of that natural rest which is [Page 107] necessary for our refreshment or our health, and that we may not be hurt by thieves, by fire or water, or seized by sudden death, but come safe to the morning light; which necessary Petitions we pre­sent with the most moving Argument, desiring God to grant them [for the love of his only Son,] e­ven for the love the Father bears to Jesus, and for the love Jesus bears to us, and we to him; by this, by all this, we importune heaven to [defend us,] and if our Faith and Piety do but sute this proper and devout form, in all likelyhood we shall prevail. [Amen.]

Sect. XXIII. Of the Collects for the King and his Fa­mily.

§. 1. THe Supream King of all the World is God, by whom all mortal Kings reign; and since his Authority sets them up, and his Pow­er only can defend them, therefore all Mankind, as it were by common consent, have agreed to pray to God for their Kings. It is well known that the Heathens made Sacrifices, Prayers and Vows for them; and Scripture records that the Persian Kings desired to be prayed for at the Temple of Je­rusalem, Ezra vi. 10. as the Roman Emperors did also afterward: The Jews had special forms of Prayer for their Kings, Psalm xx. and Psalm lxxii. But we Christians are expresly enjoyned to pray for [Page 108] Kings, 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2. and all the ancient Fathers, Liturgies and Councils are full of Evidences that this was done daily: We celebrate daily Prayers to our God, in every one of our Churches, for your Em­pire, saith a Council (in S. Ambrose his time) to the EmperorsEpist. Ambros. Tom. v. pag. 181.. And our old Saxon Councils do frequently decree this shall be doneConcil. Berkham. Can. 1. An. 697. Concil. Clovesho. Can. 30. An. 747.; and S. Paul shews it is the peo­ples interest, as well as the Prin­ces; for we pray that we may have quiet and peaceable lives under them in all godliness and honesty, and in their peace we shall have peace also. As for this Form, it was made by the first Reformers of this Church of England, which is famous for its untaint­ed Loyalty above all Churches in the World, as both the practice of its true Sons, and this excellent Prayer do shew; wherein there is, First, A Con­fession to the King of Heaven, of his Goodness, [O Lord our heavenly, &c.] Greatness, [High and Mighty, King of Kings, &c.] and Univer­sal Providence, [who dost from thy Throne, &c.] Secondly, Petitions for his Vicegerent on Earth, in general for his favourable regarding of him, [most heartily we beseech thee with thy favour, &c.] More particularly we beg for him, 1. Spiritual Blessings; both Grace, [and so replenish, &c.] and Gifts, [endue him plenteously, &c.] 2. Tem­poral Blessings; Health, Prosperity, and Victory, [grant him in health and wealth, &c.] and, 3. Eternal Blessings, [and finally after this life, &c.] Thirdly, The Name in which we beg all this, [through Iesus Christ, &c.]

[Page 109]§. 2. As the place of Kings is high, so their dan­gers are many; so that he had need be both very merciful and very mighty, whom we pray unto to help our King: And this excellent Form is introdu­ced with a description of God in all the glories of his Goodness and Greatness: The King is Pater Pa­triae, the Father of his People; but the [Lord] we call upon is [our heavenly Father,] and the pre­servation of our Prince will be an act of his father­ly care and loving-kindness: We cannot justly doubt of his willingness, nor may we question his ability, since he is so [high] in dignity, and so [mighty] in power, as to exceed infinitely all the Potentates of the World, who are but his Servants; He is the [King of kings, and Lord of lords] Dan. ii. 47. 1 Tim. vi. 15.: All people are subject to some Prince or other, but God is above them all, and [the only Ruler of Princes,] who being only ac­countable to him; to him therefore we make our applications on their behalf. If they do amiss, we have no lawful weapons against them, but only Tears and Prayers; wherefore we have reason to be very earnest with him, who hath the hearts of Kings in his hands, and can turn them which way he pleaseth, to guide them, so as they may rule us according to his will. Heaven is his Throne, and Earth his Footstool, Isai. lxvi. 1. He sits high, and beholds all the World at once with that Providence which the Egyptians expressed by An Eye in a Scep­ter: But this Eye of the Lord is more particularly upon Princes, his immediate Vicegerents, to pre­serve their Persons, and direct their Counsels; be­cause in blessing them he blesseth a whole Nation at once, [most heartily therefore we beseech him [Page 110] to look favourably] upon our dear and dread Sovereign [King Charles,] whom we name in the Office, as the Ancients were wont to do both in the Eastern and Western Churches; and consi­dering how much the preservation of Religion, Peace, and Liberty depends, under God, upon this gracious Prince's life, no Nation under Heaven is, or ever was more bound to pray for their King than we: And we have a most comprehensive Form to do it in; First, We are taught to beg for the first and choicest of all that God gives, viz. The Graces and Gifts of his holy Spirit; 1. We pray that he will [so replenish him with the grace of his holy Spirit,] that as to his affections, [he may always incline to Gods will,] and as to his a­ctions, ever [walk in his way,] and then he will be a holy, just, and good Prince, and his example will be the most effectual means to recommend Vir­tue to all his Subjects, and make it universally flou­rish: and happy will it be for him and us also, if our King be so constantly led by the Divine Grace, as to make Gods will and way the rule of all his counsels and actions. Moreover, because he hath an extraordinary part to manage, and a very diffi­cult task to perform, we also pray that he may [be plenteously endued with heavenly gifts, viz.] wisdom, counsel and understanding, justice, cou­rage, and a present mind; which Solomon knowing to be most necessary for a King, chose before all earthly things, 1 Kings iii. 9, 10, 11. yet God gave him long life and prosperity into the bargain: wherefore we make bold to request him to [grant] to our King [health, wealth, and long life,] which include all earthly blessings, and make our Prince fit to govern and secure us: His health ena­bles [Page 111] him to discharge this great Province; his wealth and prosperity will afford him strength to guard his friends, and subdue his foes; his long life will prevent us from the miseries attending all sudden changes, especially this: And if any [enemies] be so unjust as to invade him, or so unchristian as to resist him, it is our wish that God would [strengthen him] so as he may be able to [van­quish and overcome] all His enemies, for they are ours also, if they be his enemies: Hitherto it hath pleased God to discover the Plots, and baffle the Designs of all his base and ingrateful Foes, and we hope he will go on still so to do; yet because if no Enemy do prevail over him, Kings as well as other men are mortal, we pray that after a long, holy, and happy life, [he may attain everlasting joy and felicity,] all which we beg [through Iesus Christ our Lord, Amen.]

§. 3. [The Collect for the Royal Family] is added from that ancient desire of the Persian Em­peror, Ezra vi. 10. that the Jewish Priests would pray for the life of the King and his Sons; and a­mong the Romans the Heirs of the Empire were prayed for as well as the Emperor, as Tacitus re­lates: The Primitive Christians also prayed for the Imperial Family; and the Canons of old Councils, both at home and abroad, do enjoyn itExcerpta Egberti Can. 7. Spelm. Tom. 1. 259. Concil. Rhemens. Can. 40.: And our Refor­mers have composed an excel­lent Form to do it by, contain­ing, First, A description of the power and goodness of him to whom we pray; [Almighty God, the Fountain, &c.] Second­ly, The Persons for whom we pray, viz. the Queen [Page 112] and the Prince. Thirdly, The blessings desired for them, Spiritual, [Endue them with thy holy Spirit, &c.] Temporal, [prosper them with, &c.] Eternal, [and bring them to thine, &c.]

§. 4. Though we have prayed for a King be­fore who needs many and great Blessings, yet God is able still to give more, for he is [Almighty and the fountain of all goodness,] a Spring that cannot be drawn dry: We are apt to esteem the Queen and Heir to the Crown as the fountains of blessings for the next Generation, but we are here put in mind they are but dry Cisterns unless reple­nished from a higher fountain, and cannot convey blessings to us, unless they do receive it first from God: And because it is of great consequence to the next Age that these shall be blessed, we therefore name them in particular in this Prayer; and the whole Royal Family in general terms, de­siring that God will please to add to all their temporal honour and riches, the [Gifts and the grace of his Holy Spirit,] that they may be wise and holy Persons, which will wonderfully adorn their great Dignity, and make them not on­ly true comforts to the King, but real blessings to the whole Nation; a religious vertuous Queen ha­ving great influence on the education of that Prince who must hereafter rule over us, and if he be brought up in the true faith, and in all piety and vertue, he will become a gracious Governor of his Subjects in due time; And because no Worldly greatness is enough to make them happy without Gods blessing, we pray that his Providence may [prosper them with all Happiness,] that the Queen may be fruitful, the Prince religious and [Page 113] healthful, and the Royal family numerous and for­tunate, so that there may never want a Man of them to sit on this Throne for ever. And finally we pray they may by holding the true Faith and leading religious lives, come to Gods [everlasting Kingdom through Iesus Christ our Lord: Amen.]

Sect. XXIV. Of the Collect for the Clergy and Peo­ple.

§. 1. HOly Scripture is full of Prayers for the Church of God, and particularly for the Governors and Pastors thereof, and all the An­cient Liturgies have peculiar Petitions for the Bi­shops and the Clergy, as well as for the Congregati­ons committed to their Charge: Synesius a Primi­tive Bishop writes to his Clergy to pray for him in all their Churches; and our Saxon Councils ordain daily Prayers shall be made for the Bishop and for the Church of God;Synesii Epist. xi. pag. 171. Excerpt. Eg­berti can. 8. Concil. Calcuthens. Can. 10. which order we observe in this Anci­ent Form containing, First a Pre­face describing God by his At­tributes and wondrous works: [Almighty and everlasting God &c.] Secondly the Petitions containing, 1st, The Persons prayed for, both the Clergy, [send down upon our Bishops, &c.] and the People, [and all Congregations, &c.] 2ly, The things [Page 114] desired for them, viz. Gods grace, [the healthful Spirit, &c.] and his Blessing, [And that they may truly please thee, &c.] Thirdly the argument to enforce these requests, [Grant this O Lord, &c.]

§. 2. As Man consists of Two parts, a Soul and a Body, so he is to be considered under a double Ca­pacity, as a Member of the State which is a Socie­ty instituted for the preservation of our outward Man, and so we have prayed for our selves in the Prayer for the King: But now it is fit to consider us as Christians and Members of the Church, which is a Society instituted for the salvation of our Souls; and to excite our Devotion, here is set before us that [Almighty] power of God, by which he cal­led his Church out of the Heathen World, and hath preserved it from Persecutors and Hereticks ever since, so that it is and ever shall be safe, be­cause he who is the defender thereof is [Ever­lasting,] and so can always keep it that the Gates of Hell shall not prevail against it: He planted it at first by [great marvels,] bestowing miracu­lous gifts on the Ministers and the People also, and his Love toward it is the same still, and therefore if it did need those wonderful gifts now, it should have them; but because it doth not, yet he will work great [marvels] still to deliver it when there is occasion: Wherefore since he is so ready to shew his Love and his Power for his Churches good, we Pray that he will [send down] from heaven (whence every good gift comes, James 1.17.) [the healthful] and saving [Spirit of his grace:] Titus ii. 11. First upon [our Bishops,] the Successors of the Apostles, who ever since their [Page 115] times have governed every regular and well ordered Church, and are entrusted with the power of choo­sing and ordaining Ministers, of making rules for the externals of Gods Worship, and for discipline; as also of exercising the power of the Keys in censu­ring Hereticks, Schismaticks, and all notorious Sin­ners; and surely this is a great Work, and they who are to undergo it, do need great assistances of the Spirit of grace, which if we can obtain for them, they will rule the Church of God well, and preserve it in purity and peace. We pray also for [all Cu­rates,] that is, for the Priests and Deacons, to whom the Bishop commits the Curam Animarum, the Cure or rather Care of Souls in particular Congre­gations; for after whole Nations were converted, the Governing part alone was a burden sufficient for the Bishop; and therefore for the better edifica­tion of the People, Parish Churches were built, and Ministers fixed there to pray for the People, and to preach and administer Sacraments to them, and to do all other Offices of Religion there; and surely the People are obliged to Pray for these also, that they may have large measures of the same Spirit, that so their Prayers may be devout and prevalent, their Doctrine plain and profitable, their Administrations regular and successful, and their Lives holy and Ex­emplary, which will be the Peoples own advan­tage as well as the Ministers happiness. Lastly, The Minister also prays for the same grace for the whole [Congregation committed to his charge,] well knowing that without this [Grace] all his pains among them, and Prayers for them, will be in vain; and since he hath so strict a charge of their Souls that he must answer for them if they perish by his fault, Ezek. xiii. 9. he ought to be very servent in [Page 116] this request: Finally, That Bishops, Priests and Peo­ple may all do their duty in their several places, we pray that they may be watered with [the continu­al dew of Gods blessing,] which will crown the endeavours of both Pastors and People with happy success, and make the whole Body of the Church prosperous and holy, which request we make not only for our own good, but [for the Honour] of him that is the only [Advocate and Mediator] of his Church, even [Iesus Christ,] who is the head of this body the Church, and by his Mediati­on and intercession obtains all Blessings for it; so that when it is happy and flourishing in all virtue, he is glorified for it and by it, and therefore though we are unworthy, we hope for his sake God will grant it, [Amen.]

Sect. XXV. Of the Prayer of S. Chrysostom and the Blessing.

§. 1. WHere Ancient Liturgies afforded proper Prayers, our Reformers chose to re­tain them rather than make New ones; therefore as some are kept from the Western Offices, so this is taken out of the Eastern, where it is daily used in the Liturgies both of S. Basil and S. Chrysostome, who (as all agree) was the Author thereof; and it is very proper for a Conclusion, since it contains, First, the ground of our hopes to prevail in these [Page 117] Prayers, taken from, 1. the experience of Gods grace, [Almighty God, who hast given us Grace, &c.] 2. the truth of his Promise, [And dost promise, &c.] Secondly, The things Asked; 1. The hearing our Prayers, [fulfill now O Lord, &c.] 2. The fulfilling his Promises here, [Grant­ing us in this World, &c.] 3. The Salvation of our Souls hereafter, [and in the World to come, &c.]

§. 2. In the close of our Prayers it is fit we should reflect on all those great and necessary requests we have made, and not only renew our desires that God may grant them all, but stir up our hearts to hope he will, that so we may go home with com­fort; To which end we first acknowledge it was the [Grace of Almighty God] alone, which did en­able us so unanimously and so devoutly [with one accord,] Acts i. 14. to [make these our common Prayers] to him; had they been novel extempore Devices, we might have feared it was that novelty and variety which wrought upon our Fancies, and be­got in us only a fantastical shew of devotion, but nothing could make us devout in our constant Forms, but that new sense of our old wants which Gods grace begets, and surely he who gave us grace to ask, intends to grant our requests, Psalm x. 17. Of which we are further assured by that gracious promise of Christ, Matth. xviii. 19, 20. That where two or three are gathered together in his Name, He is in the midst of them, that is, He will give them this assurance of his presence, that he [will grant their requests,] 1 John v. 15. Perhaps weare but few at Common Prayer, but since we come as his Disci­ples, in obedience to his Precepts, to ask in his [Page 118] Name alone, we are sure Jesus is among us, and hears our Prayers; and then such is his love to us and power with God, that we doubt not to ob­tain them: And Oh! whom would it not move to lay aside all occasions and come to Prayers, when we are sure to meet Jesus there! and now we ad­dress to him as present, and beg of him by vertue of this Promise to [Fulfil the desires] of our hearts, and [the Petitions] of our lips, since by joyn­ing in these Prayers we have owned our selves [his Servants], yet lest we have ignorantly asked any thing unfit, we put in this caution, that he will fulfill them so [as may be most expedient for us,] that is, how, when, and which of them he pleaseth, and sees will be for our good. And if he please to answer our Prayers and fulfill this promise, he will thereby [grant us the knowledg of his truth,] and we shall see how just he is to all his gracious Promises, and so learn to trust in him as long as we live [in this World,] and then we need ask no more, but that [in the World to come,] we may have [Life everlasting:] Where­fore the Lord hear our Prayers here, and save us here­after, [Amen.]

§. 3. It was ever the Custom to dismiss the Peo­ple from religious Assemblies with a [final blessing] both in the Jewish and Christian Church, pronoun­ced by the Priest, and received by the People on their Knees; nor ought any one to go out before it was givenClem. Constitut. Concil. Agathens. can. 31. The Jews had a Form of Gods makingNumb. vi. 23, 24., and ours is indited by the Spirit2 Corinth. xiii. 14., with which S. Paul uses to close his Epistles, and it contains the whole order of [Page 119] our Salvation, [The Grace of our Lord Iesus Christ] for our pardon, [the love of God] the Father to supply us with all outward blessings, [and the fellowship of the Holy Ghost] to fill us with all inward graces; The first for our justificati­on, the second for our consolation, the last for our compleat sanctification: And all this not only at present, but to remain and [be with us all] for [evermore.] Nor are these only desired for us, but pronounced over us, & conveyed to us by the Embas­sador of Heaven, from whose mouth when we have received this blessing, let us bow our heads and re­turn home in peace, saying [Amen, Amen,] and God shall make it good.

The end of the first Part.

PART II. OF THE LITANY, WITH THE Occasional Prayers AND THANKSGIVINGS.

The Introduction.

THe People have so great a share in the Lita­ny, that they ought to understand it, that so it may be a reasonable Service. As for the Name, Litany, the most ancient Greek Writers do use it for An earnest Supplication to the Gods, made in time of adverse Fortune; and in the same sense it is used in the Christian Church for A [Page 122] Supplication and common Intercession to God when his wrath lyes upon us Simeon Thessal. opusc. de Haeret.. Such a kind of Supplication was the li. Psalm, which begins with Have mercy upon me, &c. and may be called David's Litany. Such was that Li­tany of Gods appointing, Joel ii. 17. where, in a general Assembly, the Priests were to say with tears, Spare thy People, O Lord, &c. And such was that Litany of our Saviour, Luke xxiii. 44. which kneel­ing he often repeated with strong crying and tears, Hebr. v. 7. and S. Paul reckons up Supplications a­mong the kinds of Christian Offices, which he en­joyns shall be daily used, 1 Tim. ii. 1. which Sup­plications are generally expounded Litanies for re­moval of some great Evil. As for the Form in which they are now made, viz. in short Requests by the Priest, to which the People all answer, S. Chrysostom saith it is derived from the Primitive Age, while the Priest was inspired with miraculous gifts, for he first began and uttered by the Spirit some things fit to be prayed for, and then the People (who knew not what to pray for as they ought) having their infirmities thus helped by the Spirit, joyned, saying, We beseech thee to hear us, Good Lord, Rom. viii. 26. And not only the Western, but the Eastern Church also, have ever since retained this way of praying: This was the Form of the Christi­ans prayers in Tertullian's time, on the days of their Stations, Wednesdays and Fridays, by which he tells us they removed Drought. Thus in S. Cypri­an's time they requested God for deliverance from enemies, for obtaining rain, and for removing or moderating his Judgments. And S. Ambrose hath left a Form of Litany, which bears his name, agree­ing [Page 123] in many things with this of ours. For when Mi­raculous gifts ceased, they began to write down divers of those primitive Forms, which were the Original of our modern Office: And about the year 400. these Litanies began to be used in Procession, the people walking barefoot, and saying them with great Devotion; by which means Constantino­ple was delivered from an Earthquake in the time of the Emperor Theodosius; and Mamertus Bishop of Vienne, did collect a Litany to be so used, by which his Country was delivered from dreadful calamities, An. 460. And soon after, Sidonius Bishop of Ar­verne, upon the Gothick Invasion, made use of the same Office; and about the year 500. the Coun­cil of Orleance enjoyned they should be used at one certain time of the year, in this publick way of Pro­cession: And in the next Century, Gregory the great did, out of all the Litanies extant, compose that famous sevenfold Litany, by which Rome was deli­vered from a grievous Mortality, which hath been a Pattern to all Western Churches ever since; and ours comes nearer to it, than that in the present Roman Missal, wherein later Popes had put in the Invocation of Saints, which our Reformers have justly expunged. But by the way we may note, that the use of Litanies in Procession about the fields, came up but in the time of Theodosius in the East, and in the days of Mammertus of Vienne, and Honoratus of Marsiels, viz. An. 460. in the West, and it was later Councils which did enjoyn the use of it in Ro­gation Week Concil. Tolet. 5. can. 1. An. 634. Conc. Clovesho. can. 16. An. 747. Concil. Mogunt. can. 33. An. 813.; but the Forms of earnest Supplications were far more Ancient and truly Pri­mitive. As for our own Litany, it is now enjoyned on Wednes­days [Page 124] and Fridays, the two ancient Fasting days of the Christians, in which they had of old more so­lemn PrayersClem. Alex. strom. 7. Epiphan. Tertull. &c.; And on Sun­days, when there is the fullest Assembly: And no Church in the World hath so complete a Form as the curious and comprehensive method of it will declare; for it is introduced with an Invoca­tion of the Blessed Trinity, severally and conjunctly [in the four first Verses:] Then it contains, First, Deprecations; 1. For forbearance, [ver. 5.] 2ly, For deliverance from all evil spiritual, temporal, and eternal, [vers. 6, 7, 8, 9, 10.] noting also the means by which, [ver. 11, 12,] and the speci­al time when we would be delivered [ver. 13.] Se­condly, It contains Intercessions; 1st, For others, viz. for the whole Church, [ver. 14.] For this Church, and in it the King and his family, [ver. 15, 16, 17, 18.] The Clergy, [ver. 19.] the No­bility and Magistrates, [ver. 20, 21.] and the Peo­ple, [ver. 22.] For all Estates of Men we beg Peace, [ver. 23.] and Grace, [ver. 24, 25, 26, 27.] and especially we pray for the comfort of the affli­cted, [ver. 28, 29, 30, 31.] and the forgiveness of our enemies, [ver. 32.] 2ly, We pray for our selves, that we may have Plenty, [ver. 33.] and grace to a­mend, [ver. 34.] Thirdly, It contains Supplica­tions, 1. To press the former Petitions in Ad­dresses to the Son of God and the whole Trinity. 2. To prevent or remove evil, in the Lords Prayer: The Prayer against Persecution, and the alternate Requests. 3ly, To sanctifie evil not removed, in the last Collect, concluding as the Morning Of­fice doth, with which it is generally used.

Partition I. Of the LITANY.

Sect. I. Of the Invocation.

§. 1. WE have a Divine Command to use Litanies in time of Trouble; for the Scripture saith, Is any afflicted, let him pray, James v. 13. The Person we pray to, is God, whose Order is, Call upon me in the day of trouble, and I will deliver thee, Psal. ii. 15. The thing we pray for, is Mercy; so David begins his great Penitential, Have mercy on me, &c. Psal. li. 1. and all the Litanies in the World begin with this solemn word, [...], [Lord have mercy on us:] So that this Invocation is the sum of the whole Lita­ny, being a particular Address for Mercy, first to each Person in the glorious Trinity, and then to them all together: And the address is urged by two Motives; first, because we are [miserable,] and, Secondly, because we are [sinners,] upon both which grounds we extreamly need [mercy:] Which being as well a Confession of Faith, as an Epitome of the whole Litany, every one is to repeat these four Verses intirely after the Minister.

[Page 126]§. 2. [O God the Father of Heaven, &c.] As we acknowledge every Person by himself to be God and Lord, so we worship each Person apart, begin­ning with [God the Father of Heaven,] that is, our heavenly Father, whose Throne the Heaven is, and as he is our [Father,] he is gracious, as he is in [Heaven,] he is powerful, and can do whatever he pleases, Psalm cxv. 3. As for us, we confess our selves to be [miserable sinners,] and so need both his Power to deliver us out of our troubles, and his Mercy to pardon us for all our sins: And whereas we repeat this Confession and Petition to every Person, we may meditate that we have some peculiar miseries which are proper to be relieved by the Providence of God the Father, and some spe­cial sins, most directly committed against his Per­son, which we must pray him to pardon. Our Miseries fit to be remembred to God the Father, are sickness, poverty, injuries, as also all publick Ca­lamities in Church or State, and all the sufferings of our Neighbours and Friends; with a due regard to all these, let us beg of God the Father to [have mercy on us,] to pity us under these Afflictions, and free us from them by his Providence: Yet, as an acknowledgment we suffer justly, we must also here remember what sins we have committed a­gainst this our heavenly Father, viz. our Ingrati­tude for Mercy, presumption in Prosperity, discon­tent in Adversity, distrust of Providence, abuse of his Creatures, and defiling our Bodies and Souls, for all which we must beseech him to [have mer­cy upon us,] and pardon us; and while the Mini­ster is repeating it over, if we meditate on these miseries and sins, it will help us to say it with great devotion.

[Page 127]§. 3. [O God the Son, Redeemer, &c.] The Arrians, and divers other Hereticks, denied the Divinity of the Son, and so refused to worship him, but we, with the true Catholick Church, give the Son the same worship with the [Father,] John v. 23. calling him not barely the Son of God, but [God the Son,] that is, we own him to be God equal with the Father, and make the same request to him for Mercy, giving him the Title of [Redeemer of the world,] Hebr. ii. 9. 2 Corinth. 5.19. Not the Redeemer of one Sect or sort of men, as some Par­ties proudly pretend, but the Redeemer of all Mankind, and therefore of us, though we confess our selves to be miserable sinners; we are miserable by the guilt of sin, which hath made us slaves of Sathan, enemies to God, and heirs of Hell, liable to death and judgment, and the wrath of God; but [our Redeemer,] by the merits of his death, can remove all these miseries: 'Tis true, we have not deserved this favour, because we have not repented at his Call, believed in his Promises, nor given heed to the Precepts of his Gospel; we have been unthankful for his death, unmindful of his exam­ple, and careless of these souls which he bought so dear; but he can pardon all this: O then let us earnestly beg of him to [have mercy upon us mi­serable sinners,] and surely he that loved us so well to redeem us, will both remove our mise­ries, and forgive us all these sins.

§. 4. [O God the holy Ghost, proceeding, &c.] Many of the old Hereticks, and especially Mace­donius denied the Divinity of the [Holy Ghost] also, but we, with the Catholick Church, own him to be very [God,] and after S. Paul's example, do [Page 128] pray to him as God, 1 Thessal. iii. 12, 13. declaring that he [proceedeth] (not from the Father by the Son, as the Greeks hold, but) [from the Fa­ther and the Son,] John xv. 26. Wherefore as he is of the same nature with the Father and the Son, we make the same Petition to him for [mercy,] cal­ling to mind that we are [miserable,] by the ig­norance of our minds, the perversness of our wills, the disorder of our affections and passions; we want many graces, and those we have are weak, and we are easily tempted to offend, and hardly brought to repentance, but as he is our Sanctifier he can remove all these Spiritual miseries; and whereas we have divers Sins more peculiarly committed a­gainst this good Spirit, we do confess them with shame and sorrow, lamenting that we have stifled his good motions, and grieved this blessed Spirit; that we have not profited by those Ordinances, which are the means he uses to convert, confirm and comfort us, and have cherished evil thoughts, and pursued our wicked purposes in despite of the Methods used to purifie us; yet if we truly repent hereof he will forgive us; therefore let us penitent­ly and devoutly beseech him to [have mercy] up­on us, both as we are [miserable] and as we are [Sinners.]

§. 4. [O Holy blessed and glorious Trinity, &c.] We have owned the Trinity of Persons, and now we confess as Scripture teacheth us, that these three are one God, 1 John v. 7. and so we worship the whole Trinity together [as three persons and one God,] repeating the same great and necessary request for Mercy from the Father, Son and Holy Ghost to be shewed upon us [Miserable Sin­ners;] [Page 129] and if we omitted any Sins or miseries in the foregoing Catalogue, we may now remember them, and press them with an Importunity suteable to our great need of Mercy.

Sect. II. Of the Deprecations.

§. 1. HAving opened the way by the preceding Invocation, we now begin to ask; And because deliverance from Evil is the first step to fe­licity, and the proper business of Litany, we be­gin with these Deprecations, or as S. Paul calls them, Supplications, 1 Timoth. ii. 1. which he reck­ons as the first kind of Prayers, made for removing of Evil; And both the Eastern and Western Church do thus begin their Litanies, and both theirs and ours are a Paraphrase upon that Piece of the Lords Prayer, Deliver us from evil; and whether we re­spect the evil of Sin or the evil of Punishment, it is never unseasonable for us Miserable Sinners to pray to our [Good Lord to deliver us:] Where­fore our Church (after a Petition for Forbearance) doth here in a curious Method reckon up all the kinds of Evil in the World, as well those of Sin with the causes, effect, and kinds of them in the Heart and in the Life, in the sixth, seventh and eighth Petitions, as those of Punishment Temporal and Spiritual, in the ninth and tenth Petitions, from all which we pray to be delivered: Adding the [Page 130] means by which we desire to be delivered, viz. by all that Jesus did and suffered for us, in the eleventh and twelfth Petitions; and the peculiar times when we would be delivered, in our Life, in death, and at the last judgment, in the thirteenth Petition: Of which we will now treat more particular­ly.

§. 2. [Remember not Lord our Offences: &c.] Our requests ought to ascend by degrees, and therefore before we ask a perfect deliverance, we beg for the mercy of forbearance. We confess we have sinned with our Fathers, Psal. cvi. 6. and be­cause God may justly punish us, not only for our own Sins, but for theirs also; especially when we make them ours by imitation, as the Jews did of old, on whom God often visited the Sins of their Fathers, Exod. xx. 5. therefore we pray with them, Psal. lxxix. 8. O remember not against us the Sins of those that were before us Ita Augustin. R.D. Kimhi, and Dr. Ham­mond in Loc.: When God punishes Sins, he is said to remember them, and we know there is a vast heap of our own and our Fathers Sins yet unrevenged, all which if God should so remem­ber as to [take vengeance] on us for them, we were most miserable; so that we had need pray earnestly to avert this black cloud of judgments from us, and beseech him [to spare us,] which words were endited by God himself, who taught the Jews to say [spare thy people O Lord,] Joel ii. 17. and ordered the Priests with tears to repeat these words between the Porch and the Altar, in which place we read the Litany (in Cathedrals es­pecially) ever since; and surely he that bid us ask [Page 131] to be spared, intended to grant it; which we justly hope for, First, because he that we ask it of, is a [good] and gracious [Lord,] and we are [his People,] not only as he created us, but as [he re­deemed us,] our pardon is dearly purchased by his own Sons Blood, he spared not him, but did in­flict our deserved punishment on him, and there­fore we hope he will [spare us] for his sake: Yet if we cannot obtain to be wholly spared, then we beg his correction may be short and soon removed [and that he will not be angry with us for ever,] Psalm lxxix. 5. Isai. lxiv. 9. Or if we must be chastised a little in this World, however that we, his redeemed ones, may not fall under his eternal Anger, for that is of all other the most dreadful. To which all the Congregation answers with most passionate entreaties [spare us good Lord:] and so make it their own request, and declare they need and desire this pity and forbearance.

§. 3. [From all evil and mischief, &c.] The sum of all these Deprecations being, Deliverance from the Evils of Sin and Punishment, this Petiti­on begins with two general words that comprehend both, for [evil and mischief] signifie Wicked­ness and Misery [...]. ver­sio Petlaei.; and as the first, viz. Sin, is caused by the [crafts and assaults of the Devil,] so the second, viz. Misery is brought upon us by the just [wrath of God] here, and completed by [everlasting dam­nation] hereafter. The first and greatest, yea the only real evil, is Sin, which is the sole cause of all the [mischiefs] that do befall us, that therefore only deserves the name of [Evil,] and ought to [Page 132] be set in the first place; for if we be delivered from that, no mischief would happen to us: and though our folly is such that we pray against affliction ra­ther than Sin, Job xxxvi. 21. yet the Church teaches us that we begin at the wrong end, and should first pray to be delivered from Evil, and then from Mischief. And since wickedness is the Gate to let in all Miseries upon us, we are taught to consider what is the occasion of drawing us into it, viz. [the Crafts and assaults of the Devil;] he tempts sometimes by fraud, sometimes by force; he enti­ces us by guilded baits of pleasure into some Sins, and drives us by the fears of suffering, into others, and alas! he is too cunning and too mighty for us, he can deceive us, and terrifie us very easily; but our all-wise and almighty God can secure us against his craft and his power too: To him therefore we pray for deliverance, especially because if we be deluded by the crafts, or conquered by the assaults of the Devil, so as to commit Sin, we shall fall under [Gods wrath▪] and be punished with Losses, Crosses, Sickness, and temporal Death here, and without repentance meet with [everlasting damnation] hereafter, a state in which there is no ease, of which there is no end, and for which there is no remedy: Let us but review the danger we are in of Sinning, and the black and dire retinue that follow it, and no doubt we shall heartily say, From Sin and the punishment of it, from the causes leading to it and the consequences following on it, [Good Lord deliver us.]

§. 4. [From all blindness of heart, from Pride, &c.] After we have Prayed against Sin and Misery in general, we descend regularly to the [Page 133] particulars, and first we reckon up divers kinds of the most notorious Sins, beginning with the heart where all Sin begins, Matth. xv. 19. and there we recount, First the Sins concerning our selves; Secondly those concerning our Neighbours, placing in the Front that Sin which is the cause of all the rest, viz. [Blindness of Heart,] for this lets in Pride, Vain-glory and hypocrisie, Prov. xiv. 3. and all the Sins of Malice and uncharitableness, 1 John ii. 11. 'Tis sad for want of bodily eyes not to be able to distinguish white from black, but far more sad for want of the eyes of our Mind not to discern between good and evil, Isai. v. 20. such Men see no evil in Sin, no beauty in holiness, what Sin may they not commit? what danger are they like to escape, whose very light is darkness? This was the original of all the Jews wickedness, Rom. xi. 25. the cause of the Gentiles Impieties, Ephes. iv. 18. and is the Devils first advantage for our ruine; Wherefore from blindness of heart [Good Lord deliver us.] 2ly, [Pride] succeeds, which the Wise-man calls the beginning of Sin, Ecclus. x. 13. it was first committed by Lucifer, and first learned by Man, the one losing heaven, the other Paradise thereby: and it is a very foolish, ungrateful, and mischievous Sin; Foolish in us who have much to be ashamed at, even all that Evil which is our own; nothing to be proud of, becau e all that is good in us, is from God; And it is base ingratitude to him if we arrogate to our selves the praise of his free gifts; and alas! 'tis mischievous to our selves, because it hardens us against reproof, and hinders our amend­men, and makes our damnation almost unavoidable; and to others, whom it is apt to injure, despise and quarrel with upon all occasions; wherefore from [Page 134] Pride also [Good Lord deliver us.] 3ly, [Vain-glory] is the constant Companion of Pride, and the disease of them that only seek the praise of Men, whose judgments are weak, rash and unconstant, and many times their thoughts differ from their words, and what we call Praise is designing Flatte­ry. To be approved by God and good Men is solid glory, and not to be got but by really being good; but to hunt after promiscuous praise rather than to strive to deserve it, is a [vain glory] indeed, for it may make us proud, but doth not make us better; nay, it keeps us from growing better by fals­ly perswading us we are so already; and what will it signifie at last for foolish unconstant flattering Men to commend us, when good Men discover us here and God condemns us hereafter? Wherefore from this ridiculous and dangerous Sin also [Good Lord deliver us.] 4ly, [Hypocrisie] closeth this order of Sins, and is the means used by Pride to attain Vain-glory: and it is a design to mock God and deceive the World, by resolving to be evil, yet desiring to be thought good; it requires a great deal of wit and industry to carry on the plot, yet it is seldom long undiscovered; because such Men do violence to their nature, by the very semblan­ces of piety, and their works betray the cheat of their words; for they are not the same when you see them, as when you hear them, in the Clo­set as in the Church; none are more odious and ridiculous to Men when they are detected, nor more abominable to God always, because he always sees their Heart, and takes it as an affront to his Omniscience, that they dare pretend to be what they are not before his all-seeing Eyes, and there­fore none more hated by him here, nor more sad­ly [Page 135] punished by him hereafter; for the very Alcoran saith, the lowest and hottest region of Hell is re­served for Hypocrites; wherefore from Hypocrisie also [Good Lord deliver us.] 5ly, [Envy] is first of the next rank of Sins against our Neigh­bour, belonging to the heart, because it is the root of Hatred, Malice and all uncharitableness; it grieves at other Mens Prosperity, and rejoyces in their Misery, being directly contrary to the Nature of God, and a perfect imitation of the temper of the Devil; a Sin that disquiets the mind, and consumes the Bodies of such as are possessed with it, making a Man uneasy as long as there is any one happier than himself, and restless to bring all good and brave Men down to his own level, designing mis­chiefs with pleasure, and doing Villaines without remorse; ungrateful to God for what he receives, and blaspheming his very goodness to others; so that an Envious Man is an enemy to God, a plague to himself, and mischief to Mankind, and only fit company for damned Spirits; from [Envy] therefore [Good Lord deliver us.] 6ly, [Ha­tred] naturally springs from Envy, and that which doth so, is implacable, 1 Sam. xviii. 8. Anger is a sud­den aversion, and excusable as rash and soon over, but Hatred is a constant and setled aversation of our Mind, from our Brethren and Companions in the same Faith and hope of Heaven, and God knows it makes divisions in Kingdoms, Churches and Families, and fills the World with Lying and e­vil speaking, and is so directly against the nature of the God of Love and the Gospel of Peace, that such a Man cannot hope God will hear his Prayers, Matth. v. 23. nor admit him into his Kingdom here­after, 1 John iv. 20. on which account we had need [Page 136] pray, from hatred also [Good Lord deliver us.] 7ly. [Malice] is a Branch of the same Root, being a continued hatred with purposes of Revenge; and because the malitious are ready and resolved to do any wickedness, therefore it is called in Greek and Latine by names signifying Wickedness; it is crafty as the Fox and cruel as the Tyger, ever designing or executing mischief, and the Man who harbors it, is forsaken by the Spirit, acted by the Devil, and under impossibilities of being pardoned by God, because he will not forgive his Brother, so that the just Vengeance of Heaven is secretly contriving his, while he is unjustly pursuing his Neighbours ruine; from this Sin also therefore [Good Lord deliver us. Lastly, [all Vncharitableness] brings up the rear of these Sins, because they all are entertained in Souls void of Charity, only the for­mer are all bent to do evil, and this resolves to do no good, which in case our Neighbour be in great need may be also a doing evil; we were made for mutual help of one another, and all we have is given us on that condition: and the example of God, his precepts and promises, as well as the uncertainty of our own condition, oblige us to be kind to others, so that the uncharitable Man sins against the Laws of his Creation, and the rules of his Religion, & cannot hope for that charity which he hourly needs at Gods hands; wherefore from all un­charitableness [Good Lord deliver us;] from com­mitting any of these Sins our selves, or suffering by our own or others practice of them, we pray that our Good Lord would deliver us.

§. 5. [From Fornication and all other deadly Sin, &c.] From the Heart Sin spreads further into the Life and actions, and thither our Litany now pur­sues [Page 137] it, beginning with one of the most filthy, yet in this lewd Age the boldest Sin, viz. [Fornica­tion,] which S. Paul reckons first among the Works of the Flesh, Galat. v. 19. and it is not to be re­strained to the defiling of single Persons, but com­prehends all acts of Uncleanness, Acts xv. 29. And indeed these Sins are shameful in their own Nature, punished by the Laws of God and Man, they defile both Soul and Body, and have no ex­cuse, because we are allowed two remedies for them, Mortification or Marriage; No Sin more early or easily steals on unwary youth, none is more hard to be shaken off, when once it hath got root; if it be at first checkt, it is easily conquered, but when once we give way to it, it grows insatiable and makes Men sacrifice their Time, their Estates, their good Name and their very health and life to it: It destroys many Families, and dissolves the bonds of Matrimony, which tye the World toge­ther; it besots the Wits, decays the strength, and takes away the courage of the bravest Men, and makes the other Sex loathsome, infamous and contemptible; the pleasure is mean, short and un­satisfying, bringing down a Man to the level of a Beast, but the guilt, the shame, the diseases, and the stain remain till death, and make the very Me­mory of such Persons hated and despised: And yet besides all this it is generally most severely punished by God, upon private Persons, yea, upon whole Nations, and infinite are the examples of particu­lar Sinners, yea, of whole Families and Kingdoms destroyed by it, and after all, there is a dreadful threatning of eternal pains for this momentany plea­sure; wherefore from all sorts of filthy lust [Good Lord deliver us:] This is one deadly Sin, but [Page 138] there are many more which are notorious and usual­ly damnable in the event, from this therefore [and all other deadly Sin] we pray to be delivered. We do not hold with the Papists, that any Sin is Venial in its own Nature, but yet with S. John we affirm as to the event, There is a Sin unto death, and there is a Sin not unto death, 1 John v. 16, 17. And it is from all those open and grievous Sins of presumption, which keep Men from Repentance, and usually end in Damnation, which we pray to be delivered, un­der the name of [deadly Sins,] of which we have a Catalogue, 1 Cor. vi. 9, 10. viz. Fornication, Ido­latry, abominable lust, stealing, covetousness, drun­kenness, railing and extortion, the actors of which, he saith, shall not inherit the Kingdom of God. These Crimes are hainous, and the very highway to Dam­nation, wherefore [good Lord deliver us from them:] As also from [all the Deceits of the World, the Flesh and the Devil,] which compre­hend all other kinds of Sin. Now all Sin is in it self a Deceit, Prov. xi. 18. managed by those three enemies which we renounced in Baptism, [the World] propounds evil objects, the [Flesh] meets them with evil desires, and by both the [De­vil deceives] us: The World cheats us with its pomps and vanities, with business, company, and wealth; The Flesh deludes us with the Lusts of eat­ing, and drinking to excess, of sinful pleasures and recreations; The Devil deceives us by repre­senting Sin delightful, and Virtue difficult; but we pray to God to open our eyes to see these deceits, and from them all we beg of our [Good Lord to deliver us.]

[Page 139]§. 6. From Lightning and Tempest, from Plague, &c.] We have hitherto prayed against Sin the cause, and now we may hope to prevail for the removal of the effects, viz. Judgments, which are many and very terrible; 1. In the Air a­bove us there may be dreadful [Lightnings] and Thunder, which the Gentiles called the Voice of God, John xii. 29. and this may burn our Goods and houses, or destroy our Persons, if God direct them against us, Wisd. v. 21. The Atheistical Caligula was wont to run to hide his head whenever it thun­dered; but we know there is no defence like hum­ble Prayers, by which Moses and Samuel did remove these Terrors, and therefore we pray to God [to deliver us.] 2. To these we add Storms and [Tem­pest,] when Rain, hail or snow comes with fierce and raging Winds, which often make great de­struction by Sea and Land, and no human wit or Power can make any defence against the sad effects, but only God who makes the Storm a Calm, Psal. cvii. 29. to him therefore we pray [to deliver us] from this evil also. 3. The same Air may be infe­cted with [Plague and Pestilence,] so that with the breath we take in to sustain our lives, we may suck in that poison which will bring death, and there is no defence against this dreadful Infection but only Gods Mercy, nothing can prevent, or re­move it, nothing save us or our Friends from it, but Prayer, Psal. cvi. 30. wherefore we take this Method, and Pray the [Good Lord to deliver us. 4. [Famine] is another sore Judgment, when the Earth beneath us doth not yield its Fruit, to the impoverishing and destruction of many thousands, yet this Elijah removed also, 1 Kings xviii. 42. by devout Prayer to him that makes the Earth to yield [Page 140] its fruit, and when we consider the Miseries which accompany this terrible Calamity, we also earnestly pray to him [to deliver us.] 5. [Battel & Murder] are also God's Judgments, though not immediate­ly inflicted as the former, but by the hands of wick­ed and cruel Men; and David chose to suffer the other, rather than this great Evil; for who can reckon the miseries that attend on cruel Wars, which are now managed with as much barbarous rigour among Christians, as of old among the Heathen; wherefore with Jehosaphat we apply our selves to the God of Peace, 2 Chron. xx. 6. and de­sire him from War, and the murders and desolations that attend it, to [deliver us.] 6. [Sudden death] is a personal and particular Judgment, but a very great one; that is, for a man to dye either untimely, Job xv. 32. which Scripture calls dying before ones day, that is, before the term which Nature al­lots: Or it is to dye a violent death by drowning, burning, stabbing, &c. which the Romans called not dying ones own death: Or else it signifies the dy­ing in a moment of time, without warning or ap­parent cause: And surely all these kinds of death are to be prayed against; 1. Because they leave our Relations without comfort; 2. They leave our worldly concerns unsetled; 3. They deprive us of the necessary preparative Ordinances for death; and 4. They give us no time to fit our Souls for our great accompt: And though God sometimes takes away very good men thus, and so we must not censure; yet whoever considers his own unfit­ness to dye, will easily fear, that sudden may be unprepared death to himA subitaneâ & improvisâ morte, Libera nos. Missal. sec. us. Sarum.; and therefore pru­dence, as well as humility, will [Page 141] teach him to pray, That from this which may prove so great an evil, the [Good Lord will deliver him.]

§. 7. [From all Sedition, privy Conspiracy, &c.] The former Evils were levelled against our own Persons and Estate, but these aim at the ruin of the Kingdom and the Church. Sedition and privy Conspiracy endeavour to subvert the Govern­ment; False Doctrine and Heresie attempt to de­stroy Religion: To which (on occasion of our late accursed Civil War) since his Majesties happy Re­stauration, was added, [From Rebellion—and Schism:] And good reason was there so to do, since that Rebellion and Schism did murder one of our best Kings, and thousands of his Loyal Subjects, and also pull the Church to pieces: We have seen the sad effects, and therefore we pray against the Causes: First, As to the State, [From all Sedi­tion, privy Conspiracy, and Rebellion:] 1. [Sedition] is when discontented and designing men ingratiate with the People, and alienate them from their Governours, by pretences of Tyranny, by aggravating grievances, complaining of evil Counsellors, and suggesting Fears and jealousies of designs against their Liberties and Religion; which is the way to unsettle them, and take away their Loyalty and love to their Prince, and then they are apt to mutiny, and ready to serve the wicked ends of these evil Men: which Sin, though it be guilded with the Mask of Religion, and the Managers of it boast themselves the Patrons of the Peoples Liber­ty, yet Scripture condemns it, Prov. xxiv. 21. and threatens ruin to the Seducers and seduced both; The Roman Laws made it Capital, and the Church [Page 142] Canons degraded the Clergy that were guilty of it, yea, our own Laws make it Treason, because it disturbs the Government, hinders Trade, tends to subvert the Peace of the Nation, and to put the People upon one of the two following Mischiefs, viz. 2. [Privy Conspiracy,] and secret Plots against the Life of the King, (if the Party be but feeble,) which Plots are cunningly devised and secured by Oaths of Secrecy, designing to involve us all in blood and ruin in one moment, as the late Popish Plot had done, if God had not very wonderfully prevented it: Or else Sedition, if it can draw in many, ends in 3. [Rebellion] and open resistance of the King by force of Arms; a Sin, though for­bid by Jesus, Matth. xxii. 21. and declared to be damnable by S. Paul, Rom. xiii. 2. though detested by the Primitive Christians in their greatest oppres­sion and persecution, and though it brings the most bloody War into the Bowels of our Native Coun­try; yet we have seen a race of infamous Hypo­crites begin and carry it on under pretence of Re­ligion and Conscience; and if the fresh remem­brance of the blessed Kings Murder, and of all the Blood, Rapine, and Sacriledge they brought upon us, did not secure this Nation against being twice cheated with the same trick, their followers could wish to act it over again; but I hope God will pre­vent them and all others from executing such wick­ed intentions, while we pray [From all Sedition, privy Conspiracy, and Rebellion, Good Lord deliver us.] Secondly, There are three other Plagues to the Church, springing from the same root, Galat. v. 20. and tending to the same ends, as Jeroboam and Judas of Galilee witness, 1 Kings xii. 27. Acts v. 37. which we also pray against; [Page 143] 1. [False Doctrine,] used by Papists and by Se­ctaries both, with intent to prepare their deluded Proselytes for Sedition, privy Conspiracy and Re­bellion; indeed all False Doctrine, though specu­lative, is apt to make men giddy, and stir up strife, but if the Doctrines be practical, then they are fa­tal and contagious, and we had need pray earnest­ly to God to deliver us from them. 2. [Heresie] is one sort of false Doctrine, contradicting the Articles of Faith, and maintained with obstinacy; it cuts men off from the Communion of the Church, and brings them into peril of damnation, 2 Peter ii. 1. it divides the Church, exposes Religion to the contempt of Atheists, and embroils the Nation where it spreads, so that Heathen Persecutors ne­ver used more Cruelty than the Arrians and Dona­tists of old, and the German Anabaptists of late did against the true Christians: And when the Devil could not stop the growth of the Gospel by Persecution, he did it by this engine of Heresie, which made the old Christian Emperors, as well as our Kings, make Laws to suppress it, the only difference being, that their Laws were executed, and ours are not, which makes them so bold and dangerous in our times; but this is a good reason why we should be more earnest in our Prayers with God [to deliver us] from the mischiess thereof. 3. [Schism] is another of these Evils, when the Opinion is not in matter of Faith, but of Worship or Discipline, and the parties refuse to pray, hear Gods Word, or receive the Sacraments with the Church, separating themselves into private Con­venticles on this occasion: And though our Facti­ons glory in it, as a sign of their purity, and being more spiritual; S. Paul makes it the mark of their [Page 144] being Carnal, 1 Cor. iii. 3. The Principles indeed are not so bad as in Heresie, yet the effects are as mischievous, for they create and nourish discord, weaken the true Religion, and expose it to be de­spised by Atheists, and destroyed by Papists; they make the People proud and ungovernable, and are the Forerunners of utter ruin, for which causes the old pious Emperours fined the Schismaticks, and seized their Conventicles; and whether our Governours see fit to proceed that way or no, we will ever pray from [Schism good Lord deliver us.] Finally, We conclude with the last and worst of Gods Judgments, when no other Punish­ments will reclaim men, viz. [Hardness of heart, and contempt of Gods Word and Command­ments,] when Gods Grace is rejected, and his Offers slighted, his Mercies abused, and his Word trampled on, then his Patience is tired out, and he withdraws his Grace, and gives up such Persons or People to a reprobate Sense, the usual Prologue to Destruction and Damnation, from which deplora­ble estate, and all the former evils, we pray [Good Lord deliver us.]

§. 8. [By the mystery of thy holy Incarnati­on.] It is so great a mercy to be delivered from all the former evils of Sins and punishment, that we had need beg it by the most prevailing methods, and such is this which the Latines called Obsecration, when we urge the party of whom we ask, by all that is dear to him; so S. Paul beseeches, by the Mercies of God, Rom. xii. 1. and Daniel intreats God by all his Goodness, Truth, and Mercy, Dan. ix. 16, 19. and the Primitive Christians in their Litanies importune Jesus, By his precious Blood: So [Page 145] we do here commemorate all that our dear Re­deemer did for us in his Life, at his Death, and after his Death, and by all the Love he shewed to us, by all the Torments he endured for us, by all the glorious things he intends toward us, we beseech him to deliver us from these evils: And this is that which ignorant malice hath censured, as I know not what kind of Conjuration, when it is the most devout and moving Oratory in the World; 1. We remember [His holy Incarnation and Nativity,] how low he stooped, and how many difficulties he broke through to become our Savi­our, and to make himself capable of feeling the miseries we endure, and by all the condescension, kindness and pity of these Acts we pray him to [deliver us.] 2ly, We remember [his Circum­cision and his Baptism,] both Rites of Purifica­tion; and though he had need of neither, yet for our sakes he submitted to both, and by the bloody painfulness of the one, and the great humility shew­ed in the other, we who have been baptized with him, pray that he will [deliver us.] 3ly, We re­member [His Fasting and Temptation,] which he also was content to undergo, that he might sympathize with us in hunger and thirst, and in all our natural necessities, as also in all the trouble we have in resisting temptation to sin and wickedness; so that he feels our miseries, and knows our dan­ger of falling into Sin, and by his infinite pity and goodness in doing all this for us, we beseech him most importunately and say, [Good Lord deli­ver us.]

§. 9. [By thine Agony and bloody sweat.] We proceed now to that which Jesus endured for [Page 146] us at his Death, beseeching him to pity and deliver us, 1. [By his Agony and bloody sweat,] the first Scene of his dolorous Passion; for while he was making his last Litany, Luke xxii. 24. the dread­ful apprehensions of his approaching Sufferings not only caused a violent sweat with great drops like drops of blood to issue from him, but through the extremity of his anguish, blood mingled with that sweat, fell from his holy Face, so that he knows what it is to be in fear and terror, as we now are, and by the trouble he then felt, we beseech him to [deliver us.] 2ly, [By his Cross and Passion.] The Cross is here put (not for the Wood which Papists superstitiously adore, but) for the Torments he suffered thereon, Hebr. xii. 2. and his Cross com­prehends the pains of his Body, his Passion, the an­guish of his mind; so that we intreat him by the renting of the Nails, and piercing of the Spear, by the torture and the languishing of that bloody Death, by the grief and horror that then seized his fainting Soul; by all this we beseech him to [de­liver us,] which is as if a Child should beg of his dear Mother, by all the throes and torture she en­dured in her travail of him; and the argument with Jesus is more effectual. 3ly, [By his precious death and burial.] Death is the wages of Sin, and the King of Terrors, but he who had no sin submit­ted to it, and lay three days under the Power of it; the merit of which was so great, and the price of it so infinitely valuable, that God accepted it as our ransom from Death and Damnation; and can we now doubt of his love who laid down his Life for us? shall his death avail nothing? must we dye also? let us with faith and love beseech him by this lowest and last step of his sufferings to [deliver [Page 147] us.] 4ly, [By his glorious Resurrection and Ascension.] His Passion declared his Love, and his Exaltation manifests his Power, and both of them shew that Jesus is willing and able to deliver us; he broke the Chains of Death and opened the Gates of the Grave, and unless our miseries are stronger, he can deliver us. He is now returned to his own glory, and there intercedes for us, so that we need not doubt, if we cry to him in our distress, but he will graciously [deliver us.] 5ly, [By the coming of the Holy Ghost.] Since Jesus could not ever stay with us, he promised before he went to Hea­ven to send his Spirit to be the Guide and Comforter of his Church while the world endured; and the fulfilling that promise declared his care of us, his interest in Heaven, and his never-failing Truth; wherefore by this wonderful Mercy also we beseech him [to deliver us.] These Arguments devoutly urged have always a mighty force in them: But on the chief Festivals of the Church we should pause, and especially press the proper motive of that time, His Incarnation and Nativity at Christmas &c. His Circumcision on Newyears-day, His bap­tism on the Epiphany, His Fasting and Tempta­tion in Lent, His Agonies, Cross, and Passion, Death and Burial on Good-Friday, His Resurre­ction on Easter-day His Ascension on Holy Thursday, And his giving the Holy Ghost upon Whitsunday; And the solemnity of these Sea­sons will help us more effectually to commemorate these Mercies, and by them to beg more earnestly for deliverance.

[Page 148]§. 10. In all time of our tribulation, &c.] We have always some Evils nigh us or upon us, and therefore it is seasonable at all times to say [good Lord deliver us:] Yet there are some times in which we are in greater need than others; the Old Lita­nies of the East and West put in Death and Judg­ment, as these special times; but We have added the time of our Adversity and Prosperity, between which our whole Life is divided, to comprehend the time of our Living here: [In all time of our tribulation,] for this is the biggest part of our Lives; we have many sorts of Affliction, and are then tempted to impatience, murmuring and de­spair, to which we should yield without the sup­port of Gods Grace, and therefore we pray (not from the time of Tribulation, for that were pre­sumptuous to ask, but) in that sad condition God will please to comfort and strengthen us while it continues, and also in his due time to [deliver us] out of it. 2ly, [In all time of our wealth,] that is, of our Welfare and Prosperity, 1 Cor. x. 24. for though this seem pleasant, it is dangerous, and hath been a snare to many Persons, who have paid their Souls for the price of their prosperous condition, and unless it be sanctified, it encreaseth our Pride, enflames our Lusts, multiplies our Sins, and makes us neglect God, forget Heaven, and grow careless of our Souls; & therefore we had need pray that we may be humble, thankful, sober and wise in our good fortune; and that we may not be ruined by it, we beseech our Good Lord to [deliver us] from all the Charms and Snares of it. 3ly, [In the hour of death.] Whether we spend our days in trouble or prosperity, they must end in Death, and when that comes, Sathan is active, and we una­ble [Page 149] to resist him, he makes his last attempt upon us, and if we come off conquerors then, he can never hurt us more: The pains are grievous, the sears (if we have our senses) many, and if not, (however) the danger is great of our falling into despair, impatience, or apostasie; yet from this hour no Man may be delivered, only we pray that in it our good Lord will [deliver us:] It will be too late to cry then, if we have not made our peace before; so that we remember that hour now, and prepare for it by begging of God to deliver us then. 4ly, [In the day of Iudgment.] This fol­lows Death, Hebr. ix. 27. and no Man can be deli­vered from it, but those who fear God and repent shall be acquitted in it; and considering the ter­rors of the dissolving world, the Majesty of our all-seeing Judge, the malice of our infernal Accu­sers, and the multitude of our Sins, who is there but had need to beg all his life long, that he may find Mercy in that Day, in which if God please to deliver us, we can never be condemned more, but shall be most happy to all Eternity? then therefore, and then especially we pray that the [good Lord] will [deliver us. Amen.]

Sect. III. Of the Intercessions.

§. 1. THis part of our Litany is instituted by God, who commands us to make intercessions for [Page 150] all Men, 1 Tim. ii. 1. and drawn up by the best and most Primitive Forms, being used first in those Ages wherein the Christians Charity was so large as to desire Blessings for all sorts of Men; a sordid or an Evil Man in his fear may pray for his own Deliverance, but he must have a charitable Soul who can with equal devotion Pray for others, as for his own self: And he who would so pray, cannot have a more methodical or comprehensive Form than these Intercessions, which reckon up eve­ry degree of Men in their due place, and leave out none that we would wish to pray for: Begin­ning first with the whole Church, Petition 14th, And then respecting this Church, praying herein for the King, that he may be Orthodox, Pious and Prosperous, Petit 15, 16, 17. as also for his fami­ly, Pet. 18. For all Orders of the Clergy, Pet. 19. for all degrees of the Nobility, Pet. 20. for all kinds of Magistrates, Pet. 21. and for all the Sub­jects of this Realm, Pet. 22. Thirdly, It compre­hends all Men in any Church, and teaches us to pray for their mutual Peace, Pet. 23. for the Piety of those of the right Faith, Pet. 24, 25. for the conversion of those who are deceived, Pet. 26. and for the confirmation of the weak, Pet. 27. As also for all the afflicted in general, Pet. 28. and especially for such whose afflictions hinder them from coming to Church, Pet. 29. yea, it teaches us to pray for all Men, Pet. 30. especially for our enemies, Pet. 31. Fourthly, We beg for our selves temporal plenty, Pet. 32. and Spiritual grace for our repentance, Pardon and reformation, Pet. 33. And this is the Method and curious order of these Intercessions.

[Page 151]§. 2. [We Sinners do beseech thee to hear us O Lord God, and that it may please thee to rule, &c.] This Preface is the same with the Li­turgies of the Greek and Latine Church, and lest it should seem to be presumption for us to ask for others who are unworthy to ask for our selves, we do confess we are [Sinners], and though he heareth not obstinate and impenitent Sinners, John ix. 31. yet such as are penitent and acknowledge their faults he doth hear, or else he must reject the Prayers of the best Men, because all have sinned. Trusting in his Mercy therefore, though we be Sin­ners, we humbly [beseech him to hear us] while we pray for others; and first according to the Pri­mitive Pattern we Pray for [the Holy Church uni­versal] in which all particular Churches are con­tained; we know it is dispersed and distressed with Heresie, Persecution, and Schism, and though Christ have promised never to let it fail totally and finally, (Matth. xvi. 18. Chap. xxviii. ult.), yet his promise doth not supersede but encourage our Prayers, and therefore we beseech the great Lord, Governor and head of this Body the Church, who loves it and bought it with his precious blood, [to rule and govern it in the right way,] to keep it from deserting the Faith, or corrupting the Wor­ship of God, from teaching Heresie and conniving at Schism; and if the Church be guided in the right way, all the true Members of it shall be safe; and therefore every one of us who claim this Priviledge must very humbly and earnestly in our own words answer & say, [we beseech thee to hear us good Lord;] we pray to a good Lord, and if he hear us our request shall be granted; therefore after every single Petition, let the People pause a while, [Page 152] and reflecting on the Matter of every request, let them with a great devotion say here and elsewhere, [we beseech thee to &c.]

§. 3. [That it may please thee to keep and strengthen, &c.] The Light of Nature taught the Gentiles to require their Priests to pray for their Kings; so that Pliny begs of Trajan the Emperor an Office among the Priests, that he might publickly Pray for him in right of his Priesthood, whom he had hitherto Prayed for only with a Private Devotion Plin. ad Trajan. lib. 10. Epist. 8.. And Scripture enjoyns Chri­stians to make Intercessions for Kings, 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2. Where­upon this was ever one part of the Primitive Litanies, to Pray for the Conversion of their Princes, if so be they were Heathen, and for their Confirmation when they were Christians; and since we have that comfort that our King is of the right Faith, and doth truly worship God, Our first request for him is, that God will [keep and strengthen] him in the True Religion, and that he may adorn the best of Religions with [righte­ousness and holiness of Life,] without which no Worship is acceptable to God, Ecclus. xxxv. 1, 2, 3. He is the supream Governor of the Church in his Dominions, and therefore his being Ortho­dox in Faith and a true Worshipper of God, is the greatest security upon Earth to the true Religion, to which a good King is a Nursing Father: He al­so is set in the highest place, and therefore his liv­ing a righteous and holy life hath influence upon very many, and gives so much credit and authority to Virtue, that it inclines all, either to embrace it, or at least to pretend so to do: And Doubtless it [Page 153] will be both the happiness of King and People if this Petition do prevail, and therefore let us heartily say, [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 4. [That it may please thee to rule his heart, &c.] Now since no Profession of Religion is sin­cere, nor no practice of Holiness lasting, unless they be rooted in the heart and mind, We here pray that Religion and Holiness may be planted in the Kings heart, and for our comfort we are taught that The Kings heart is in the hand of the Lord, as the rivers of water he turneth it whithersoever he pleaseth, Prov. xxi. i. Wherefore we pray that the Lord will [rule the heart] of our King [in his Faith, fear and Love,] and replenish his Soul with such grace [that he may ever] put his trust [and affiance in God, and ever seek his honour and glory:] That is, that he may be throughly and sincerely pious from inward Principles, which will never fail; and if he believe in God and fear to offend him, and [...]ove to please him, he will begin nothing but what is good; if he Trust in God, he will coura­giously carry on the good he doth begin, and if he always aim at Gods Glory, he will accomplish what­ever he undertakes, so as to please God and profit us. A Prince thus endued with inward Piety is more happy and more honourable than if he had conquer­ed the whole World; he is dear to God, and benefi­cial to his People; Beloved and prosperous while he lives, and his Memory shall be blessed in after­generations, so that it is his interest and ours also, that we should every one say hereto with great fer­vency, [We beseech thee, &c.]

[Page 154]§. 5. [That it may please thee to be his de­fender, &c.] Our first requests are for the Kings spiritual good, and because if he be pious, that will engage God to defend and keep him from suffer­ings, or to make him more glorious by them, therefore we beg Grace and Piety for him first: Yet withall we do not omit to pray also for his temporal safety, for he is but a Mortal Man, and liable to more Dangers than any other, nor can any hurt him but they injure us all; therefore for our own sakes as well as his, we pray to that God whose peculiar Providence is over Kings, [to be his defender and keeper,] for no Arms nor Guards can secure him from Treason and Conspiracy, without the watchful eye and mighty Arm of God secure him, even in times of Peace, for then are bloody Plots and snares contrived for him: And for times of War, if any be so wicked to rise up and resist our King, they are our enemies as well as his, however they may pretend Religion, Li­berty, Property and the like; and therefore we must wish the victory may always fall on the Kings side; and since Rebels resist Gods ordi­nance as well as the Kings Authority, we may justly hope the King of Heaven will defeat them, and not prosper those here for whom he hath prepared Damnation hereafter, Rom. xiii. 2. But whoever they be, foreign Powers or domestick Rebels, who are the Kings open foes, or his secret enemies, that is, malicious traducers of his Government, with them that flatter him to his hurt, for their own base ends, we Pray [that] God will give [him the victory over all] sorts of [his enemies,] and let every Loyal Subject say, [we beseech thee, &c.]

[Page 155]§. 6. [That it may please thee to bless and pre­serve, &c.] The Kings happiness is not complete unless his whole Family be blessed also, and there­fore the Ancient Offices usually named the Palace, or the Empress and the Royal Children in this place, as was noted before: Those from whom Kings may spring, or who may come to the Royal dignity themselves, ought to be remembred in our Publick Prayers, because the Publick is concerned in their piety and safety, and upon it ordinarily de­pends the security of the Government, and the felicity of the next generation; and therefore for our own and our posterities sake we use these two comprehensive words concerning them, that they may be [blessed and preserved,] that is, supplied with all spiritual and temporal Blessings, and kept from all kinds of evil. If they be of the right Faith, then this is a Prayer for their confirmation in it; and if they be perverted, this is a Prayer for their Con­version; however the circumstances are, a pru­dent and Loyal Devotion will teach us so to apply it that we may heartily answer, [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 7. [That it may please thee to illuminate all Bishops, &c.] The Jews and Gentiles both reckoned their Chief Priests to be next in Dignity to their Kings, and so did our Pious Ancestors, wherefore they are placed next, as being (next to the King) the most considerable members of the Catholick Church, and all Ancient Offices do par­ticularly Pray for the Clergy, distinguished here into those three Orders, which have from the beginning been ever in the Church, [Bish­ops, Priests, and Deacons Vid. Ignatii Episto­las, &c.] [Page 156] And the Prayer we make for them is the same which Moses made for Levi, Deut. xxxiii. 8. Let thy Ʋrim and thy Thummim be with thy Holy one: that is, Illu­mination and Perfection, or as we here paraphrase it, True knowledge and understanding of Gods word, and a holy Life to shew and set it forth: which contain all that is necessary to be asked for them. 1. [True knowledge and understanding of Gods word,] They are lights of the World, Matth. v. 14. and shine by a borrowed Light from God, Jam. i. 5.17. and being to guide others they must not be blind themselves; they are to teach the ig­norant, to satisfie the doubtful, to convince Here­ticks, and convert Sinners, and therefore had need be skilled in all sorts of learning, but especially in that which is the [truest knowledge,] viz. the understanding of Gods Word, the Storehouse whence all their provision is taken, and therefore all Learning without this is useless in a Clergy-Man, and if he rightly understand this he is throughly fur­nished for every good work belonging to his Office, 2 Tim. iii. 17. And that this their knowledge may give Light to others, we pray [that both by their preaching and Living they may set it forth and shew it accordingly.] Plain and practical Preaching is the first way of setting forth the word of Life, Philip. ii. 16. and is very useful for instructi­on, reproof, exhortation and comfort; it hath converted many and confirmed more, and must not be omitted; but then nothing will make our preaching more effectual, than when our Lives and our Doctrine do agree, for that shews we believe what we Preach, and are willing to draw in that yoak which we put upon others; and our example makes all our exhortations weighty, and strips evil Men [Page 157] of all their pretences for disobedience; Wherefore let the Priest heartily say this Prayer for himself; and when the People consider what benefit they have by a Learned, Laborious, and pious Clergy, let them heartily joyn in saying, [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 8. [That it may please thee to endue the Lords, &c.] Those that are eminent in the State follow, who by reason of their dignity and their charge need our Particular Prayers, and use to be reckoned up in the old Liturgy under the phrase of the whole Palace: First, [the Lords of the Coun­cil,] whom the King chooses out of his best and wisest Subjects, to advise with in all weighty af­fairs, for in the multitude of Councellors there is safety, Prov. xi. 14. And because many important cases come before them highly concerning the Church and State both, we pray that God will [endue them with grace, wisdom, and understand­ing.] Grace will make them good Men, and faithful Advisers, so that they will never deceive their Master for their own private ends; Wisdom and Understanding will make them able and discreet in their Advice, so that they shall seldom be deceived themselves, which are the two proper­ties of a complete Councellor; And because [the Nobility] are the Persons from among which these are chosen, therefore we make the same Prayer for them [all,] as well the greater as the lesser Orders of them, that they whose place is high, whose power is great, and whose honour gives great efficacy to their Example, may be vir­tuous and discreet, and then they will be fit to serve their King and Country, they will promote Religion, be ornaments to their Titles, and a [Page 158] blessing to their own Families and to the whole Na­tion; whereas if they be debauched or void of discretion, their honour doth but expose them to more contempt, and make their examples more mischievous; they are unserviceable to their Prince, a blot to their Ancestors, and usually the ruine of their Name and House; So that both with respect to the Publick, and to the Private interests of the greatest Subjects we all ought to subjoyn here also [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 9. [That it may please thee to bless and keep the Magistrates.] Our Magistrates accor­ding to Jethro's counsel, Exod. xviii. 21. are usu­ally chosen out of the better ranks of Men, who have no need to fear the Anger, nor take the bribes of such as come for Justice; these therefore are placed next, as in the Primitive Offices, and God commands us to make intercessions, not on­ly for Kings, but for all in authority, 1 Tim. ii. 1. And since Gods Providence sets them up, we first pray that he will [bless] them with success, [and keep] them from all the dangers which their Of­fices expose them to; and more particularly that he will [give them grace to execute Iustice and to maintain Truth.] The end of their Institution is first to execute Justice between Man and Man, by patiently hearing and uprightly determining all causes without fear or favour, rendring to all their Dues, and seeing that the Laws and their Senten­ces grounded on them, be duly executed on all in­jurious persons and malefactors; Secondly they are [To maintain Truth,] that is, to defend the true Religion, by encouraging those who profess it, and providing for those that teach it, as also by [Page 159] suppressing and punishing Heresie, Schism and Sa­criledge, and whatever tends to undermine or de­stroy the Truth; and indeed Religion and Justice are the two Pillars of every Kingdom; if one fail, the other cannot long stand, and the whole Fabrick will be ruined; therefore it is every good Subjects duty to pray, that the Magistrates may have Grace to secure Justice and Truth, and he is no friend to himself nor his Country, who will not say [we be­seech thee, &c.]

§. 10. [That it may please thee to bless and keep all thy people.] We have Prayed for the Go­vernors, and now we Pray for the Governed, the lowest indeed but the most numerous part of the Body Politick, and if they be not safe and happy, the Governors are not prosperous, Prov. xiv. 28. Wherefore we pray that they also may be [bles­sed] with plenty and prosperity, and [kept] from misery and mischief; and this we hope God will grant, because by professing the True Religion, they are properly stiled [his people,] so that with David we pray that God will save his people and bless his own inheritance, Psalm xxviii. 2. and this we must here do with a peculiar respect to the Peo­ple of this Nation which is the place of our Birth and residence, the seat of our Kindred and Friends, the Sanctuary of our Religion and Property, in whose peace we shall have Peace: Yet the words are general enough to take in all Christians in the World, and we may here Pray, that God will bless them with Piety and prosperity, and keep them from Apostasie and Adversity; that he will bless them who are under Christian Princes, and keep them who live under Turks and Pagans; and [Page 160] so comprehensive a request deserves that all of us do devoutly conclude it with, [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 11. [That it may please thee to give to all Nations, &c.] Our Charity begins at home, but doth not end there, being extended to the whole Word, the peace of which we here beg. Our God is the God, and Jesus the Prince of Peace; he brought Peace to the Earth, and taught us that all Mankind were Brethren, and therefore we pray that all Nations as well as ours may have, 1. [Vni­ty] at home among themselves, and be free from Civil Wars and intestine jars, which will bring a Nation to desolation sooner than any foreign Force, Matth. xii, 25. 2ly, [Peace] with all their Neigh­bor Nations, so as there may be no unjust Invasi­ons nor cruel Depopulations, no bloody Battels by Sea or Land, which make so many widows and fatherless, but that Mankind may be quiet and live secure. 3ly, [Concord,] that is, that there may be mutual Leagues, Commerce, and Correspon­dence maintained between all the Kingdoms of the World, which will make Princes Crowns sit easie, and fill their Coffers as well as their Subjects pur­ses, making all Nations abound in plenty and pros­perity; yea, this would tend to the propagating Christianity to all the World; And though we can scarce hope this shall be universally granted, yet we know God can do it, and we ought in charity to wish it; we shall doubtless prevail for some, and if it be no more, it deserves that all of us should earnestly subjoyn to it, [we beseech thee, &c.]

[Page 161]§. 12. [That it may please thee to give us a heart, &c.] It is now time to look inward and to ask somewhat for our Souls; Temporal Peace is a great, though not a lasting Blessing, but Virtue never fails. And first we Pray that Principles of it may be planted in our hearts, viz. the Love and Fear of God: Then that the practice of it may be seen in our Lives, by diligent living after his Com­mandments, 1. [To give us a heart to love and fear God.] His Love will make us easily, freely, and readily, observe all the duties he bids us to do: His Fear will keep us constantly from consenting to any of those Sins he hath forbidden us to commit; yea if we truly love him we shall fear to offend him, and by fearing to offend him we shall come to love him more: Wherefore if these two Principles be in our hearts, there is no doubt but our Lives will be diligently framed according to his Command­ments. All the Sins we commit spring either from our loving something more than God, as our Sins of Omission, and those that pleasure invites us to do: Or from our fearing somthing more than God, as want, or Mens anger, viz. those Sins which we are fright­ed into, with imaginary fears of some dangers, or miseries. But if we can get our hearts possessed with the Love and fear of God above all, then 2. We shall [diligently live after his command­ments.] Our principal and constant care and de­light will be to do those holy actions which please him, Our daily study and caution will be to avoid those Sins which will displease him; happy there­fore are those Souls that love God for his Goodness and Mercy, and fear him for his Power and Justice, these and these only will be uniformly religious; and therefore when the Holy Man Prays, we may be of [Page 162] that number, let all that love their own Souls say [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 13. [That it may please thee to give to all thy people, &c.] Before we prayed that we might become good, and now that we may grow better; for he that receives Grace and doth not improve it, shall lose it again, Matth. xxv. 29. but he that uses the first Grace well shall have [encrease of Grace] given to him, and shall profit exceeding­ly by the means of Grace, for it is the encrease of Gods Grace that makes the Word of God profit us, 1 Cor. iii. 6. Wherefore we pray that all Chri­stians, who are allowed to come to Gods house, and hear his word there, may have such inward Grace added to the outward means, that they may 1. [hear Gods word meekly,] and so apprehend their own ignorance and offences, as to be willing to be taught and reproved; for Pride makes Men think themselves so wise and good already, that they will not be instructed nor perswaded to amend, and the Word of God it self cannot save our Souls, unless it be received with meekness, James i. 21. 2ly, Encrease of Grace will make us also [receive it with pure affections,] and cast out of our minds those evil and impure inclinations to Riches, Ho­nours and Pleasures, which hinder us from receiving the Word of God, or choke it when it is received, Luke viii. 14. But if our Souls be so purified as to love nothing more than God and goodness, we shall then admire and delight in his holy Word, and close with it as the guide to true felicity. 3ly, And if we so receive Gods Word, we shall certainly [bring forth the fruits of the Spirit,] which S. Paul reckons up, Galat. v. 22, 23. viz. as to God, [Page 163] Love of him, Joy in him, Peace with him; as to our Neighbour, Long-suffering of Inju­ries, Gentleness when he would be reconciled, Goodness to the poor, Faith or fidelity to our Friends; And as to our selves, Meekness in our thoughts, and Temperance in our Actions, and by these fruits God shall be glorified, and our Souls saved; wherefore when we consider the blessed effects of this encrease of Grace, let us all earnestly beg it and say [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 14. [That it may please thee to bring into the way of Truth, &c.] From praying for the Sanctification and improvement of those within the Church, we go on to pray for the Conversion of those without, unto the true Religion, which S. Peter calls the way of Truth, 2 Peter ii. 12. be­cause it relies only upon the Word of Truth reveal­ed by the God of Truth, taking nothing for an Article of Faith or an Essential part of Gods Wor­ship, but that which is contained in holy Scripture, and this is the Religion of our reformed Church: And first, the poor Heathens who believe in, and worship false Gods, [have erred,] and the misera­ble Jews, who yet vainly expect their Messiah, with the barbarous and blinded Turks, who take an Impo­stor for their Saviour, these all are sadly [deceiv­ed;] but with a Primitive Charity we Pray for the Conversion of them all. Secondly, the abused Ro­manists who are taught to rely on Men that design­edly mislead them, and by pretended Traditions draw them off from the Word of God, these [have erred:] As also the conceited Sectaries, who are made to admire themselves and despise all others, and who are perswaded their crafty Teachers Fan­cies [Page 164] are Inspirations of the Spirit: These [are deceiv­ed.] The Leaders of all Heresies and Schisms erre wilfully, and all their Followers are deceived; yet we have such Pity and charity for all these, though they curse and condemn us, that we pray they may be brought [into the way of truth.] And it will make us more devout in this request if we consider, 1. How many there are who are thus deceived; For Pagans, Jews, Turks, and erring Christians are above nine parts of Ten of the whole World, all which are under sad delusions; if we consider, 2ly, How monstrous, how foolish and absurd Princi­ples many of them do maintain, things contrary to Sense and Reason, and as opposite to common Honesty and prudence as they are to Scripture. 3ly, How obstinate they are in holding these false and base Opinions, that no Arguments from Rea­son, Scripture, or History can work upon them, so that generally they resolve not to hear or examine any thing that might undeceive them. 4ly, How apparent danger of Damnation they are in while they hold these damnable Doctrines, 2 Peter ii. 1. which besides their making them deny Gods holy Truth, do either plunge them into wicked practi­ces or into intolerable Pride, either of which ad­ded to their evil Principles makes them become the ruine of their Souls; and who that hath any Bow­els of pity can think on this deplorable prospect, and not adde to this Prayer for the Salvation of so many deluded Wretches, [We beseech thee, &c.]

§. 15. [That it may please thee to strengthen, &c.] Those without the Church are most misera­ble, but those within it are not yet so happy as [Page 165] not to need our Prayers, for the removal of such Evils as they are exercised withal; and we begin with their greatest, that is, their spiritual Miseries: Christians are here in the Church militant, and in a continual warfare, Ephes. vi. 12. with [Sathan,] whose very name signifies the Adversary; and while he assaults them with all his Power and Policy, we may behold them in various postures, some standing and couragiously resisting, others almost fainting and ready to yield, yea some fallen by his Temp­tations, while we like Moses in the holy mount continually pray for them, Exod. xvii. 11, 12. de­siring God, 1. [To strengthen those that stand,] that is, the best Christians who stoutly maintain the good fight of Faith, and resist all his temptations, for these we Pray, that they may have new Grace and strength to hold out, since even these are in danger of being overthrown by their cunning and powerful adversary (who hates these above all o­thers) if God do not daily strengthen them, 1 Cor. x. 12. 2ly, [To comfort and help the weak-hear­ted,] that is, those who are dejected with the re­membrance of their many former Sins, and the terror of their manifold Temptations that now encompass them; and these extremely need [Com­fort] to revive their Faith and renew their Cou­rage: And those whose hearts are weak by reason of their small measures of Grace, being but lately perhaps begun to live well, all these do mightily need Gods help, to make them willing to resist and able to stand. 3ly, And whereas too many are fal­len by Sin, we Pray that he will [raise up them that fall,] by bringing them to Repentance: The righteous and the very best fall often, Prov. xxiv. 16. But he that lifts up those that are fallen, [Page 166] Psal. cxlv. 14. leaves them not to lye in that sad Estate by impenitence or despair, but his Grace sets them on their feet again, and makes them re­new the fight, and amend their former failings by future Courage and Care; yet considering how many this Enemy wounds and how sorely he infests all good Men, we Pray [finally that he will beat down Sathan under our feet,] that is, give us a perfect Victory over him; for by the Emblem of treading on their enemies Necks, Conquerors use to declare of old their complete VictoryJosh. x. 24. Deut. xxxiii. 29. Luke x. 19.; and though this be a great work, yet since it is to be done by Gods strength, we may hope for it, and if we persevere, we shall at the last be advanced above Sathans reach, and shall see him and all our Enemies lye grovelling un­der our feet, so as never to be able to hurt us any more; to all which desirable Requests, both for our Brethrens sake and our own, let us say [we be­seech thee, &c.]

§. 16. [That it may please thee to succour, help, &c.] We first consider the evils that concern our better part, the Soul; yet we forget not those which concern the Body, since they are so great that we cannot bear them without Gods help, and so frequent that the biggest part of the world is ex­ercised with them: To reckon all the miseries of this kind is impossible, yet we have three general words which comprehend all: [...]r these evils are either future and feared, and these are implyed in the word [danger;] or else they are present, and then they proceed from the want of some good thing, expressed by [necessity;] or from the suffer­ing [Page 167] some evil thing, here signified by [tribulati­on:] And each of these hath its proper Verb suted to it; for we pray to God to [succour] those in danger, by preventing the mischief that is feared from falling on them; to [help] those in necessity, by giving them those blessings they want; and to [com­fort] those in tribulation, by supporting them un­der it, and delivering them out of it; so that in this one general Request we comprehend our selves and all other afflicted persons in the whole world: If we our selves be in danger, necessity, or tribu­lation, our own experience will help us to pray de­voutly; and if not, yet when we consider how very liable we are to fall into some or all of these, and how soon it may be our lot to need the Charity of others to pray for us, we shall do it with ear­nestness and sincerity: And that our words may agree with our works, let us succour, help and com­fort as many as we can of those in danger, necessity or tribulation, and call upon God to relieve the rest, every one joyning in saying [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 17. That it may please thee to preserve all that travel, &c.] That our Devotion may be the more excited, we do in this and the next Petition reckon up divers sorts of Men and Women who are in danger, necessity and tribulation, beginning here with such of them as are not able to come and Pray with us, being hindred by necessary business, natural infirmities, or by violence and restraint, from coming to the house of God, yet we (though they be out of our sight) do remember, 1st, [All that travel by Land or Water,] upon their ho­nest and necessary occasions. This Petition is in all [Page 168] the old Liturgies applied to those holy Men who went over all the World to convert Men to the Christi­an Faith, who went in continual peril of their lives; and though this occasion be not so frequent now, yet Travel and Navigation (in which many Men are constantly employed,) are full of dangers, and we in Christian Charity are bound to Pray they may escape them, who are travelling or sailing for the Publick good or for their own honest Maintenance; but nothing besides malice can stretch this Petition to Thieves, and Pirates, who do not use to be com­prehended in the number of Travellers by Land or Water, nor are they otherwise hinted at here, than that honest Men may escape them. 2. [All women labouring with child,] whose Danger is very great, and they do undergo it for the good of all Mankind, they endure more in bearing Children than any creature else; and as experience will teach the female sex to Pray heartily for poor Wo­men in this condition, so Charity ought to oblige Men to Pray with like Devotion, remembring the Woman suffers partly for their Sin, and in order to the benefit of Mankind, and therefore her sorrows must not be unpitied. 3. [All Sick Persons] also are here remembred by us who are in health; we are able to come to Gods house, and so must Pray for all that by Diseases and Pains are kept from thence, as well in pity to the miseries they suffer, as in regard to our own frailty who may shortly be in the same condition. 4. [Young Children] are prayed for next, who cannot pray for themselves, and yet are liable to innumerable perils, by reason of their weakness, and unable to foresee or prevent the dangers they are incident to; And to excite our devotion the more, we may consider them as their [Page 169] Parents chiefest comfort, as adopted to be Gods Children together with us, and the hopes of the next Age. 5. We Pray for [all Prisoners and Captives.] The Christians of old in this place had respect to all that were imprisoned and made slaves for the Faith of Christ, whose bonds they remembred as if they were bound with them, Hebr. xiii. 3. And some such there are now in cruel bon­dage under Turks and Pagans, whom we ought es­pecially to pity and pray for, as well as to contri­bute liberally to their Redemption; yet we must not forget those poor Creatures who live miserably in Gaols and Dungeons for Debts, or for Crimes, or who are taken fighting for the defence of their Country; we that enjoy the comfort of Liberty must relieve and Pray for these that want it; and considering the necessities of all these, let the whole Congregation say [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 18. [That it may please thee to defend and pro­vide, &c.] Our next instance is of [Fatherless chil­dren and widows,] who, if they have Estates, are in danger of being wronged; if none, then they are in necessity and tribulation, being helpless, destitute, and exposed; they have lost their dear­est earthly Friend, and find few so conscientious to take care of them, only God is pleased to style himself The Father of the fatherless, and Husband of the widow, Deut. x. 18. Psal. lxviii. 6. and cxlvii. 7. forbidding all injuries against them, Exod. xxii. 22. and accursing such as do hurt them, Deut. xxvii. 19. yea, esteeming it a chief point of Religion to com­fort and assist them, Isai. i. 17. Jam. i. 27. To him therefore we pray [to defend] them from injury and oppression, if they have any rights or estate; and [Page 170] if not, [to provide for them] that they may not be in extream want. And lest we should omit any miserable persons, who like the fatherless and wi­dows, are deprived of their comfort, and liable to oppression, we pray that God will likewise defend and provide for [all that are desolate] for want of Friends, Maintenance and Habitations, [and oppressed] by the false and cruel dealings of po­tent and wicked Adversaries; we know their Re­deemer is mighty, and hope he will rescue them out of these miseries, which are so very great, that if we rightly apprehend their distress, we cannot but devoutly say, [we beseech thee to hear us, &c.]

§. 19. [That it may please thee to have mer­cy upon all men.] That we may leave out none from these Intercessions, we now pray for all men, because all men are or may very shortly be afflicted; and if not, yet all need Gods Mercy; the pros­perous to preserve them, as well as the afflicted to deliver them: And this is a Duty strictly required of us by God, who will have us Make Supplications and Intercessions—for all men, 1 Tim. ii. 1. and gives this reason, because God would have all to be saved, vers. 4. which minds us not only to pray for Mercy to relieve the outward wants of Christians, but to save the Souls of all Jews, Turks, Gentiles, and Hereticks; which Request overthrows the O­pinion of absolute Predestination, from the deceit of which if we be free, we may generally exercise our universal Charity, with noble thoughts of Gods goodness, being assured this Petition fails not by any bar put by him to any particular man, but by the wilfull obstinacy of them that choose destructi­on, [Page 171] and that his Grace may turn their hearts also in due time, we all say, [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 20. [That it may please thee to forgive our enemies, &c.] If there were any exception or se­cret reserve in the former general Petition, it might be supposed we excepted our Enemies, but God hath commanded us to forgive, and pray for them, Matth. v. 44. and unless we do so, he will hear none of our other Requests. It was the peculiar Badge of Christians in times of Persecution, that they prayed for their enemies; and as we profess the same Religion, we must practise the same Duty, and pray for, 1. [Our enemies,] who inwardly hate us; 2. Our [persecutors,] who do out­wardly hurt us by their Deeds; 3. And [slande­rers,] who wanting power to their malice, smite us by lies and reproaches invented by a malicious heart, and spread by a wicked tongue: For all these we pray, 1. That God would [forgive them] that which is past, and not condemn them eter­nally for what injuries they have done against us. 2ly, That he would [turn their hearts,] and make them resolve to do us no more harm; and without this ceasing to do evil, it is plain they nei­ther have repented, nor can be forgiven; and it is as manifest, that we are in perfect Charity with them, when we have brought our hearts to wish un­feignedly for their pardon and amendment. And let us remember we do imitate the Mercy of God, and the Charity of Jesus and his Saints, we secure our Souls from all the stains of malice, and shall conquer our Enemies by kindness, while we with sincerity and devotion make this Request, and say, [we beseech thee, &c.]

[Page 172]§. 21. That it may please thee to give and preserve, &c.] After so large Intercessions for o­thers, we now remember our selves, and pray in this Petition for Temporal Blessings, not such as minister to Luxury, but only such as serve to sup­ply our Necessity, even that God would [bless the fruits of the earth,] and make great plenty of them spring and grow, and then that he will keep them from blasting Mildews, and all other sorts of mischiefs, so as they may be [preserved to our use, and in due time we may enjoy them.] We cannot live without them, and none can give them to us, or preserve them for us, but our great Creator, Acts xiv. 17. Psal. lxv. 9, 10. To him there­fore we offer up this Prayer, and desire to receive them as of his gift, and accordingly we acknow­ledge his bounty by cheerfully dedicating the Tenth thereof to him: And if the Heathens had Sacrifices and Prayers to Ceres, Pan, and Robigo, to bless and preserve their Fruits, how much more reason have we, when this Prayer is made to the true God, to say, [we beseech thee, &c.]

§. 22. [That it may please thee to give us true repentance, &c.] As the former Request was grounded upon Give us this day our daily bread, so is this upon Forgive us our Trespasses; that was for the Body, this for the Soul: We owned we were sinners in the beginning of these Intercessions, and now we crave pardon, that so these excellent and useful Prayers may not miscarry: And the Request is very full, for we desire, 1. That God will [give us true repentance,] which must necessarily go before forgiveness; we desire to see the baseness, and feel the smart of our iniquities, that we may truly and sincerely grieve for them, and then we [Page 173] regularly beg, 2. That he will [forgive us all our sins, negligences and ignorances,] all our grea­ter and lesser offences, our sins that are done deli­berately with our full consent, which are most no­torious; and also all the sad omissions of our duty, the bitter fruit of our shameful negligence, together with all the evils we securely commit, and all the good things we without any check omit, through wilfull ignorance, error and mistake, which we che­rish, because our Lusts please us, and we have no mind to be undeceived. And even these Transgres­sions are very great and vastly numerous, so that we had need with great contrition and importunity to ask forgiveness for them all. 3ly, Because no Re­pentance is true, nor no pardon effectual without a­mendment, we pray that God will [endue us with the Grace of his holy Spirit, to amend our lives according to his holy word.] We can sin of our selves, but we cannot reform without the help of his Grace; being therefore resolved to a­mend, we Pray for the Grace of his holy Spirit to turn our hearts and change our affections, and strengthen us in resisting and overcoming all the lusts and temptations that do oppose us, and then we shall be sanctified throughout and perfectly re­formed, according to that complete pattern of Piety prescribed to us in Gods holy Word, where all Duties are enjoyned and all Sins are forbidden: And how blessed a change will this be, how will it rectifie our Lives, restore our Peace with God, recommend our Prayers, and secure our Eternal Happiness? Let us all consider the benefits of this last and most comprehensive Petition, and say most ardently, [we beseech thee to hear us, good Lord.]

[Page 174]§. 23. [Son of God, we beseech thee to hear us.] Answ. Son of God, &c. [O Lamb of God, &c.] After so many excellent Petitions pre­sented to our heavenly Father, we make our address to our Mediator, and that he may recommend us and our prayers at the Throne of Grace, we do with great importunity intreat him for the accep­tance of our Petitions, and the pardon of our Sins: Beseeching him, First, By his Divinity, as he is [the Son of God,] and so Omniscient, Omni­present, and Omnipotent, to [hear our prayers,] and to become our Advocate for their acceptance. 2ly, We beseech him by his Suffering for us, when he [became the Lamb of God,] and died to [take away the sins of the world,] John i. 29. that he will [grant us] an interest in [his peace,] John xiv. 27. in the peace he made with God, and that peace of Conscience following thereupon: And that [he will have mercy upon us,] so as to pi­ty us, and deliver us from the guilt and punish­ment of our offences. And again, as he is the [Lord Christ] our anointed Mediator, we beg of him to [hear us,] and procure a gracious Answer to all these Intercessions.

§. 24. [Lord have mercy upon us:] Answ. Lord have, &c. [Christ have, &c.] Finally, that our Conclusion may be sutable to our beginning, we close up all with an Address to the whole Tri­nity for that [Mercy,] which we have been begging in so many Particulars, and this one word com­prehends them all, so that this is the Epitome of the whole Litany; and considering how constant­ly, and how many ways we need Mercy, surely we cannot ask it too often, and we ought every time [Page 175] to ask it with a renewed importunity, especially here, where the only impediment to all our Inter­cessions, and that which alone can hinder them is our sins, and if we can obtain Mercy for them, all our other Requests shall certainly prevail: But of this see more Part I. Partit. II. Sect. 2.

Sect. IV. Of the Supplications.

§. 1. THe last part of this Devout Litany we call the Supplications, which seem to have been first collected and put into this Form when the barbarous Nations began to over-run the Empire, about 600 years after Christ, though the particular Sentences are either taken out of holy Writ, or else gathered from ancient Liturgies: but considering the troubles of the Church Mili­tant, and the many Enemies that every good man always hath in this world, this part of the Office is sutable for all times: The Method was consider­ed in the Introduction, and it only remains we treat of the several Parts.

§. 2. [Our Father, &c.] Pious Antiquity usu­ally annexed the Lords Prayer to every Office, to shew their high esteem of it, and their mean opi­nion of their own composures, which receive life and value from this Divine Form. We have ex­pounded this Prayer before, and are only to note [Page 176] here, that when our hearts are stirred up to Devo­tion by the foregoing Offices, we shall find our selves very fit to put up these Petitions with renew­ed affections, and so may supply the defects of our more careless repeating it before.

§. 3. [O Lord deal not with us after our sins:] Answ. Neither reward, &c. We are all ready to say we suffer greatly, but the Church will have us remember we also suffer justly; yea, God exacteth of us less than our iniquities deserve, Job xi. 6. and as David confesses, He hath not dealt with us after our sins, nor rewarded us according to our wickedness, Psal. ciii. 10. Upon which plain Affirmations of Holy Scripture is this pious Supplication grounded, where­in, First, We consess we are guilty of many [sins and iniquities,] and own, we have deserved a great deal worse treatment from the hand of God than we have received; for if he should execute all his just threatnings on us, we could not complain of any undue severity, yet alas that would make us most miserable here and hereafter also: All Tem­poral Plagues and Eternal Vengeance are the just re­ward of our grievous sins; but oh! how small and how light, how few and how easie are our sufferings in comparison of our deservings? we may think them great when we consider them alone, but we must judge them small, and may be contented un­der them, when we remember we have merited to suffer infinitely more; and therefore our duty is (not to complain of our present light afflictions, but) only to pray they may never be laid on in pro­portion to our iniquities, for then we are ruined in this world and in the next also: We can submit to all this, and have reason to praise him it is no [Page 177] more; we clear his Justice, and confess our Ini­quity, but apply to his Mercy to allay our punish­ments, and proportion them according to our pos­sibility of bearing, and not according to the desert of our offences.

The Prayer against Persecution.

§. 4. THat the People may not think their Duty is ended as soon as the Responses cease, they are admonished in their heart to joyn with the Priest still, by that ancient Form of [Let us pray;] and though the Minister repeat the words, the Matter of it concerns the whole Church, and it is one of the old Western Forms, collected at first out of God's Word, and excellently fitted to this Litany.

§. 5. [O God merciful Father, who despi­sest not, &c.] When evil Times occasioned the an­cient Christians to use the Litany, they put on Sack­cloth, and went barefoot, they fasted and repeat­ed it with sighs and tears: And if we be as sensible as they were, we have occasion enough for sighing and contrition; wherefore it is a very proper and comfortable Preface which ushers in this Pray­er, since it puts us in mind, that the Lord knows all our desire, and our groaning is not hid from him, Psal. xxxviii. 9. and that a broken and a contrite heart the Lord will not despise, Psal. li. 17. but be­cause of the deep sighing of the poor he will arise and help them, Psal. xii. 6. He can spell the meaning of our sighs, and read the language of those tears [Page 178] which are joyned with the Prayers that we make in our adversity, and if they proceed from a [heart] not only [sorrowful] for the Affliction, but [contrite] and penitent for the Sin which caused it, he will pity and help us: Men may and often do despise our sighs and sorrows, and therefore we spend our time vainly in complaining to them; Let us therefore bring all our Griefs to this [our Merciful Father] and sincerely pour them out before him, and we are assured of his Compassion, and ought to learn from thence to pity the sorrows of our Brethren, that Almighty God may pity ours.

§. 6. [Mercifully assist our Prayers, &c.] It is so natural to Men to fly to Prayer in their Ad­versity, that the worst Men can Pray very Hearti­ly then, Isai. xxvi. 16. and if those Prayers fail us, we are beat out of our last Refuge, and have no­thing but Despair left us; So that we have great reason to beg, First, That God will assist us in the [Prayers we make before him in all our trou­bles.] And Secondly, That [he will graciously hear] and answer [us] in so needful a season; his Assistance will calm our minds, asswage our Pas­sions, confirm our Faith, revive our Hope, and make us Pray without wrath or doubting, filling our minds with vigour and devotion: His Accep­tance of these Prayers will certainly bring us De­liverance at last, and support in the mean season; so that he who can Pray devoutly & acceptably in the troubles that oppress him, can never be hurt by any Affliction; and therefore now before the storm comes, we are providing that our Litanies (which are the Prayers we make in time of trouble,) may [Page 179] be fervent and prevalent, especially, when we of­fer them in our distress, that God will not despise our sighs and our desires then, and if we use to call on him in our Prosperity, we may with more confidence apply to him in our Adversity; and what benefits will flow from his accepting our Prayers then, the next Sentence will shew.

§. 7. [That those evils which the craft, &c.] If our Prayers made in Affliction be devout and prevail, then the blessed effect will be, First, That [all the evils which the craft and subtlety of the Devil] and Wicked [Men,] his instru­ments, [contrive against us] shall be discovered and prevented, Psal. xxxiii. 10. The Devil and evil Men by his suggestion are always contriving the ruine of the true Religion and all that profess it, and they lay these Plots so cunningly and secretly, that they would never be found out nor prevented, but by Gods All-seeing Providence: They hope to get Power to persecute the true Church and to sup­press our Holy Religion, for the Ancients believed (though God permitted, yet) the Devil contrived and evil Men executed the cruelties of Persecution, Tertul. de fug. c. 7. Yet if we can engage God al­ways to hear our Prayers, we doubt not but either this Evil shall be wholly prevented and [brought to nought,] or suddenly [dispersed,] & then it can­not greatly hurt us. The Second benefit of having our Prayers in Affliction prevail, is, [that we] and all Gods [Servants] being totally delivered from, or secured from being [hurt by any Persecuti­on,] or other sad Calamity, may constantly and freely praise God, and publickly Worship him in his house without disturbance: And indeed they do [Page 180] not desire to escape Adversity and persecution meerly as it prejudices their temporal interest (as worldly Men do,) but chiefly because it hinders them from the comfort of publickly and freely enjoy­ing Gods Ordinances, they desire Deliverance for this end, that they may have liberty [to give thanks to God in his holy place,] Psal. lxxix. 14. for this cause they pray against Persecution, and all horrid Plots, in love to the true Religion, and out of a delight in Gods honour and publick worship, and this makes them beg it so earnestly through [Jesus Christ our Lord,] by whose in­terest they hope it will be granted.

The Alternate Supplications.

§. 8. O [Lord arise, help, &c.] Psal. xliv. 26. and lxxix. 9. The former Prayer was not concluded with Amen, to shew, the same Request is continued in another Form; and what the Priest begged alone there, all the People joyn with him to ask in these alternate supplications taken from the Psalms, designed at first to be sung alternately: When our enemies are rising against us to destroy us, we desire [God will arise] to help us, and then his and our enemies shall be scattered, Psal. lxviii. 1. We take no unjust courses to defend our selves, but crave the divine Aid, and that not for any worthiness in our selves, but for his names sake, that he may make his power to be known, Psalm cvi. 8. and shew how much he is above the power and policy of all that oppose him.

[Page 181]§. 9. O God we have heard with our Ears, &c. Psal. xliv. 1.] When the People Pray so ear­nestly, the Priest to quicken their Faith, by another Divine Sentence, commemorates the great Trou­bles, Adversities and Persecutions which God de­livered his Church from in all Ages; and since he is the same Lord, and we have the same occasion, this is laid down as a ground of our future hope; Our Bibles, and Ancient and Modern Histories, as well as the relations our Fathers have told us, and the examples we have seen, do all assure us of this, and therefore the People again say;

§. 10. [O Lord arise help us, &c. for thine honour:] which is no vain repetition, but a Testi­mony that they are convinced they did wisely and well to ask of this God, (who hath done so great things for his People in all Ages) now to arise and help them, that so the Honour he hath gotten by these wonders of his Mercy, may be renewed and confirmed by this New Act of his Power and Good­ness: And therefore they repeat this Petiti­on.

§. 11. Glory be to the Father, &c. As it was in the beginning, &c.] This Doxology is explain­ed before, and is placed here in imitation of Holy David, Psal. vi. 8. and xxii. 22, 25. who out of a firm perswasion, that God will hear him, in the ve­ry midst of his afflictions and dolorous complaints, suddenly breaks forth into an Act of Praise; So we having such a God to Pray unto, in the midst of our mournful Supplications, do both Praise God for his Ancient Mercies, and also in assurance we shall obtain his help, we praise him for his Help [Page 182] before-hand, and doubt not but as he was [glori­fied] in the beginning, for past Mercies, so he ought to be now for present, and shall be hereafter for future Blessings.

§. 12. [From our Enemies, &c. Graciously look, &c.] We have Enemies, and Afflictions, but then we have a mighty Friend, even Christ the eter­nal Son of God, and we beg of him [to defend us from our Enemies,] and from his glorious Throne to [Look so graciously on our afflictions,] Exod. ii. 25. that he may pity us, and then we are assu­red he will relieve us: He discerns our very hearts, and knows the Sorrows that dwell there, where­fore we Pray that he will [pitifully behold the sorrows of our hearts;] and since our sins are the cause of all our Sufferings, and our Troubles the Effects would soon cease, if Sin the Cause were taken away, we beg of the same Jesus, [merciful­ly to forgive the Sins of his People,] Psal xxv. 16, 17. He did alone merit our Pardon, and he on­ly can dispense it; and if he do so, our greatest misery is removed; and (if our Prayers be accep­ted) so shall all our Troubles be also; wherefore we proceed and say, [Favourably with mercy hear our Prayers,] Job xxxiii. 26. In this Litany and those Supplications we have begged deliverance from all evil, and what need we now wish more, than that our Redeemer and Advocate may receive our Requests with favour and Mercy, that is all we can desire, and accordingly we do beseech him by his assuming our Nature to be merciful to us, [O Son of David have mercy upon us;] Matth. ix. 27. He took on him our Infirmities, he is acquain­ted with our greifs, and knows how to pity us, be­cause [Page 183] he hath been our Fellow-sufferer; by all there­fore that he hath felt we pray him [to have mer­cy upon us:] And though he might reject us, and all our Prayers for our unworthiness, yet we in­treat him that he will [vouchsafe to hear us now and ever] in this, and in all following distresses, and then we shall never be miserable: This there­fore we ask often, this we beg with redoubled im­portunity, saying, [Graciously hear us, O Christ, graciously hear us, O Lord Christ;] His great Power, as the Anointed of God, and our Lord and Saviour, together with our great necessity, makes us thus earnest and importunate; and he is well pleased when we are so. Finally therefore to shew we rely on no other Helper, we conclude these Supplications by saying, [O Lord, let thy mercy be shewed upon us, Like as we do put our trust in thee,] Psal. xxxiii. 22. To him, and to him only, we have applyed our selves; and as we have no other hope but in him, so we may expect that Hope shall be fulfilled, and we certainly deli­vered in his due time.

The Prayer for sanctifying our Trou­bles.

§. 13. S. Gregory had composed this Prayer almost 1100 years ago, as we now use it: But when the Roman Churches corrupt Doctrines crept into her Offices, the Mass-Book had put in to this old Form, the Intercession of the Saints; but our Re­formers left out that vain and impious Addition, and not only restored, but improved this pious Collect.

[Page 184]§. 14. [We humbly beseech thee, O Father, &c.] It is natural for Children to fly to their Fa­ther in their distress, and so do we; but on the ac­count of his greatness and his glory, we come [humbly,] yet because of our necessity, we [be­seech] him earnestly: And our first Petition is for his pity, with respect to our present Condition; we pray him, [mercifully to look upon our infirmities,] whether they be natural infirmi­ties of Body or Mind, or Moral infirmities, that is, Sins and transgressions, or (which is chiefly meant here) Providential infirmities, that is, the Ca­lamities which the Divine Providence hath laid upon us; with respect to all these we beg his pity. Secondly, That these may not lye too hea­vy, nor any more be laid upon us with respect to the time to come, we beseech him by the most pow­erful motive, even [for the glory of his Name, to turn from us all those evils which we most righteously have deserved,] thereby confessing we have justly deserved all we suffer at present, and a great deal more; but we know he orders the whole World, and can turn the current of these floods of Affliction, so as these shall be diverted, and those we fear shall never come at all, and we vow to glorifie his Name if he thus please to spare us: Yet if he do see fit now or hereafter to exercise us with Afflictions, we beg, Thirdly, [That in all our troubles we may put our whole trust and confidence in his Mercy;] that is, that our Faith may not fail, Luke xxii. 32. for our great­est danger is, that when our troubles do encrease, our Hope and our Faith should be shaken, and then our Anchor is broken, and we shall be shipwrackt: But so long as we are convinced of his Goodness [Page 185] and Truth, and can put our whole trust and confi­dence in his Mercy, our courage will not fail, and we shall bear up nobly. Lastly, And that this Faith may not be an ill-grounded presumption, we pray that we may retain our piety in the midst of our distress, [and evermore serve God in holi­ness and pureness of living.] A Hypocrite may pretend Religion in prosperity; but a sincere Chri­stian only continues his love and duty to God, even in the greatest affliction: No suffering can drive him to Sin, nor will he make use of wicked means to escape; he will be religious still, yea more a­fraid to offend than ever, and he glorifies God more in adversity than ever before; wherefore we beg this constant Piety, [for Gods honour and glory,] by whose Grace alone our Virtue is made so durable; and this and all the former re­quests we make [through our only Mediator and Advocate Iesus Christ our Lord,] by whom if we do prevail, no Affliction can ever harm or ruine us, [Amen.]

§. 15. The Litany being generally used with the Morning Prayer, and when it is so used, these lat­ter Collects being omitted before, come in here, and therefore we now conclude with the Prayer of S. Chrysostom, which in his own Liturgy is pla­ced in the end of one of his Litanies, and how very Pious and proper it is for this place may be learned from the First part, where it is explained at large, together with the final Benediction, which commits us all to the Grace of our Lord Je­sus Christ, and commends us to the love of God, and desires for us the fellowship of the Holy Ghost, by which we shall be for ever happy in this World, and in the World to come: [Amen, Amen.]

Partition II. OF THE Occasional Prayers AND THANKSGIVINGS.

Sect. I. Of the Occasional Prayers in general.

§. 1. THough the various Miseries of Man­kind are exactly enumerated in the Litany, yet they are but barely men­tioned there, and at some times some particular E­vils lye so heavy upon us, and some great Mercies are so necessary for us, that it is requisite we should have solemn Forms upon such Occasions to annex to this Office, that so it may fully sute all our Ne­cessities. [Page 187] Solomon supposes there will be special Prayers made in the Temple in times of War, Drought, Pestilence, and Fa­mine1 Kings viii. 33, 35, 37.: And Lactantius ob­serves, that the very Gentiles ad­dressed themselves to the Gods, in times of War, Plague, and DroughtLactant. inst. lib. 2. c. 1.. Tertullian also notes the Christians did make extraordinary Prayers on such OccasionsTertul. Apol. cap. 40.. And both the Greek and Latine Church have their several Offi­ces for such times, out of which these Prayers are taken, which are not designed for a compleat Of­fice; because when any Judgment continues long, and grows general, our Governours draw up a pe­culiar Office, and enjoyn it to be observed with solemn Fasting, only these Prayers are continually to be said with the Litany upon such occasions, that so according to that Law of Charles the Great, In time of Famine, Plague and War, the Mercy of God may be immediately implored, without staying for the Kings Edict Capitular. lib. 1. c. 118.. The Prayers have no dependence on each o­ther; and since they are never used together, we must not ex­pect any Method shall comprize them all, but con­sider every Particular by it self, that we may see how fit it is for the occasion, and know how to demean our selves at such times.

Sect. II. Of the Prayer for Rain.

§. 1. IN times of excessive Drought we may pre­pare our selves for the devout use of this Prayer by considering of these four particulars: First, That want of Rain is a grievous Judgment, threatned to the Jews for their iniquities, Deut. xxviii. 23, 24, and often executed on them, Jerem. xiv. 1.2. &c. Joel i. 18. &c. Haggai i. 9, 10. And this as well as other Nations hath felt the sad ef­fects thereof, pining the grass and parching the Corn, drying the Rivers and destroying the Springs; causing scarcity of Provision for Man and Beast, and sadly impoverishing the laborious Coun­tryman, to whose pains all sorts of Men are be­holding: Yet Secondly, God only can give the bles­sing of Rain to us; for it is his gift, Job v. 10. Psal. lxv. 10. and cxlvii. 8. Acts xiv. 17. The Rab­bins say he hath the Key of the Clouds, of the Womb and the Grave, and never intrusted them in the hands of any servant, Talm. tract. Sanbedr. Though second Causes concur, yet he alone moves them all, and it is an Act of his mighty Power to extract a Mass of Waters out of the dry Dust, and hang it in the bosom of a Cloud, till he order it when and where to fall; nor can any influence of the Stars or chan­ges of the Moon help us to rain till God please. Thirdly, All Nations have applyed themselves to their Gods in this case: The Jews called upon the true God, 1 Kings viii. 35. To him Elijah applyed [Page 189] himself after a Drought of three years, Chap. xviii. 42. And Jehoshaphat enquired for a Prophet of the Lord to pray for the Armies in this distress, 2 Kings iii. 11. The Athenians called upon Jupiter to rain on their Tillage and their Pa­sturesMarc. Antonin. ad seip. l. 5. §. 7.. The Romans had solemn Sacrifices and barefoot Processions to beg Rain of their GodsTertul. Apol. cap. 40.: But the Christians with Fasting and Mortification, lying in Ashes, and clothed with Sackcloth, exceeded all others in their devout Addresses to God for this MercyIdem ibid.. And when some superstitious men in S. Ambrose's time vainly expected Rain at the Change of the Moon, God denied it till the Church prayed for it, Hexam. l. 4. c. 8. Fourthly, This course alone hath been found successful: Thus Elijah obtained Rain for Israel, James v. 16. Thus the Primitive Christians prevailed for the Roman Army almost destroyed by ThirstEuseb. Eccles. hist. l. 5. c. 5., and procured Rain by their Litanies at many other timesTertul. ad Scap. cap. 4.: So that our Church takes the right course to pray to God for it.

§. 2. [O God heavenly Father, who by thy Son Iesus Christ, &c.] This excellent Form is built upon the best Foundation, viz. first, the Goodness, and secondly, the Truth of God: His Goodness appears in our calling upon him as [our heavenly Father;] he gives Rain from Heaven, for he dwells above the Clouds in the Heaven of Hea­vens, and yet hath infinite pity for us; and besides, his Truth obliges him to relieve us, because he hath [Page 190] promised by [Iesus Christ] (in whom all his Promises are Yea and Amen) Matth. vi. 33. that if we seek the Kingdom of Heaven and its Righteousness, all those other things (spoken of before, Matth. vi. 31.) all things necessary to our bodily sustenance shall be added unto us. Now though we want Rain ex­ceedingly, and are like to want Meat and Drink if this Drought continue, yet we have been all this while praying in the first place, for Grace to make us righteous, and to bring us to the Kingdom of Heaven; that is the best and the most lasting Bles­sing; and as we ought to prize that most, so we have sought it first: And now we hope God will please to allow us, in the latter end of our Prayers, to mention this temporal want of Rain in the last place, and, according to his promise, that he will both grant us the spiritual Grace, and add this earth­ly Blessing to it: Only therefore let us beware our great concernment for Rain, do not hinder us from seeking better things first; for if we ask nothing else heartily, we offend God in valuing Earth above Heaven, and shall provoke him to deny us: But when we have given precedence to the best things, we may now [beseech] him [to send us] some [moderate Rain in our] great [necessity;] We know it is only in his power to give it, and we are now in very great want of it (for this Prayer is not to be used but on great occasion,) therefore with all possible humility and earnestness we [beseech] him to give it us: Elias his posture was very lowly, for he bowed his face to the ground, 1 Kings xviii. 42. and his Prayer was very fervent, James v. 16. and so must ours be on the same occasion: Nor must we plead our Merit, but present our necessity, and beg it to prevent the sad Dearth and Scarcity which [Page 191] threatens us thereby, yet we must pray for [mo­derate Rain] too, lest the Weather changing from a Drought to a Deluge, our Misery should be only changed, not ended, and the Judgment altered rather than removed. We beg so much [Rain] only as may make the Earth fruitful, and oblige us to be thankful; for those are the Ends we aim at in this Request: First, [That we may receive the Fruits of the Earth to our comfort;] for when it is moistned and refreshed by moderate showers, it will yield its Increase, and we shall have plenty of Food to comfort us: And secondly, If we receive the Mercy as we ought, that Plenty will not only turn to our comfort, [but to] the [honour] and glory of God who is the giver of it; we shall then see our Misery if he had restrained this Mercy longer, and our great obligations to him for hearing us at last; so that if we obtain the blessing of Rain by our Prayers, we shall ac­knowledge it in our [Thanksgiving,] and praise him for it [through Iesus Christ our Lord,] in whose Name we beseech him to hear us, [Amen.]

Sect. III. The Prayer for fair Weather.

§. 1. THe want and the excess of Rain, are con­trary in their Nature, yet both produce the same effect of Scarcity and Famine, which in the more Eastern and Southern Countries usually followed Drought; for in Egypt it scarce ever rains, Zach. xiv. 18. and showers in Harvest were a Mira­cle in Judea, 1 Sam. xii. 17. And hence there are few Complaints in Scripture of excess, but many for want of Rain: And the Greek Church neither hath nor needs an Office for fair Weather: But in these Western and Northern Climates, Famine is oftner caused by excess of Rain, and therefore the Latine Church hath an Office to remove this Judg­ment, and S. Ambrose hath a Prayer in Verse for the same purpose: Our own Chronicles also shew that long and continual Rains have frequently cau­sed Scarcity in this Nation, which shews how ne­cessary this Prayer is. And that we may use it with Devotion, let us consider, First, The Miseries which attend excess of Rain, which is very un­comfortable, and very mischievous: To have the Heavens dark, and the Clouds weeping, the Earth covered with floods, and the Waters roaring, is a very sad prospect, especially if we consider what losses it brings to the publick and to private persons in destroying the fruits of the earth, and spoiling the food of Man and beast, Prov. xxviii. 3. as also by breaking down Banks and Bridges, overwhelm­ing [Page 193] Houses and Towns, and carrying away what­ever is in the way thereof, swallowing up Cattel and Men also, and causing a great Mortality very often, after the rage of the flood be over. Second­ly, Let us remember, God only can help us in this Misery; God the Father divided the Red Sea and Jordan, God the Son walked on the waters, God the Holy Ghost moved on the primitive waters, and brought them all to their proper places; God is the Maker and only Master of this unruly Element, on him Moses calls to stay the rain, Exod. ix. 33. to him Samuel prays for the ceasing those terrible showrs, 1 Sam. xii. 19. and to him we may with good hope apply our selves in the like case by this excel­lent Form.

§. 2. [O Almighty Lord God, who for the Sin of Man didst once drown all the World, &c.] Since every excessive Rain is a little Emblem of the Universal Flood, it may fitly bring that dreadful judgment to our Minds, so that the Lesson in the Roman Office is concerning Noahs Flood, the Greek Church mentions it, and we have justly made it the Preface to this Prayer: Sin was the cause of that deluge; the old World was drowned in wickedness, before it was overwhelmed with wa­ters; and we are not innocent. It was very dread­ful to have the Windows of Heaven opened, and the Fountains of the Sea breaking in upon them, covering and destroying all, pursuing Men to the tops of the highest Mountains, and swallowing them up there; and if this present Rain should con­tinue, it might reduce us to the same extremity. 'Tis true, God hath [promised of his great Mercy never to destroy] the World [so again,] and [Page 194] hath made the Rainbow the token of that Cove­nant, Gen. viii. 21. and ix. 15, 16. which we own with thankfulness in this Prayer; only that we may not presume on that promise, we must consider that though God will never destroy the whole World so, yet he hath since destroyed particular places and Countries so, and may justly destroy us and our Coun­try by this Judgment; to prevent which [we hum­bly beseech him,] with all lowliness, and yet with all earnestness, to remove it, but so, that first we confess our Sin and our having deserved this Judg­ment, and then promise Repentance: By our Luxu­ry and abuse of plenty [we have justly deser­ved this plague of rain and waters:] And as we imitate the old World in [our iniquities,] so we deserve to share with them in our punishment; this we confess to clear Gods Justice, and to do him right, since he would have spared us if our Sins had not forced him thus to punish us; and as Sin was the cause, so, now we would have the effect cease, we must remove the cause by repentance, and here we promise we will do so, for we pray for [Fair Weather] only upon supposition we do [truly repent,] and though we have had some outward losses by the Judgment, yet if it have brought us inward gain and made us penitent, it will be our advantage; let us therefore make our sup­position a reality, and unfeignedly repent, and then God will repent of the evil and give us [such] a blessed change of [weather, that we may re­ceive the Fruits of the Earth in due season,] and enjoy a plentiful Harvest for all this: And if we carefully and strictly observe how sadly God punished us for our Sins, and how graciously he delivered us upon our Repentance, we shall have a [Page 195] benefit by this Mercy greater than outward Plen­ty, [for we shall learn both by his Punish­ments to amend our lives,] since it is so dange­rous and so hurtful to us to live in Sin, [and for his Clemency] in removing these evils, we shall learn [to give him praise and glory,] as a testi­mony that we believe him to be a most gracious Lord unto us; so that we shall gain temporal and spiritual Blessings both, by Gods hearing this Pray­er, which we therefore make in the Name of [Ie­sus Christ our Lord,] by whom we hope to pre­vail. [Amen.]

Sect. IV. Of the Prayers in time of Dearth and Fa­mine.

§. 1. BEcause Famine usually follows either the want or excess of Rain, therefore the Prayers against Famine come next, which is a more grievous Judgment than either of the former, which are only terrible as they are fore-runners of this Evil, concerning which we may consider; First, how grievously many places have been scourged with this dreadful judgment. Egypt had a Famine seven years together, Gen. xli. 30. Yea the fruitful land of Canaan was many times very grievously pu­nished by want of necessary Food, Sam. xxi. 1. 1 Kings xviii. 1. Lament. iv. 4, 5. Nor hath any Nation been always free from it; The Roman Empire was miserably afflicted with a Famine, in which thou­sands [Page 196] were starved in the reign of the persecu­ting Maximinus, Euseb. hist. l. 9. cap. 17, 18. and in Justinians time, Mothers were forced to eat their own Children, Paul. Diac. lib. 17. Our own Annals also tell us that this fruitful Land of ours hath been often punished with so great scarcity, that the most odious things were eaten, and many dyed for lack of Bread; so that we are not secure from this Judgment. Secondly, When it comes, it is one of the saddest Calamities that can happen; No life more miserable than to be tormented with per­petual hunger, and to devour the most loathsom things; No Judgment more mortal when it rises to extremity, making the living like walking Ghosts, and killing thousands of all ages and sexes; and no death more grievous than the lingring tor­ture of being starved, which is far worse than to be slain with the sword, Lament. iv. 9. Finally no Land more miserable than that where Famine hath wasted the Country, unpeopled the Cities, made the Poor mutinous and desperate, and the Rich a prey to their fury. Thirdly therefore, let us fly to God with great devotion, to prevent or remove this Evil also: Elijahs Prayer brought Plenty to Is­rael, 1 Kings xviii. S. Gregories Litany put an end to the Famine in Italy. The Arcadians restored the Worship of Ceres, whom before they had neglected, and had their Dearth turned into a plentiful harvest. Pausan. in Arcad. Bullenger perswaded the Tigu­rine Church to fast and Pray every third day in a time of Famine, and obtained a deliveranceMelch. Adam vit. Bulleng. An. 1571.; And the Irish were freed from a general Dearth by Fasting & PrayerChron. Jorvallens. Col. 832. An. 906.. Let us therefore fly to the same reme­dies, [Page 197] and in such case use one of the following Prayers.

The first Prayer.

§. 2. O God Heavenly Father, whose gift it is that the Rain doth fall, &c.] If an Earthly Parent cannot deny his Child Bread, Luke xi. 2. much less will he deny us who is [our hea­venly Father;] they may sometimes want power to help their Children, though their love be ne­ver so great, but he is always able to help us: His Providence is the first cause of all our provisions. Our food is the fruits of the Earth, together with Flesh and Fish, and all these are his [Gifts;] The Rain causeth fruits to grow, but he causeth the [Rain to fall,] he made the Beasts of the Earth, and the Fish of the Sea at first, and by his blessing they multiply and encrease for our use ever since; wherefore now that we want these Provisions, what better Method than to pray to him? And what fit­ter ground for our requests than to call to mind the efficacy of his Providence in making [the rain to fall, the earth fruitful, the beasts to en­crease, and the fish to multiply?] When we be­hold he is furnished with this Power and find our selves in extreme want, we do earnestly [beseech him to behold the affliction] that we who are [his people] do endure by this lamentable [dearth and scarcity;] The Poor are famished, and the Rich not able to relieve them; the Children cry for Bread to their hungry Parents, and those cries pierce deeper than their own wants; our los­ses cannot be computed, and our necessities are [Page 198] insupportable, the Judgment is very sad, and yet we must confess it is very just; [our iniquity] hath been so great that we abused our plenty by ex­cess, by luxury and wantonness, and now [we justly suffer] for want of those good Creatures we have formerly abused; wherefore we do repent of our most grievous Sins, and pray that [through his goodness] and bounty he will [mercifully turn] our extreme scarcity into so gracious [a plenty,] of all provisions, that they may become [cheap] yet easy to be procured by the poor, and needy: and though any of us be rich or well-stored, so as not much to feel this Calamity in our own per­sons, yet in charity and compassion to our poor brethren, we heartily beg of God to grant this Mercy, though not for any worthiness in our selves, who have deserved his anger, yet [for the Love] which he bears [to Iesus Christ our Lord] who pities us and interceeds for us in this and all our Afflictions, [to whom] therefore with [the Fa­ther and the Holy Ghost,] in acknowledgment of former Mercies, and in hopes of this which we now pray for, [we ascribe all Honour and Glory now and for ever. Amen]

The second Prayer.

§. 3. THe former Prayer is most proper when the Famine begins, this when it is come to the height; that when it comes by unseasonable Weather, this when it is the effect of War, in which the Fruits of the Earth are destroyed in the Country, and all Provisions cut off from besieged [Page 199] Cities, where the greatest rage of Famine hath of­ten been felt upon such occasions, forcing the star­ved Inhabitants to eat Dogs and Horses, yea Car­rion and Vermin, nay, compelling Mothers to eat their own Children, and Men to devour one ano­ther, as many Histories do attest, both Sacred and Profane; wherefore in this Case we may use this second Prayer.

§. 4. [O God merciful Father, who in the time of Elisha the Prophet, &c.] The Famine of Samaria, 2 Kings vi. 25. in the Reign of Jehoram, was remarkable for the fury of it while it remained, and the wonderful removal thereof: They had cho­sen strange Gods, and were punished by strange Food, being forced to eat the flesh of Asses, the head of which vile Creature was sold for eighty Shekels, and a small quantity of the filthy Corn ta­ken out of a Pidgeons Crops, for five Shekels; yea, Mothers were compelled to eat their own Infants: Yet our [merciful Father] did deliver them as suddenly as wonderfully; for the Syrians flying from the Siege by a terror that God sent among them, and leaving all their Provision behind, with­in one days time a Bushel of Wheat was sold for one Shekel, and two Bushels of Barley for the same price, and all the City was fed thereby, but that Infidel Nobleman, who would not believe the Pro­phet. Now their Sufferings may teach us Patience, and their Deliverance give us hope, and encourage us to call upon the same God, [to have mercy up­on us, who are now for our sins punished with like adversity:] The sins of Samaria were those of Sodom, Ezek. xvi. 46. pride, idleness, fulness of bread, and uncharitableness; and 'tis too plain [Page 200] we have imitated them in our sins, and so we are made like them in our punishment; yet as God had mercy on them, so I hope upon our Confession and Repentance we may [likewise find a seasonable,] that is, a speedy [relief,] before this Calamity utterly destroy us: He can work a Miracle to de­liver us at present, but in that we must not pre­scribe to him, only to prevent the like Misery for the future, we pray that He will [encrease the Fruits of the Earth by his heavenly benedicti­on,] and whenever we shall have Plenty restored, [by his bounteous liberality,] we beg that this sad experiment of the misery of Want, may teach us [to use] his good Creatures, first, [to the glo­ry of God,] so as to make us more pious and thank­ful; secondly, [to the relief of the needy,] whose great necessities we shall be more apt to pity, and more ready to supply as long as we live, since we now know what Hunger and Thirst is; Lastly, [and to our own comfort] who shall be refresh­ed by the Plenty God gives: This Plenty therefore, and this Grace to use it well, we beg [through Iesus Christ our Lord, Amen.]

Sect. V. Of the Prayer in time of War and Tu­mults.

§. 1. WHen our King is engaged with a foreign Enemy in War, or is disturbed by Tumults from his own Rebellious Subjects, we must ayd him by our Prayers, and to make them more affectionate, let us Meditate upon such occasions, 1. Of the Miseries of War which causeth famine and scarcity as we noted before, and puts power into the Hands of unjust and cruel Men, who use it too often to oppress, plunder and destroy: And wherever this Fury comes it lays all things waste, being attended by blood and smoak, murders and mischief, desolation and destruction, so that he must be barbarous and obdurate, who will not heartily pray for the ceasing of this dreadful Judg­ment. 2ly, And Prayer is a very proper means, since God is the Lord of Hosts and God of Battel, Exod. xv. 3. and that side he favours ever gets the Victory, or at least comes off safe: For which rea­son Prayer hath been used by all Nations before they went out to War; Solomon supposes the Jews would never omit it, 1 Kings viii 44, 45. And the Examples of Moses, Exod. xvii. 2. Asa, 2 Chron. xiv. 11. Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xx. 6. and Hezekiah▪ 2 Kings xix. 5. shew how much this contributed to the Victo­ry: Scipio the Great went up to the Capitol before every one of his military Expeditions; The Greeks [Page 202] and Romans ever offered sacrifice before the bat­tel: And at Rome they were wont to send their General into Mars his Temple to shake the shields that hung there, and Cry, O Mars awake. Servius in 8 Aen. The Holy Constantine taught his Souldiers a form of prayer to be used in time of War, as Eusebius relates; and S. Gregory advises the Sicilian Bishops to use the Litany every Wednesday and Fri­day against the barbarous Incursions; and both Eastern and Western Churches have proper Offices in Time of War, the sum of which is given us in this Excellent Prayer.

§. 2. [Almighty God, King of all Kings, and Governor of all things, &c.] When the Enemies power seems great and formidable, it is then very proper for Pious men to chear up themselves with the far greater Power of God, and therefore those Prayers of Jehoshaphat, 2 Chron. xx. 6. and Hezekiah, 2 Kings xix. 15. begin (as this doth) with the com­memoration of Gods Supremacy and Power; if our Enemy be a King, our God is [King of Kings;] if he govern a few Provinces, our Lord [Governs] the whole World, and [all things] therein; though our Adversaries perhaps may think they can easily resist our Forces, yet [his Power] (whose ayd we now implore) [no Creature is a­ble to resist:] And we are sure his righteous Provi­dence doth wisely and equally order all events, it being his Part [to punish Sinners, and to be merciful to them that truly Repent:] Where­fore we resolve to repent us of our Sins, before we begin the War, lest they prove our worst ene­mies, and make Heaven to be our Foe, so that our just cause might suffer for the wickedness of those [Page 203] engaged in it, Deut. xxiii. 9. Josh. vii. 11. 2 Chron. xiii. 8. But when we have repented and reconciled our God to us, we dare then (as the Ancients use to do) Appeal to the Judge of all the World to de­termine between us and our Enemies; and since we believe the event to be wholly in his Power, we make our Prayers to him to take our Part: Yet we do not imitate the Pagans of old and Mahometans of later time, who curse their Foes before the battel, Numb. xxiii. We only pray to God [to save and deliver us from the hand,] and the power [of our Enemies;] we wish only our own safety, not their destruction; [Their Pride,] which incited them to set upon us, we pray may be [abated; Their Malice] which spurs them on to blood and cruelty, we pray may be [asswaged;] Their Plots and Devices] which manage the Design against us, we pray may be [confounded;] but we beg all this, not with any malice to their Persons, or di­rect wishes of their ruin; for if we could be safe and quiet by their ceasing from Hostility, we should be well pleased: Our end in these Petitions is on­ly that God may secure us, and [arm us] with that which we trust in more than all other things, viz. [the defence] of his Providence, Psal. xciv. 22. by which we doubt not but we [shall be preserved] both now and [evermore, from] these and [all] other [perils;] And if he please to hear us, and give us the better, we will not abuse the Mercy to Luxury or Revenge, but our Conquest shall end in [glorifying] our mighty and merciful God, [who is the only giver of all victory:] We will acknowledge and praise him, wherefore we be­seech him to hear and answer this our Request, [through the merits of his only Son Iesus [Page 204] Christ our Lord,] to whose Intercession for us we hope he will say [Amen.]

Sect. VI. Of the Prayer in time of Plague or Com­mon Sickness.

§. 1. THe Plague, both in Scripture, 2 Sam. xxiv. 13. Matth. xxiv. 7. and in these Prayers is set in the last place, because it is many times the consequent of unseasonable Weather, and the ill diet that Famine forces on us, or of War and great Slaughter, and is the greatest Evil of the three, since three days Pestilence is proposed to David as equal to three months War, or seven years Famine; and it will help our Devotion in this Calamity to consider, 1. The terror of this Judgment, which first, cuts off many thousands in a short space, and therefore the Plague is called by the Name of Death, Jerem. ix. 21. because where it rages in extremity, it makes a Country or City almost desolate, the living scarce sufficing to bury the dead, there being cut off in our memories, An. 1655. in one City of London, 68596 Persons, by this one Disease only, in a few Months time. Se­condly, We may think of the universality of this Evil, from which none can fly, no Age, Sex, or Condition being free from it; Princes and Peasants, Souldiers, Merchants, Scholars, good men and bad being all exposed to it, so that none can tell how [Page 205] soon they may be smitten: And therefore every one should prepare, especially considering, Thirdly, The suddenness of the Stroke, seizing the very strongest, and dispatching them in a few days; so that if it find us unfit for death, it may destroy both souls and bodies also, and God by the Pesti­lence is said to make a way to his indignation, Psal. lxxviii. 51. this being to too many the Prologue to eternal Misery. Lastly, We should meditate on the misery of the Disease it self, which enrages the blood with a poisonous heat; and though it make us need succour extreamly, yet it deprives us of it, and makes our nearest Friends fly from us, so that we languish without pity, dye without obser­vation, and are in danger to be buried with the bu­rial of an Ass. In the next place, when our hearts are mollified with this dreadful prospect, we must remember, that as this Judgment comes from the immediate hand of God, 2 Sam. xxiv. 13. so he only can deliver us, and make the Plague to cease. Hence Aaron's Incense, and Phineas's Prayer, Numb. xvi. 46. Psal. cvi. 30. were offered to him, and did prevail. To him the Jews were always to address in time of Pestilence, 1 Kings viii. 37. yea, the Gentiles built Altars, and offered Sacrifices to their Gods on this sad occasion, Alex. ab Alex. gen. dier. l. 5. c. 27. The first Christian Litanies were made on this occasion, and all Churches have had special Offices for it; and therefore it is highly rea­sonable we should devoutly use this agreeable Form provided by our Church against this most grievous Visitation.

§. 2. [O Almighty God, who in thy wrath didst send a Plague upon thine own people, [Page 206] &c.] To support us in this sad Visitation, the Church presents us with two Examples parallel to our Case; First of the Israelites in Moses's time, who having (as we have done also) provoked an [Almighty God,] as an evidence of his displea­sure he [sent a Plague] among them, the Scourge he uses when [his wrath] is at the highest, Numb. xvi. 46. Ezek. xiv. 19. And though they were [his own people,] as we also call our selves, and had been by him delivered from Egypt, and brought out into the [wilderness,] where there was no na­tural cause of infection, yet there, [for their ob­stinate rebellion against Moses] their Prince, [and Aaron] their chief Priest, for Schism against their Spiritual, and Sedition against their Tempo­ral Governor, (the two Epidemical Vices of this Nation,) he sent a Plague among them that sud­denly destroyed almost 15000 of them: And we should examine if some sin like theirs hath not in­volved us in like ruin. The second Instance is that 2 Sam. xxiv. [in the time of King David,] who though otherwise a good Prince, yet priding himself in the Number of his People, and not paying Gods Shekel due upon every Muster, Exod. xxx. 12. for this Pride and Sacriledge, God lessen­ed the number of his People, and diminished the Re­venue of the Exchequer, by cutting off seventy thousand by a dreadful Pestilence: Yet for our Comfort we remember, that though God was thus highly and justly provoked, upon the Address of in­jured Aaron he stopt the former Plague, and up­on the Penitence of offending David stayed the o­ther before one day was expired of the three threat­ned, 2 Sam. xxiv. 15. and though so many died, yet [remembring his Mercy he spared the rest:] [Page 207] And this encourages us to repent of our sins, and call upon him [to have pity upon us] who are both very [miserable] and grievous [sinners, who are now visited] as they were [with great sickness and mortality,] of which we confess our wickedness is the cause, and our Misery makes us the more sensible of our heinous Transgressions, and the more earnest in our Prayers, [that like as] the same God in the same case [did accept of an attonement] from Aaron, and stayed the Plague in the Wilderness, and also upon David's repen­tance and supplications, [did command the de­stroying Angel,] who had a Commission to kill by Pestilence for three days, [to cease from pu­nishing] before the time was expired; so we now do most importunately beg [it may please him,] who only can take off what his hand lays on, [to withdraw from us this] raging [Plague and grievous Sickness:] which great Mercy we crave, not through the Merits of any particu­lar Saint, as Papists do, but [through Iesus Christ our Lord,] by whom we hope to prevail. [Amen.]

Sect. VII. Of the Prayers in Ember Weeks.

§. 1. THe Apostles were Fasting when the Holy Ghost first came on them to confirm their Ordination, Acts ii. 15. and they used to fast and pray when they Ordained others, Acts xiii. 2, 3. from whence the first Christian Bishops used to ap­point Fasting and Prayer when they conferred Holy Orders, which in the first planting of the Gospel were dispensed as there was occasion; but as soon as the Church was setled, the Ordination of Mini­sters became fixed to certain Set-times, which was the Original of those four Weeks of Fasting, now called Ember-weeks, which the Decretal Epistles say were fixed by Calixtus, An. 221. though it be more probable that Gelasius did settle the Ordinations of these four times, An. 495. according as they were afterwards observed in the Western Church, and mentioned in many Councils foreign and dome­stickConcil. Mogunt. An. 813. Can. 34. Capitular. Caroli l. 5. c. 86. & Lib. 6. c. 184. Excerpt. Egberti Can. 97. An. 750. p. 267. Spelm. Conc. Aenham. Can. 16. An. 1009. Spelm. p. 518.. And the Laws of King Canutus enjoyn all to keep the Imbren FastsLeg. Canut. cap. 23. Spelm. p. 546. An. 1032., which be­ing in several Churches obser­ved with some variety, were soon after setled by the Council of Placentia, An. 1095. to be the Wednesday, Friday, and Satur­day after the first Sunday in Lent, after Whit-sunday, after [Page 209] the fourteenth of September, and after the thir­teenth of December Concil. Placent. ap. Bin. Tom. 3. part. 2. pag. 416.; and at these very times they are still observed as times of Fasting in the Church of England; and by the Statute Law a Penalty is laid upon all that eat Flesh on these Embring daysStat. Edvard. 6. An. 3. cap. 19.: And there is good reason to affix the Ordination of Ministers to these Set-times of Fasting: First, That as all Mens souls are con­cerned in the ordaining a fit Clergy, all may joyn in Fasting and Prayer for a blessing on it. Secondly, That both Bishops and Candidates, knowing the time, may prepare themselves for this great work. Thirdly, That no vacancy may remain long un­supplyed. Lastly, That the People knowing the times, may, if they please, be present, either to ap­prove the choice made by the Bishop, or to object against any whom they know to be unworthy; which Primitive priviledge is still reserved to the People in this well constituted Church. And since Gods Grace is so necessary to this great work, here are two very proper Forms for this occasion to be used by all at these Seasons.

The first Prayer.

§. 2. WE have a double encouragement to make this Prayer, First, from his Nature to whom we pray, who is [Almighty God our Heavenly Father;] Secondly, from his value of that we pray for, viz. the Catholick or [Vniver­sal [Page 210] Church, which he hath purchased to himself, by the precious blood of his dear Son,] Acts xx. 28. Ephes. v. 25. which holy Society cannot sub­sist without fit Pastors to rule and feed it; and there­fore we beg of him [mercifully to look upon it,] [And] especially [at this time,] when these Pastors are to be chosen and solemnly ordained by the Bishops, to whom only the holy Apostles com­mitted the power of Ordination, Hieron. Ep. ad Evagr. and those who were ordained by meer Pres­byters, were by a general Council declared to be in no Orders at all, Concil. Oecum. Constant. Can. 4. An. 333. The Bishops therefore (though they use the assistance of Presbyters, 1 Tim. iv. 14.) being the sole Persons who act authoritatively in this Matter, we ought to pray that God [will guide their Minds,] to proceed with all wariness and circumspection, so that they may [lay their hands] (the most ancient ceremony in conferring Holy Orders) [suddenly on no Man,] 1 Tim. v. 22. till they have carefully examined his Learning, and had sufficient Testimonial of his Life, lest they become guilty of the Sins he commits in this sacred Office; But that they like good Stewards may [faithfully and wisely make Choice of fit Per­sons to serve in the sacred Ministry of Gods Church,] according to the rules laid down by S. Paul in his Epistles to his two Bishops Timothy and Titus, and the Canons of the Church grounded thereon. Secondly, we pray for those who now [shall be Ordained to any Holy Function,] That it may please God to give them [His Grace] to fit them for their Office, and [his Heavenly benediction] to prosper them in the discharge of it, so that by the innocency [of their Life,] and [Page 211] the efficacy of [their Doctrine,] they may pro­mote the two great ends of their Calling, which are, [to set forth the Glory of God,] and [to set forward the Salvation of all Men,] to both which, pious and learned, prudent and painful Clergy-men do so directly serve, that we have all reason most earnestly to beg this [through Ie­sus Christ our Lord, Amen.]

§. 3. For variety, and as more proper for the Sa­turday and Sunday of these times, we have another Form much to the same Purpose. He that we call up­on is [Almighty God the giver of all good Gifts,] Jam. i. 17. and the first appointer of those distinct Orders in his Church, that are necessary to the government and welfare thereof, Ephes. iv. 11. and as the Church is his house, 1 Tim. iii. 15. he as the Master ought [by his providence to ap­point these divers Orders] of Bishops, Priests, and Deacons: And now that a new choice is to be made into some of these Offices, we [humbly beseech him to give his Grace to all those who are to be called] by the Bishops, whom he hath made his Stewards in this Matter, either to the [Office of Priesthood] or the [Administrati­on] of a Deacon, neither of which places can be rightly discharged without the divine Grace; where­fore as Moses prayed for Levi, that Gods Ʋrim and Thummim might be with them, so we beg of him, [so to replenish these Persons with] Ʋrim, that is, [Truth of Doctrine,] and Thummim, that is, [Innocency of Life,] with learning and piety, right Opinions and holy Example, [that they may faithfully serve] in these sacred places wherein they daily appear [before God,] both [to the [Page 212] honour of his great name,] which will be prai­sed for so well providing for his peoples Souls, [and to the benefit of his Holy Church,] which will be adorned and edified by such Ministers, this therefore we beg [through Iesus Christ our Lord, Amen.]

Sect. VIII. Of the Prayer for the High Court of Par­liament.

§. 1. THough our ancient Monarchs of this King­dom, Saxons and Normans coming in by Conquest, governed according to their own will at first, yet in after times they chose themselves a great Council of their Bishops and Barons, and finally they freely condescended to let the People choose some to represent them, so that for about 400 years we have had Parliaments, consisting of Bishops and Barons, to represent the Clergy and Nobility, and of Knights and Burgesses to represent the Com­mons, of which three Estates assembled under the King, (who calls them when he pleases, confirms what he likes, and prorogues or dissolves them as he sees cause) doth our English Parliament con­sist: Now these being never summoned but when the King desires their advice, de arduis regni nego­tiis, and having great affairs usually under their debate, and happy opportunities to do good to their Prince and their Country, it is fit we should [Page 213] pray for them: The Primitive Christians prayed for the Senate of Heathen Rome, Tertul. Apol. And the Gentiles used to Sacrifice in the beginning of all publick Councils, which used also to be held in some sacred placeAl. ab Alex. gen. dier. l. 4. cap. 11. Aulus Gellius l. 14. c. 7.; and sure we Christians ought not to shew less devotion, especially when we have so curious a composure to offer up our desires in, as this Prayer is.

§. 2. [Most gracious God, we humbly beseech thee as for this Kingdom in general, so espe­cially for the high Court of Parliament, &c.] The Jews were to pray for the peace of that King­dom, under which they lived as Captives, Jerem. xxix. 7. The Christians prayed for the prosperity of the Roman Empire by which they were persecu­ted; The Persians though Gentiles were to pray and sacrifice for their Nation, Herodot. l. 1. The Romans besought God for the Nobility and Senate, Al. ab Alex. l. 5. c. 27. And shall we neglect to pray for our Country and the great Council there­of? 'Tis a great thing indeed to pray for a whole Kingdom, but we go to a [most gracious God, and beseech him humbly, as well for the King­dom in general] in whose peace we shall have peace, [as in special for the high Court of Parliament,] the Representative of the whole, not now as heretofore rebelling against and exal­ting themselves above, [but assembled under our most religious and gracious King,] having great and weighty matters under their Considerati­on, in which they need all our Prayers: And the particular Request we make for them is, that since they are summoned to consult for the Nations safe­ty, [Page 214] it may [please God] first [to direct all their Consultations] to the best and noblest ends, and then [to prosper them,] so as they may be successfull and produce the most desirable effects. First, as to the Ends at which we desire their Con­sultations may aim, they are Three, 1. [The ad­vancement of Gods Glory,] which should be the chief end of all our actions, 1 Cor. x. 31. and ought especially to be the main design of Christian Senates, not to advance their own repute with a party, but to promote things truly just and good in themselves, for which God may be praised. 2. [The good of Gods Church,] the welfare of which is so closely joyned to the Nations safety, that the Church and State do always stand or fall together; and therefore we pray these Councellors may be dire­cted to aim at the securing the Doctrine, Discipline and Worship of the Church, with its Maintenance, Priviledges and Rights, the destruction of which would let in a flood of Confusion and Mischief upon us. 3. We pray they may [aim at the safe­ty, honour, and welfare of our Soveraign and his Kingdoms;] for the interest of King and People, rightly understood, is all one, he being the head of this great body; if he be safe, honoured and prosperous, we are so also; so that giving him liberal supplies and ready assistance to make him safe and prosperous at home, honoured and feared a­broad, is to make our selves safe and happy: These therefore are the Ends we pray God would direct them to aim at. Secondly, the Effects we desire they may obtain are, [that by their endeavours, all things,] which are discomposed, [may be so well ordered,] and all that is already in good or­der [may be so setled upon the best and surest [Page 215] of all foundations] of prudence, honesty and piety, [That] by their good Laws, their wise and Loyal Constitutions we may have [Peace] abroad, and [happiness at home,] That in all our Judi­catures [Truth] may be victorious, and on all Criminals [Iustice] may be executed, That we may keep the purity of our Principles in [Religion,] and adorn it with the Practice of [Piety] in our Conversation, and that all these incomparable bles­sings may not only be the felicity of our days, but remain to our posterity [and be established among us for all Generations,] and then we shall be a holy and a happy People: Wherefore when we reflect upon the vast advantages our Country may for many Ages receive from the Wise, Loyal and pi­ous Counsels of a good Parliament, [we humbly] and most devoutly [beg these] blessings before mentioned, [and all other] things which Al­mighty God sees to be [Necessary] and Profita­ble [for those assembled] in this Parliament, [for our selves] and all our fellow-Subjects, yea [for the whole Church, in the Name] and by [the Mediation of Iesus Christ;] And though we have no Merits in our selves to deserve such great Mercies, yet we hope to obtain them by his Merits and intercession, who is [Our most bles­sed Lord,] whom we daily serve here, and our only [Saviour,] whom we rely on for eternal happiness hereafter, [Amen.]

Sect. IX. Of the Prayer for all Conditions of Men.

§. 1. WE are expresly commanded to pray for all Men, 1 Tim. ii. 1. And though we do so in the Litany and Communion Office, yet that it might not be omitted any day, this Collect is added to supply the place of the Litany, and when that is not used, this is: Hence some call it the Lesser Litany, and it teaches us to express a hearty Charity to all, especially to the afflicted, and to those that are Sick, who are usually Prayed for in this Form.

§. 2. [O God the Creator and preserver of all Mankind, &c.] To whom should we pray for all Estates and Conditions of Men, but to that [God] who was [the Creator,] Revel. iv. 11. and is [the preserver of all Mankind,] Job vii. 20. None so like to pity them as he that made them, none so able to succour them, as he whose Provi­dence upholds all things; wherefore being mindful of his goodness and All-sufficiency [we humbly beseech him, First, in general for all the World, and for [all sorts and Conditions of Men;] and though there be innumerable differences and varie­ties in the Natures and the Condition of Men, yet our God is able to supply them all according to their needs: And what fitter request can we make for all the World than Davids Prayer, Psa. lxvii. 2. [that God would be pleased to make his ways] (that is, the Methods of his Providence, Isai. lv. 8. and [Page 217] the paths of his Law, Psal. cxix. 1.) [known un­to them, and his saving health] (that is, his Gospel, and the means of Salvation, Rom. i. 16.) [unto all Nations;] for the conversion of all Pagans, Jews, Turks and Hereticks, who as yet remain in darkness and are without the Church: But our Christian Charity which commands us to pity these, obliges [us more especially to pray for] the prosperity, and [good estate of the Catholick Church,] Psal. cxxii. 6. of which we our selves are Members: Yet since the Happiness of this holy Society doth not consist so much in outward Peace and Plenty, (for it hath been as glorious in Persecution as in the most quiet times,) therefore we pray that our Lord will make good his promise to it, that it may be always [so gui­ded and governed by his good Spirit,] John xiv. 16. that the whole Church may never erre, and that [all] the Members thereof [who protess] the true Religion [and call themselves Christi­ans,] may by this Spirit of Truth, be kept from all Heresie and false opinions in Faith, and may [be led] thereby [into the way of Truth,] John xvi. 13. And that they may not only believe aright, but [hold the Faith in unity of Spirit, and in the bond of peace,] Ephes. iv. 3. that as they all are one body and taught by one Spirit, so they may be all of one mind, and be at peace one with another, so that the Church may not be so scandalously and mischievously divided any longer. And furthermore that this Peace and mutual charity may continue, we pray they may adorn the Holy Doctrine of the Gospel with [righ­teousness of Life,] 1 Tim. iii. 9. for it is Truth, Charity and Piety, that can only make Christians [Page 218] happy here and hereafter also. [Finally] since among all conditions of Men, none so much need our Prayers as the afflicted, therefore [we commend to Gods Fatherly goodness,] and to his never-failing Compassion [all those who are any ways affli­cted,] of whom there are various instances, some of them troubled and grieved [in Mind,] others [visited] with sickness, pain or weakness in [Body,] and others ]distressed] and wronged in their [Estates,] We pray for all these sorrowful, sick and poor Creatures; and since some of them sent their Names to beg we would more particu­larly remember them, we pray (especially for those for whom our Prayers are desired:) and as (if we were in their sad Condition,) we would wish above all to be heartily Prayed for, so now we most affecti­onately desire, [that it may please God to com­fort] them while their Troubles endure, and to [re­lieve them] out of this sad Estate; and that he who knows all their Wants and Desires will dis­pense his succours [according to their several necessities,] for he is able to supply them all; May he therefore [give them Patience] to sup­port them while their Calamity continues, [and] so sanctifie it to them, that whether it end in life or death, they may have [a happy issue out of all their Afflictions] at last: All which necessary and Charitable Petitions [we beg] of God to hear and answer [for Iesus Christ his sake, Amen.]

Sect. X. Of the Collect for Pardon.

§. 1. THis short devout Collect is joyned to the ancient Litanies of the Western Church, & since Sin is the cause of all the foregoing Judgments, this may be added to any of the former, as a Prayer for Pardon of Sin; for which reason also it is used by some devout Men, (when they use the Church-Prayers in private) in stead of the Absolution.

§. 2. [O God, whose nature and property, &c.] Our business being to beg Mercy in time of our Misery, to whom should we apply our selves but to that God [whose nature and property is ever to have mercy and to forgive,] Dan. ix. 9. Exod. xxxiv. 6. He is the Fountain of it, and the Original whence it flows; Mercy in him is natural, and by him given to others; he only can forgive in his own Right and Name, all others by Commissi­on, Mark ii. 7. Of him therefore we beg that he will kindly [receive our humble Petitions,] which we have now made in time of our distress: [And though] he might justly reject our Prayers, and continue his Judgments which our sins have brought upon us, yet we beseech him to pity us, who confess [we are tyed and bound with the chain of our sins;] bound by the power of them, and made Captives; bound by the guilt of them, and liable to condemnation: And since he alone hath power to free and to acquit us, we pray that [Page 220] [the pitifulness of his great Mercy] and infi­nite Compassion, may move him to [loose us] from the Bondage of Corruption, and the Judg­ments deserved by it: Which infinite Blessing, as it must be obtained by the Intercession, so it will be [for the honour of our Mediator and Advocate Iesus Christ our Lord,] for all the World will see the Glories of his interest in Heaven, when such Sinners as we are rescued from just Punish­ments by his Mediation; hear him therefore, O Lord, for us; [Amen.]

Sect. XI. Of the General Thanksgiving.

§. 1. NOtwithstanding the Halelujah, the Gloria Patri, and daily Psalms, it was thought by some that our Liturgy wanted Forms of Praise, upon which account the particular Thanksgivings were added in the time of King James, and this General one at the time of our Soveraigns Restau­ration. And that we may use this Form with a devotion sutable to the excellency of its composure, Let us meditate, First, That Praise is one of the most essential parts of Gods Worship, by which not only all the Christian World, but the Jews and Gentiles also pay their homage to the Divine Ma­jesty. Secondly, That it is very just and reasona­ble we should make this return, considering how many blessings we daily receive from God, and that [Page 221] he desires nothing else from us, nor can we give him back any thing but love and gratitude. Third­ly, That no duty can be cheaper, or more easie to be performed, no man can want leisure or ability for this, and therefore no excuse can be made for the omission of it. Fourthly, It is most pleasant and comfortable in the performance, Psal. cxlvii. 1. it being the most delightful of all things to survey the evidences of Gods love to us, and to reckon up the benefits we have had thereby, and therefore it is the employment of Heaven. Lastly, It is most gainful and profitable in the event, for it engages our great Benefactor to continue the Mercies we have, and as well inclines him to give, as fits us to receive more: With which Considerations when we have turned our hearts into a disposition to praise God, this exact and comprehensive Form will instruct and assist us to do it with understand­ing and devotion.

§. 2. [Almighty God, Father of all Mer­cies, we thine unworthy Servants do give thee, &c.] When we are to offer up our Praises, we must be careful to direct them to the right Object, viz. to [Almighty God] who being [the Father of all mercies,] 2 Cor. i. 13. and the giver of eve­ry good Gift, James i. 17. ought to receive Thanks­giving and Glory from all Men, and especially from us, who by our Profession are [his Servants,] and yet by our manifold sins have made our selves [unworthy] of the least of his favours, Gen. xxxii. 10. Wherefore being sensible of his infinite good­ness, and our great Obligations, [we give him most humble and hearty thanks,] offering un­to him a Sacrifice of Praise in all humility, because [Page 222] of our unworthiness, and in all sincerity, because of the freeness of his Grace: And the subject of our Gratitude is vastly large, for we are to bless him [for all his goodness and loving-kindness] shewed [to us, and to all men,] for from this Fountain do flow all the Comforts that we, and all the world do enjoy: [And because it is a just and pious custom for those who are restored from sickness, or any great danger, to desire publick thanks may be given for their deliverance, to set forth Gods glory, to ex­press their gratitude, and to attest the efficacy of the Churches Prayers: We do therefore, Particularly praise God for those who now desire to have us joyn with them in offering their Praises and Thanksgivings for his late Mercies vouchsafed to them.] But indeed his Mercies are innumerable, Psal. cxxxix. 17. and though nothing less than Eternity will suffice to rec­kon up the particulars, yet we will commemorate the great and general Heads, and most humbly and heartily [bless him for] all Temporal Mercies, viz. for [our creation] out of nothing by his Power, to which we owe the beginning of our Life; for our [preservation] from thousands of miseries and dangers by his Providence, to which we are indebt­ed for the continuance of our Being: And also for [all the blessings of this Life,] Food and Rai­ment, Health and Wealth, Peace and Prosperity, Benefactors and Friends, all which we are supply­ed with by his Bounty, which hereby makes our lives to be comfortable unto us: [But] if these were all his Mercies, we could only have hope in this life, and therefore we have Spiritual and E­ternal Blessings to praise him for, which because they are more excellent and more durable than the former, therefore [above all], we praise him [for [Page 223] his inestimable love] declared [in the redeem­ing] us and all [the world] from everlasting death [by] the Cross and Passion of [our Lord Iesus Christ,] without whom it had been better for us never to have had a Being, Matth. xxvi. 14. And since we cannot receive the Benefits of his meritori­ous Death without Faith and Repentance, we bless him for his Word and Sacraments, [and all the means of Grace,] which he hath appointed to beget and encrease these holy dispositions in us, and which we in this Church by his goodness do enjoy in plenty and purity. Finally, Since he hath pre­pared an everlasting Happiness for us when this Mortal Life is at an end, we give thanks unto him, [for the hope of Glory,] 1 Pet. i. 3. by which we are encouraged in our duty, and supported under our present troubles, and in which at last we shall have a perfect fruition of all good: [And] when we reflect upon the infinite number and unconceiv­able value of all these blessings, [we] turn our Praises into Prayer, and do [beseech him to give us that due sense of all his Mercies, that] through the Operation of his Holy Spirit, [our hearts may be unfeignedly thankful] for them all, being filled with love and gratitude toward the Author of all our comfort: Which inward thankful­ness if it be vigorous and sincere, will break forth & excite our tongues to repeat these Forms devout­ly, Matth. xii. 34. But because neither the grati­tude of our hearts nor tongues are a sufficient return, we pray [that we may shew forth his Praise, not only with our Lips, but in our Lives,] the holiness of which is a certain proof we truly love God, John xiv. 23. and a Means for one Man to engage a thousand others, (even as many as see [Page 224] his good works) to glorifie him by whose grace all good is performed, Chrysost. in Gen. hom. 26. T. 1. p. 203. Wherefore let us prove that his love hath won our hearts, [by our giving up our selves] intirely [to his Service,] Rom. xii. 1. and de­clare we esteem our selves eternally bound to please him, and bring honour to him, [by our walking before him in Holiness and Righteousness,] as long as his Mercies endure, that is, [all the days] of our Lives; and thus we shall not cease to praise him when we go from Church, but shall bless him and cause him to be praised every where and at all times: This blessed use therefore of his favours we desire to make, and beg we may have Grace thus to return them, [through Iesus Christ our Lord,] by whose Merits and Intercession we obtain them all: [To him] therefore who hath redeemed us, [with the Father] who did Create us, [and the Holy Ghost] who sanctifieth us, by the means of Grace, [be all Honour and Glory] ascribed by us and all Men, both in this [World,] and in that which is [without end, Amen.] Praise ye the Lord, [Amen.]

Sect. XII. Of the Thanksgiving for Rain.

§. 1. LActantius assures us that the Gentiles not only applied themselves to the Gods in Drought, Fa­mine and other Calamities; but when the Evils were re­moved, they cheerfully ran to their Temples, crowning their Statues, and making Oblations and sacrifices to them Lactant. instit. lib. 2. cap. 1.; yea, upon the granting of Rain they built particular Altars to showring Jupiter: And David seems to have written the lxv. Psalm on purpose for a publick Thanksgiv­ing upon the removal of this Judgment: Which being so justly due to God, for the blessing of Rain after so great a want of it, our Church hath com­posed this Eucharistick Form, wherein the Divine Majesty is worthily praised upon this account.

§. 2. [O God our Heavenly Father, who by thy Gracious Providence, &c.] The giving of Rain indue season is so great a blessing, that Scripture makes it the emblem of the most desirable things, Prov. xvi. 15. and Hos. vi. 13. And since the Divine and [Gracious Providence of our Heavenly Fa­ther] is the [Cause] of it (as we have proved before) we ought to return him thanks for it, and first for that which he ordinarily bestows, viz. [the former Rain] which he gives at Seed-time, to make that which is sown take root, Isai. xxx. 23. [and the latter Rain] which he sends before [Page 226] harvest to fill the Ears of Corn, and bring them to perfection, Joel ii. 23. Deut. xi. 14. (both which the Athenians acknowledged by two several Sacrifices;) For which there is very great reason, since the end why God makes these showres [de­scend upon the Earth,] is to cause it [to bring forth fruit for our use:] it being one of the prin­cipal instruments which he uses, to furnish us with plenty; so that we must bless him for it, when it comes regularly: But when we have known the misery of wanting it, then we are taught to value it by a sad experience. Secondly therefore, now God hath heard our Prayers, [we give him hum­ble thanks] (as knowing we were unworthy,) [that he was pleased in our great necessity,] when all our fruits and provisions were like to be lost for want of it, then [to send a joyful rain] upon our Country which is [his inheritance, to refresh] the pined fruits and parched Earth, [when they were dry] and without hope, Psal. lxviii. 9. We acknowledge these plentiful showres were so seasonable and so beneficial, that they tended [to the great comfort of] us and our Neighbours who are [his unworthy Servants,] and could not expect or deserve so great a blessing: And there­fore it shall end in [the Glory of his holy Name,] to which we will offer up our most hearty Praises for this mighty favour which he bestowed on us purely [through his Mercies in Iesus Christ our Lord, Amen.]

Sect. XIII. Of the Thanksgiving for Fair Wea­ther.

§. 1. THe first Altar we read of, was built by No­ah, to praise God for the ceasing of the Universal Flood, Gen. viii. 20, 21. And the Poets who have imitated that story, tell us that Deucation and his Wife went to Worship the Gods, as soon as that Deluge was over, Ovid. Metam. l. 1. fab. 10. And if our late terrible Inundations did not pro­ceed so far, we owe it only to Gods Mercy, who hath timely stayed the violence thereof; to whom our Church teaches us on this occasion, to address our selves in this proper Thanksgiv­ing.

§. 2. O Lord God, who hast justly humbled us by thy late Plague of immoderate Rain, &c.] Now that the terror of the late floods and tempests is past and the danger over, we must not harden our hearts like Pharaoh, but in the first place con­fess, our Sins were the true cause of those miseries and losses; and that God may be justified, we must acknowledge [he did justly humble us by the late plague of immoderate Rain and waters:] Our Wickedness did overflow, and provoke him to turn that very Rain which is the parent of most earthly blessings, to be the scourge to chastise us, and the instrument to destroy them. Yet Secondly, since without any merit of ours, but purely [in [Page 228] his mercy] he was pleased [to relieve] us in that extreme misery, [and to comfort our Souls,] by removing the terror which was upon us, and granting to us, [this seasonable and blessed change of weather,] This Mercy is highly accep­table unto us, preventing many sad losses which threatned us, and freeing us from the most dismal expectations: Wherefore [we praise and glorifie his Holy Name,] upon which we called, and thereby obtained [this mercy: And we will] not only bless him for this present Favour now, but [always declare] to the whole World the greatness [of his Loving-kindness] toward us, so that the Memory of his infinite and never-fail­ing goodness shall continue [from generation to generation,] Psal. lxxix. ult. and he shall ever be praised [through Iesus Christ our Lord, Amen.]

Sect. XIV. Of the Thanksgiving for Plenty.

§. 1. IF every good Christian take himself bound in duty to Praise God for every single Meal; How much more are we bound to bless his Name, for feeding a whole Nation at once? But Plenty, though it oblige to the highest Gratitude, is apt to make us forget the hand which doth bestow it; And therefore the Israelites are cautioned to beware they did not forget the Lord, when they came to enjoy the abundance of Canaan, Deut. viii. 11, 12, 13. and [Page 229] to prevent the like Ingratitude in us, the Church admonishes us to Praise God in this Form.

§. 2. [O most merciful Father, who of thy gracious goodness hast heard, &c.] It is the part of a kind Father to provide Food for his Chil­dren when they crave it, Luke xi. 11. and the Chil­dren so provided for have a lasting Obligation laid upon them thereby: But in our case when no earth­ly Parent could help us, then did God, [our most merciful Father,] without any desert in us, meerly [of his gracious goodness,] Psal. lxviii. 10. [hear] and answer [the devout Prayers] which were made by [the Church] in our late great Necessity: And what we then prayed so ear­nestly for, he hath now granted; For it is he a­lone that [hath turned our] late intolerable [Dearth and Scarcity into] this wonderful [Cheapness and Plenty] See the prayer in time of Famine, Sect. iv §. 4, 5.. He hath given us these fruitful seasons, and filled our hearts with food and gladness, Acts xiv. 17. And as the united Prayers of the Church were the means to procure this Blessing, (and sure we ought to love those Prayers that God hears,) so our conjoyned Praises must continue the favour; where­fore let us in a due sense of our unworthiness and his free goodness, [Give him humble thanks for this his special bounty.] And as an Evidence of our owning him for the Author of our abundance, [let us beseech him to continue his loving-kind­ness to us,] and then we shall have seasonable Weather, and all other things that conduce to make [our Land yield her increase,] Psal. lxxxv. 12. so that we shall have a continuing Plenty. And as [Page 230] it comes from his bounty, so it ought to engage our gratitude, and end as well [in his Glory, as in our Comfort;] for while we are refreshed by it, we will remember he is the Author of it, and re­turn to him our hearty praises for it, [through Iesus Christ our Lord,] by whom we did obtain it, [Amen.]

Sect. XV. Of the Thanksgiving for deliverance from Enemies.

§. 1. TO praise God for Victory, is one of the most ancient and universal Customs a­mong Mankind. The first Priest we read of, Mel­chisedec, is thus imployed, Gen. xiv. 20. and the Scripture records the Songs of Moses, Deborah and David, on this occasion. The Gentiles owned their receiving this blessing from their Gods, by gi­ving them the Tythe of all their Spoils, by Sacri­fices, Hymns, and dedicating Altars to them. The Christians, from Constantine's time, have always u­sed solemn and publick Praises after all eminent Victories, as ancient and modern Histories do as­sure us. And though the Roman Church have no Form but the Te Deum, (which is no way pertinent) on this Occasion, our Church hath made two very proper and pious Forms of Praise; the first to be used after our deliverance from foreign, the se­cond after our deliverance from domestick Foes. The former this.

[Page 231]§. 2. [O Almighty God, who art a strong Tower of defence, &c.] When we are safe or vi­ctorious, it is most just and reasonable we should confess it is the gift of [our Almighty God,] Psal. cxliv. 10. and not boast of our own policy and strength, a Crime little short of the wicked­ness of those Pagans, who after a prosperous bat­tel, sacrificed to their Shields and Swords. We know, one of the principal means of our safety was the calling upon the Name of the Lord, which was a [strong Tower of defence unto us,] Prov. xviii. 10. Psal. lxi. 3. We are [his Servants] who daily worship him, and apply to him in all our necessities, and when [our Enemies set their faces] against us to assault us, he made them turn their backs and fly. To him therefore we [yield] most hearty [Praise and Thanksgiving,] not for the slaugh­ter and destruction of them, (which we did not de­sire, nor do we delight in it, Prov. xvii. 5. & xxiv. 17, 18.) but [for our deliverance from those great] miseries [and apparent dangers where­with we were encompassed,] when our unjust Foes with so much Power, Policy, and Malice did late­ly set upon us; and into which we had deplorably fallen if they had prevailed: They did like so ma­ny enraged and savage Beasts, seek to devour us, and [we acknowledge it] was not our foresight, conduct or strength, but [his goodness] alone [that we were not delivered over as a prey unto them,] Psal. cxxiv. 6. For if he had not taken our part, they had certainly got the Victory over us, and might have executed their cruelty on us: And when we find such security from his Protection, as we bless him for that which is past, so [we be­seech him still to continue such his mercy to­ward [Page 232] us,] that if they, or others, shall again set upon us, we may be still preserved so eminently, [that all the world may know] it is in vain to hope to destroy us, since they may discern, He that none can conquer [is our Saviour and mighty Deliverer,] Isai. xlix. 25, 26. O grant this unto us [through Iesus Christ our Lord, Amen.]

Sect. XVI. Of the Thanksgiving for restoring Peace at home.

§. 1. THe sad effects of those Tumults and Se­ditions An. 1641. which raised and che­rished our late barbarous Civil War, was a just cause to add this Form, when Gods infinite good­ness had so miraculously composed it by his Maje­sties happy Restauration: And whenever such Mis­chiefs are again begun by popular and designing men, if Gods Providence crush those designs be­times, we may properly praise him in this Me­thod.

§. 2. [O eternal God our heavenly Father, who alone makest men to be of one mind, &c.] As all Government sprung from a Family, so that yet continues the Emblem of this; and a Kingdom is one great House, the King being the Master and Father thereof: but considering the multitude of [Page 233] People, and the difference in their Condition, Hu­mors and Designs, it is a wonder they are not al­ways jarring; it is not human Policy alone can pre­vent it; Scripture tells us, it is [God that ma­keth men to be of one mind in an house,] Psal. lxviii. 6. He keeps the Nation quiet, and when Fa­ctious and discontented great Ones do sow Sedition among the furious and giddy Rabble, [He it is that stilleth the outrage of a violent and unruly people,] Psal. lxv. 7. which otherwise when they are once broke loose from fear of Laws, like a raging Sea, or fierce Torrent, would have born down all before them: We lately saw and felt the horrid effects of such like beginnings, and therefore [we bless his holy Name,] who hath [been pleased] by early discoveries, and strange disap­pointments, to scatter the contrivances, and [to appease the seditious Tumults, which] by wicked Instruments have [lately been raised a­mongst us,] and might have ended in the utter ruin of Religion and Government, as well as the destruction of many thousands: And now, that we may never fall into the like mischief, we do [most humbly beseech] the Lord [to grant all of us the Grace] to be really good, and not (as Rebels often do) only to pretend to be so: We pray [that we may all henceforth obediently walk in Gods holy Commandments,] especially those of Sub­jection to our King for Conscience sake, Prov. xxiv. 21. Rom. xiii. 1, 2, 3, 4, 5. for God hath set him over us on purpose [that under him we may lead quiet and peaceable lives in all godliness and honesty,] 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2. and if that were all we desired, to serve God devoutly, and be just to all the World, we need never rebel: For then we might [Page 234] be holy, quiet and happy, and should have reason [continually to offer unto him our Sacrifices of Praise and Thanksgiving for these] blessings of Peace and Plenty, and for [all other his mer­cies toward us,] Hebr. xiii. 15. which are given to us [through Iesus Christ our Lord,] to whom be glory now and evermore, [Amen.]

Sect. XVII. Of the Thanksgiving for Deliverance from the Plague.

§. 1. AS Life is the greatest earthly Blessing, so the preservation of it is the greatest Mer­cy; and if it be our Duty (as was noted before) to offer publick Praises for Deliverance from an or­dinary Sickness, much more from the Plague, the most dreadful and mortal of all Diseases: For which we have the Example of those good Kings, David, 2 Sam. xxiv. 25. and Hezekiah, Isai. xxxviii. 9. and for this purpose an excellent Form here provi­ded.

§. 2. [O Lord God, who hast wounded us for our sins, and consumed us for, &c.] Though we have cause of joy for the preservation of our own lives, yet we cannot but make sad reflections on the dear Friends we have lost; so that this is a joy mingled with weeping, like that Ezr. iii. 12, 13. and therefore we begin with a sad Memorial of our [Page 235] late Miseries, and a penitent Confession that our sins were the cause of them, Declaring that [the Lord God] did justly [wound us for our sins, and consume us for our transgressions;] These, even these were the fatal Causes of [the late Vi­sitation] which fell so [heavy] upon those who were smitten, and was so [dreadful] to us who were spared, that we lived in continual fear of death. And yet such is the infinite goodness of our God, that [in the midst of] that just [Iudg­ment] he was executing upon us, in the very height of that wrath to which our Iniquities had provo­ked him, [he remembred Mercy,] Habac. ii. 2. And to shew that no baseness of ours can extinguish his pity, [he redeemed] our Lives from the Grave, Psal. ciii. 4. and [our Souls from the Iaws of Death] eternal, into which we might have fallen if we had died impenitent. O what can we re­turn to the Lord for this mighty benefit? Surely, as S. Paul adviseth, [We will offer unto his Fa­therly goodness] (which spared us) [our] whole [selves, our souls and bodies,] both which he hath [delivered,] vowing that we will consecrate both to be [a living Sacrifice unto him,] Rom. xii. 1. so that we will live to no other end, but to serve our gracious Deliverer, and to glorifie him by this New life he hath given us: We will never for­get this signal favour, but now and [always] here­after we will spend our days [in praising and mag­nifying] his holy Name for this and all [his Mer­cies,] not only in private, [but in the midst of the Church,] Hebr. ii. 12. for so eminent and publick a Blessing deserves the most solemn and publick Praise, which we his vowed Servants do here offer up unto him, [through Iesus Christ [Page 236] our Lord,] to whom with the Father, and the bles­sed Spirit, be all honour and glory now and for e­ver, [Amen.]

The Thanksgiving for deliverance from other Sickness.

§. 3. THere are many other Epidemical Diseases besides the Plague, which sometimes spread far and kill many; and when upon our humble Prayers, and hearty Repentance, it pleaseth God to stop that growing Evil, we may properly ad­dress our Thanksgivings to him in this Form.

§. 4. [We humbly acknowledge before thee, O most merciful Father, &c.] Nothing makes us more discontented under Gods Rod, nor less thankful for deliverance, than the forgetting our manifold and heinous Offences: Wherefore the Church directs us to confess a certain, though a sad Truth, and teaches us [humbly to acknow­ledge before our most merciful Father, that all] those dreadful [punishments] which are [threat­ned in his Law] against obstinate Sinners, and e­specially those Contagious and Mortal Diseases, Levit. xxvi. 14, 15, 16. Deut. xxviii. 59, 60, & 61. [might justly have fallen upon us,] the sinful people of this Land, [by reason of our] readiness to commit all sorts of [transgressions, and] of our [hardness of heart,] and impenitence after they were committed: [And yet] he who generally punishes us less than our Iniquities deserve, Job xi. 6. [Page 237] hath only chosen one of these dreadful Scourges; nor hath he used that to extremity, for [it hath pleased him of his tender Mercy] to pity us in our Misery, and though not for the merit of [our weak and unworthy humiliation, yet] upon our use of that means, he hath [asswaged the con­tagious sickness wherewith we lately have been so sore afflicted,] that few places escaped the fury of it: And now it is so fully ceased, [that the voice of joy and health is restored into our Dwellings,] Psal. cxviii. 15. instead of the dying groans and funeral tears that lately had possession there. O Lord, we are infinitely obliged by this blessed change, and as we are in duty bound, [we offer unto thy Divine Majesty the Sacrifice of Praise and Thanksgiving;] for the dead are gone into silence, and cannot praise thee; but we who live by thy Mercy, [will laud and magnifie thy glorious Name,] Psal. cxv. 17. Isai. xxxviii. 18, 19. [for such] wonderful [preservation] of our lives, and such gracious [Providence] over all that belongs to us, begging by our Gratitude and Obedience, and by thy Mercy accepting these just Returns, thy Fatherly care may be continued over us for ever, [through Iesus Christ our Lord] and Saviour, [Amen.]

The End of the Second Part.

PART III. OF THE COMMUNION OFFICE.

The Introduction.

§. 1. SInce the Death of Christ hath reconciled God to Mankind, and his Intercession alone obtains all good things for us, we are enjoyned to make all our Prayers in his Name; and as a more powerful way of inter­ceding, to commemorate his Passion by celebrating the holy Eucharist, which in the purest Ages was always joyned to their Publick and Common Pray­ers, Acts ii. 42. And to evidence our Church wishes it were so still, she appoints a great part of this Office to be used on all Sundays and Holy-days, and [Page 240] orders the Priest to say it at the Altar, the place where all the Prayers of the Church of old were wont to be made (a), Altare, quo Deus omnipotens invo­catus sit. Optat. Milev. lib. 6. p. 93. vide p. 94. Et Crescon. Breviar. Canon. e Tit. 70. Con­cil. Carthag. because there was the proper place to commemorate Jesus our only Mediator, by whom all our Prayers become accepted. And hence the Ancients call this Of­fice the Service of the Altar [...] Synes. ep. 57. pag. 193., which in the time of Celebra­tion was then also, as our Ru­brick now enjoyns, covered with a fair Linnen ClothQuis fidelium nes­cit in peragendis my­steriis ipsa ligna lin­teamine cooperiri? Op­tat. Milev. l. 6. p. 95.. As for the Primitive and Original Form of Administration, since Christ did not institute any one Me­thod, it was various in divers Churches, only all agreed in using the Lords Pray­er, and reciting the words of Institution, which therefore some think was all the Apostles used: But their Successors in several Churches added several devout Forms thereunto, which being joyned to the original Order used by the Founder of each Church, was for greater honour called by the Name of that first Author: And hence we have now the Liturgy used at Jerusalem, called The Liturgy of St. James; that of Alexandria, called The Liturgy of St. Mark; that of Rome, called The Liturgy of S. Clement, (with others of lesser value) which by the fancy of adding to them in every Age, have contracted ma­ny Superstitions of later times, and yet do still con­tain many genuine and substantial pieces of true Primitive Devotion, easily distinguished from the modern and corrupt Additions. But since none of these Apostolical Liturgies were believed of Divine [Page 241] Institution, S. Basil and S. Chrysostom made new Forms for their own Churches, now generally used in the East; and S. Ambrose and S. Gregory the great composed Sacramentaries for their several Church­es; and the Christians in Spain had a peculiar or­der for this Office, called The Mozarabic Form; the Gallican Church had another distinct from all these; and S. Gregory was so far from imposing the Roman Missal on this Church of England, that he advises Augustine the Monk to review all Liturgies, and take out of them what was best, and so to compose a Form for this Nation Vide Spelm. Concil. Tom. 1. p. 99.. And when the Roman Missal (after­ward imposed here) was shame­fully corrupted, our Judicious Reformers made use of this Ancient and just Liber­ty, and comparing all Liturgies, they have out of them all extracted what is most Pure and Primitive, and so composed this admirable Office, which as Bishop Jewel affirms, Comes as nigh as can be to the Apostolick and ancient Catholick Church, Apolog. pag. 170. and indeed is the most exact now extant in the Christian World, the explaining whereof will effectually serve to the assisting the Communicant in order to a worthy preparation before the receiv­ing, devout affections in receiving, and the con­firming his holy purposes afterwards: For it doth instruct us in all that is necessary to be known, and to be done in this sacred and sublime Duty, and is contrived in this curious Method.

§. 2. The whole Communion Office consists of four Parts. First, a more general Preparation to the Communion, and is either Common to the whole Congregation in the exercise of 1. Repen­tance, [Page 242] by [the Lords Prayer, the Collect for Purity, and the Ten Commandments.] 2. Ho­ly desires, by [the Collects for the King and the Day.] 3. Of Obedience, by the hearing of the [Epistle and Gospel.] 4. Of Faith by repeating [the Creed.] 5. Of Charity by [the Offertory and the prayer for the holy Catholick Church.] Or else this general Preparation is proper to those who ought to Communicate, viz. [The warning before the Communion, and the Exhortation to it.] Secondly, Here is the more immediate Pre­paration, contained in 1. The proper instructi­ons, in [the Exhortation at the Communi­on, and the immediate Invitation.] 2. The form of acknowledging our offences, in [the Confession.] 3. The means of ensuring our Par­don, by [the Absolution and the Sentences.] 4. The exciting our love and gratitude [in the Preface and the Hymn called Trisagium] Third­ly, Here is the Celebration of the Mystery consisting of 1. The Communicants humble approach, in [the Address.] 2. The Ministers blessing the Elements, in [the Prayer of Consecration.] 3. His distributing them according to [the form of Administration.] Lastly, here is the Post-com­munion containing 1. Prayers and Vows, in [the Lords Prayer, The first and second Prayers after the Communion] 2. Praises and Thanks­giving, in [the Gloria in Excelsis.] 3. The dismission by [the final Blessing.]

Partition I. OF THE More general Preparation.

Sect. I. Of the Lords Prayer.

§. 1. THis holy Sacrament, and this Divine Prayer had one and the same Author, and therefore the Lords Prayer must be the most proper Preface to the Lords Supper, in the Celebration of which the Primitive Church always used this Prayer, as the Fathers te­stifieOptat. Milev. lib. 2. pag. 57.; and S. Hierom af­firms that Christ himself taught it his Apostles to be said at the holy CommunionHieron. adver. Pe­lag. l. 3. Tom. 2. p. 469.; whence he and all the Ancients do ex­pound that Petition —[Give us this day our daily bread] of the body of Christ, the bread [Page 244] of life, which in those times they daily received for the nourishment of their Souls;Tertul. de orat. Cy­prian. de or. Hieronym. ut supra. Theophylac. in Matth. 6. And not only that Petition, but all the rest of this incomparable Form is very sutable to this Mystery; and since the whole Prayer is explained in the first part, we shall here only direct you to apply it to the Sacred Communion.

§. 2. O Lord, though we be unworthy to be cal­led thy Servants, yet if we may receive thy dear Son in this Blessed Sacrament, we may then cheer­fully call thee [Our Father,] for thus we mise­rable Sinners on the Earth become reconciled and united to thee [which art in Heaven:] Thy goodness and condescension hath instituted this Eucharistical Sacrifice of praise for a grateful me­morial of our Saviours Passion; wherefore we pray that by our reverent and thankful receiving these Mysteries, [Hallowed] and adored may [be thy Name] by us and all the World: Let this clear manifestation of the love of Jesus win us so fully to thy service, that [Thy Kingdom] of Grace prevailing in our hearts, we may be ready when thy Kingdom of Glory shall [come] where these outward signs shall cease: But while we need these helps, let this and every part of [thy will be done] with such sincerity and devotion by us thy Servants, that thy pleasure may be our delight [in Earth, as it is] the delight of the Angels that are [in Heaven;] And though we want that im­mediate fruition of thy presence which they enjoy, yet we shall be as happy as this World can make us, if thou please to [Give us] at thy holy Table [Page 245] [this day] that Bread of Life, the Body of Christ, which is as necessary for our Souls as [our Daily Bread] is for our Bodies: And since we have committed many grievous Sins, O do thou pardon [And forgive us] by the Merits of his bitter passion which we here set forth, all [our Trespas­ses] against thy Majesty, [as we] moved by the ex­perience of thy mercy to us, do here [forgive them that trespass against us] in thought, word or deed: Finally when by thy dear Sons Blood thou hast thus reconciled us to thy self and to one another, Let not Sathan dissolve this blessed union, [And lead us not] into evil circumstances, lest they occasion our falling [into temptation] and Sin, for we know our own frailty; leave us not therefore to our selves, [but deliver us,] whom thou hast redeemed, and fed with thy Sons precious Bo­dy and Blood, [from] all kind of [evil,] as well from the Evil of Sin as that of Punishment, here and hereafter, [Amen.]

Sect. II. Of the Collect for Purity.

§. 1. THis short and Devout Collect is both a ve­ry fit introduction to the Communion-Service, and a proper Preface to the repeating of the Ten Commandments. The Western Church of old used this very Form in this Office, and the Eastern prayed before the Sacrament, O Lord puri­fie [Page 246] our souls and bodies from all pollutions of flesh and spirit Orat. 2. fid. Eucho­log. p. 71.; for the pure Body of Christ must be received into a pure heartHebr. x. 22.. And as the People were to be purified be­fore the first publication of the Law, Exod. xix. 14. so must we have clean hearts before we are fit to hear it, lest if our minds be impure, sin take oc­casion by the Commandment to stir up Concupi­scence in us, Rom. vii. 8. And therefore that so well placed a Prayer may be said with a sutable Devoti­on, let us consider the sense of it.

§. 2. [Almighty God, unto whom all hearts be open, &c.] We are in this Sacrament to make the nearest approach to a most holy God; and that we may not dare to come with filthy thoughts and desires, we are here instructed, that he we draw near unto is an [Almighty God,] and able to de­stroy all that affront him by coming in their Pollu­tion; nor can any such be concealed from him [unto whom] not only all words and actions are apparent, but [all hearts be open,] Hebr. iv. 13. and [all desires] after evil (before they be ac­complished) [are known,] Psal. xxxviii. 9. [and from whom no secrets are hid,] Job xlii. 2. We may justly fear lest such an All-seeing Majesty should discover, and such an Almighty God punish us if we come with wicked purposes or desires; and therefore we pray with holy David, Psal. li. 10. that he will please to [cleanse the thoughts of our hearts,] which are generally vain or filthy; and though this be a great work, and above our own strength, yet we know he can do it [by the inspi­ration of his holy] and sanctifying [Spirit,] [Page 247] which can change the hearts of a filthy unclean Sin­ner, that is never so unfit for this high and holy Ordinance, and make him [perfectly love] God with all his heart above all other things, [and wor­thily magnifie his holy Name,] as at other times, so especially in this Sacrifice of Praise, which is ap­pointed on purpose for redeemed Sinners to bless and glorifie their merciful Saviour, who died for them: Wherefore that we in this Sacrament may thus love, and thus praise God, let us beg this pure heart most earnestly, [through] the Merits and Intercession of [Iesus Christ our Lord, A­men.]

Sect. III. Of the Ten Commandments.

§. 1. THese Divine Precepts of the Moral Law were not appropriated to the Jewish Sy­nagogue, but do as much concern and oblige us, as they did them: We vowed to keep them in our Baptism, and we renew that Vow at every Com­munion, and therefore it is very fit we should hear them often, and have them repeated now, when we are going to make a fresh engagement to observe them. God hath told us, That his Prayer shall be abomination who turns away his ear from hearing the Law, Prov. xxviii. 9. And our diligent attention to his Will will encline him to hear our desires; so that our obedient and humble hearing the Com­mandments [Page 248] makes way for the success of our Pray­ersMemoria praecepto­rum viam orationibus sternit ad Coelum. Ter­tul. de Orat. cap. 10.. And where could the Law be placed in our Service more conveniently, than imme­diately before the Gospel, to make that more welcome to us, when the Law hath humbled us by its Terrors? And since we are to confess all our sins before we come to this blessed Sacrament of Pardon, the Church holds out this Glass unto us, by which we may discover all our Offences: And that we may the better use it to this end, I shall here present the general Division of it with the grossest sins against each Commandment.

§. 2. God himself first divided this Law into two Tables, Deut. v. 22. and our Saviour tells us, The first contains our Duty to God; The second our Duty to our Neighbour, Matth. xxii. 37, 38, 39. First, Our Duty to God; which is, First, To have a right Object of our Worship: I. Com. [Thou shalt have no, &c.] which forbids Apostasie, Dei­fying the Creatures, and Distrust of the true God. Secondly, To worship him in a right manner; as well in our solemn Addresses to him, II. Com. [Thou shalt not make, &c.] which forbids Ido­latry, Superstition, and all carnal and careless Worship: as also in all other Acts that have respect toward him: III. Com. [Thou shalt not take, &c.] which forbids Blasphemy, vain and false Oaths, Cursing, pro­phaning holy Things, and Sacriledge. Thirdly, Our Duty to God is to observe the right time for his Worship: IV. Com. [Remember that thou keep holy, &c.] which forbids Neglect of the Publick Worship on Sundays and other Holy-days, and spending [Page 249] those times in sin or vanity. The Second Table con­tains Our Duty to our Neighbour: First, With respect to their Persons, in all our Relations to any; Na­tural, as Parents and Children; Civil, as Kings and Subjects; Religious, as Ministers and People; Do­mestick, as Masters and Servants: V. Com. [Ho­nour thy Father, &c.] which forbids in all these Relations, to the Superiors, Pride, Negligence, evil Example; to the Inferiors, Disobedience, Contempt, and Resisting. Secondly, Our Duty to our Neigh­bour, with respect to the things belonging to him, that we do not injure him in any of these; First, By Deeds done against 1. His Life; VI. Com. [Thou shalt do no Murder:] which forbids Killing others, Challenging, Anger, Cruelty and Revenge. 2. His Chastity; VII. Com. [Thou shalt not com­mit Adultery:] which forbids Actual defiling of those that are married or single, wanton thoughts, words, gestures, and the occasion of these, viz. Gluttony and Drunkenness. 3. His Goods; VIII. Com. [Thou shalt not Steal:] which forbids Thieving, Cheat­ing, unjust Detaining, Oppression, and the Occasions of these, Idleness and Prodigality. 4. His good Name; IX. Com. [Thou shalt not bear false witness, &c.] which forbids All false Evidence, Lying, Slan­dering, Tale-bearing and Flattery. Secondly, That we do not injure him in thought or desire; X. Com. [Thou shalt not covet, &c.] which forbids Cove­tousness, Envy at others good Estate, Discontent with our own.

§. 3. When we hear these holy Commandments read in the Church, we must receive them with e­qual reverence and humility as if God himself spake them from Mount Sinai: And because we [Page 250] have offended against them all, we must kneel down as Criminals ought to do, and diligently consider, as the Priest reads them, what sins we have done a­gainst each Commandment; and when we have found out the particular Transgressions, we must at the close of every Command, most earnestly beg Pardon for them, saying, [Lord have mercy up­on us,] and forgive us for these great Offences; and that we may never commit the like again, O do thou [incline our hearts to keep these Laws.] And thus the Law of God may be a daily means of our Repentance and Reformation.

§. 4. But since the Church hath placed them in the Entrance of the Communion Office, we may make another use of them for our more private Preparation to that blessed Sacrament: Before which we must examine our selves, 1 Cor. xi. 28. and sadly call to mind all our iniquities, both to humble us for what is past, and to make us earnest for an interest in the death of Christ here remem­bred. Now by the Law is the knowledge of sin, Rom. iii. 20. and therefore when the Minister gives us notice of a Sacrament, First, Let us set one whole day apart (if possible) and bend our thoughts to this great work, forsaking all Company and Busi­ness. Secondly, Let us spend this day fasting, as well to punish our selves for former follies and ex­cess, as to bring down our stubborn hearts, and make them tender. Thirdly, Let us begin the Du­ty with Prayer to God for a clear sight and penitent sense of all our mis-doings, and for his assistance in our impartial Examination. Fourthly, Let us so seriously set our selves to compare all our Actions with these holy Commandments, as if we should [Page 251] (as it may be we shall) not, ever have another op­portunity to judge our selves till we come to Gods Tribunal. And when by this strict considering e­very Commandment by it self, and all that we have done against it, we have called to mind as many of our sins as we can remember, Then, Fifthly, let us prepare our selves for making our Confession, by deep and fixed Meditation upon these Particulars in order: 1. The heinous Nature of these sins in general, and in every particular Act. 2. The in­finite number of them, being of many kinds, of Omission and Commission; and the same offences often repeated, and infinitely more forgotten than these we have remembred, yet all standing in Gods Book. 3. Think of the most dreadful vengeance due to them, even all the Judgments that can fall upon you here, and everlasting damnation hereaf­ter. 4. Consider of the foul aggravations of your sins, as having been done against a good God, much Knowledge and many Vows, which make them worse than the sins of many others. 5. Yet remem­ber God hath spared you on purpose to repent, and is very desirous to forgive you, and Jesus hath died for your Pardon, therefore do not despair. But, Sixthly, Kneel down, and with shame, sorrow and detestation of all your Crimes, with sighs and tears make your Confession, and most importu­nately beg Mercy for your poor Soul, in your own words, or in the Form of Confession after­ward set down. Seventhly, When this is done, Meditate again on such things as may bring you to sincere Resolutions of amending in every Par­ticular. Consider, 1. How little solid and true gain or pleasure there is in any sin. 2. How ma­ny Evils of grief, fear, shame, and innumerable [Page 252] other mischiefs do attend on it. 3. How infinite­ly dear we must pay for it in another World, even the loss of endless unspeakable Joys, and the Tor­ments of unsufferable and eternal Flames. 4. Con­sider that the contrary Virtues you now resolve to practise, are nothing but a method of living wise­ly and well, so as to please God and all good Men, and to gain a Peace that will sweeten all Conditi­ons to you: They are the course that the wisest and best men have chosen; they are very pleasant, and by Gods Grace very easie; the only way to make you happy here, and yet they shall be reward­ed hereafter with the enjoyment of God, and with all the happiness the pleasures of Heaven, and the blessed Society there can give you. Lastly there­fore, when these thoughts have fully convinced you, it is your interest, duty, and happiness to amend and become a holy Person. Then conclude this Ex­ercise with earnest Prayers for Gods Grace through Jesus Christ, to enable you to keep these good Re­solutions, and make a solemn Vow to resist all temptations to, and avoid all occasions of Evil, and to practise all parts of your duty to God, your Neighbour, and your selves, as you are taught by these Commandments: Which, by this means, may become the Rule for your Examination, the Means of your Repentance, and the Instrument of your Amendment. And this is the first part of your Preparation for the worthy receiving the Lords Supper.

Sect. IV. Of the Prayers for the King.

§. 1. S. Paul Commands us to pray first of all for Kings, 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2. and therefore in the beginning of this Office we place these Prayers; and though we had prayed for them before, yet the Kings prosperity is so great and universal a blessing, we cannot ask it too often. This of old was a di­stinct Office used some hours after Morning Prayer, and in the Primitive Church they did especially pray for the King in the Communion Office, where by vertue of the Sacrifice of Christs death comme­morated, these great requests might be most like­ly to prevail: And in our Liturgy these Prayers do not (as in the Roman Missal) disturb the Prayer of Consecration, but are more conveniently placed, for we pray for the King immediately after the Commandments, because he is Custos utriusque Tabulae, the Defender of both Tables: And just before the daily Collect, that when we have prayed for out­ward prosperity to the Church, the Consequent of the Kings welfare, we may in the Collect pray for inward Grace, to make it completely happy: The first Prayer runs thus.

§. 2. [Almighty God whose Kingdom is e­verlasting and Power infinite, &c.] The Person we ask for is great, and the blessings he wants very considerable, but he we ask of is infinitely greater, [Page 254] and able to grant them all, for he is an [Almigh­ty God, whose Kingdom is everlasting,] Dan. iv. 34. because he never dies as Earthly Princes do, [and his Power infinite] so that he can bless a whole Nation at once, which he will effectually do, if he please to bless him, whose piety and prospe­rity makes us all happy: [And] since there is no way so certain to engage God to bless our King, as his constant care to please him, we pray thee, O Lord, [so rule the heart of] this Prince, whom by a miraculous restauration thou hast declared to be [thy chosen Servant,] even [Charles our King and Governor, that he [(knowing] and considering that he [is thy Minister,] Rom. xiii. 4. and Vicegerent, set up by thee, and accountable to thee) [may above all things seek] to advance [thy Honour and Glory,] by defending the true Religion, and administring Justice; so that all who enjoy the benefit of so pious and peaceable a Go­vernment may praise thee for setting him over them. [And] that our duty may answer his pious Care of us, we pray [that] not only [we] but [all his Subjects, (duly considering] that our gra­cious King [hath thy Authority] communicated to him, and reigns in thy Right as well as by thy ap­pointment,) [may faithfully serve] him with their lives and fortunes, truly [honour] his Per­son and [humbly obey] his Laws, [in thee] and thy name, [for thee] and thy sake; for this Loy­alty and obedience is [according to thy blessed Word and Ordinance,] Rom xiii. 1, 2, 3. 1 Peter ii. 13. nor will they be sincere or lasting, unless they are grounded on principles of Conscience and Religion. And because the piety of the Prince and Loyalty of the People will so certainly make the [Page 255] whole Nation happy, we earnestly beg this of thee, O Eternal King of Kings [through Iesus Christ our Lord, who with thee, O Father, and the Holy Ghost, liveth and reigneth ever one God, world without end, Amen.]

The Second Prayer.

§. 3. FOr variety here is added another Prayer, little differing from the former, as to the main scope; and it runs in this Form.

[Almighty and everlasting God, we are taught, &c.] The power of the greatest Princes is limited, and their time short, so that there is one above them, to whom we pray for them, even an [Almighty and everlasting God;] and to our great comfort [we are taught in his holy Word,] Prov. xxi. 1. [That the Hearts of Kings are in his Hands;] so that as the Gardiners of old, by opening certain Sluces could turn their streams to which part of their Plantation they pleased; even so Almighty God can [dispose and turn the] Coun­sels and designs of Mortal Princes to such ends [as seem best] to his divine [Wisdom:] Since there­fore thou hast a Power that may be exercised so highly to our advantage, [we humbly] and ear­nestly [beseech thee so to dispose] guide [and go­vern the heart of] our Soveraign [Charles] who is [thy Servant, and our King and Governor,] by thy most holy Spirit, [that in all his thoughts, words and works he may] declare his true piety toward thee, and his affectionate care of his Subjects welfare, by [ever seeking] to advance [thy honour [Page 256] and Glory, and] always [studying to preserve] this great [People,] which thou hast [committed to his charge,] so that they may increase [in wealth,] continue in [peace,] and improve in vertue [and godliness:] And then both Prince and People will be truly happy. [Grant] therefore [this] great Blessing to us, as thou art a most [merciful Father], not for our merits, but [for thy dear Sons sake, Iesus Christ] who is [our Lord,] and our Mediator, [Amen.]

Sect. V. Of the Epistle, Gospel and the Creed.

§. 1. AFter these Prayers for the outward pros­perity of the Church, follows [the Col­lect of the Day,] for inward Grace, (of which we have spoken in the first part,) and to this is imme­diately subjoyned [the Epistle and Gospel;] The Jews read the History of their Deliverance from Egypt before the Passover, and all the Ancient Fathers and Liturgies declare that the Christians did read select portions of the New Testament, before they received the Eucharist; they did not eat their common meals without reading some part of Scripture, because S. Paul had said, the Creatures were sanctified by the Word of God and Prayer, 1 Tim. iv. 5. much less would they eat this spiritual food, with­out reading first some of Gods Word: As for the [Page 257] particular places, they are the most choice and pra­ctical parts of all the New Testament; and have been fixed to those very Sundays, on which we now use them, above twelve hundred years, as I could prove by divers passages in the Homilies of the most ancient Fathers. And there is an old Tractate called The Lectionary of S. Hierom, which I have seen, and compared with our Epistles and Gospels, and I find they are generally the same now they were then: The Council of Valentia, An. 524. ordered them to be read before the Creed, that the Catechumens might hear them: The Epistle is read first, as be­ing the word of the Servants, The Gospel follows, as being the word of our great Master; and of old when the Minister was about to read this, all the people stood up and said, Glory be to thee, O Lord, (as S. Chrysostom relates;) and after it was finished they sang Hallelujah, or said, Thanks be to God for his Holy Gospel; And in the Armenian Church, after the Gospel they use to kiss each other in token of perfect Charity: But all these ceremonies are unpro­fitable, unless you firmly believe the Gospel, hear­tily love and conscientiously practise it, and then you may on good grounds reverence it, and praise God for it.

§. 2. [The Creed] is a summary of the doctrine of the Gospel, and here is placed next to it, be­cause it is grounded on it: In the Gospel we believe with our heart unto righteousness; in the Creed we confess with our mouth unto Salvation, Rom. x. 10. for all the people ought to repeat the Creed after the MinisterEucholog. Liturg. Chrysost. pag. 92.. This Creed is commonly called the [Ni­cence Creed,] and indeed it is [Page 258] a paraphrase of that Creed which was made in the first General Council of Nice, composed by the Second General Council at Constantinople, An. 383. and doth more largely condemn all Heresies than the Apostles Creed: Wherefore it is fitly enjoyned to be recited by all before the Sacrament, to shew that all the Communicants are free from Heresie, and in the strictest league of union with the Catho­lick Church; as also to prepare themselves for wor­thy receiving, by exercising that Faith, of which they have so much use at the Lords Table, as the Council of Toledo ordainedConcil. 3. Tolet. can. 2. An. 600.. So that every one must openly profess and firmly embrace all these Articles, before he can be fit to receive; yea and while he repeats them with his lips, he must resolve to shew forth in his life, that he doth sincerely believe them, by strict­ly living according to them: And for our better understanding it, we shall thus briefly Paraphrase it.

§. 3. [I] confess with my mouth, and [be­lieve] with my heart [in one God] a pure and infinite Spirit, distinguished into three Persons, the first of which is God [the Father Almighty,] who is the Creator and [maker of Heaven and earth, and of all things] contained in either of them, both [visible] and bodily substances on Earth, [and invisible] or spiritual Substances which are in Heaven; [And] I also believe [in one Lord Iesus Christ,] the second Person of the glorious Trinity, not the adopted, but [the only begotten Son of God,] not created in time, but [begotten of his Father] from Eternity [before all worlds;] Of the same Nature with the Father, [God] begotten [of God,] after a [Page 259] wonderful manner, as [Light] is kindled [of Light,] not diminishing his Fathers substance, yet being [very God of very God:] He was [begotten] by eternal Generation, [not made] as the Creatures were, [being of one] nature and [substance with the Father,] and equal to him in dignity and power; for he is that eternal word [by whom all things were made] out of nothing: Yea I believe it is he [who for us Men, and for our Salvation,] when we were fallen in­to a deplorable estate of Sin and Misery, [came down from Heaven] to this earth; left his glo­ry [and was incarnate,] assuming a body of flesh like ours, only it had no Sin, because it was con­ceived [by the] power of the [Holy Ghost] in the Womb [of the Virgin Mary:] So that though he remained very God still, yet he took on him our nature, [and was made Man,] being both God and Man in one Person: He taught us by his Precepts, and led us by his Example while he lived, and at last he suffered [and was crucified also,] in­during that painful and shameful death, to satisfie Gods Justice [for us,] who were liable to suffer eternal Death: and though as to himself he was in­nocent, yet he was condemned unjustly to this [un­der Pontius Pilate,] the Roman President of Judea, and [he suffered] it with admirable pati­ence, till he died in those torments, [and was buried;] yet when he had paid the full price for our Sins, upon [the third day] after his crucifixion [he rose again] to life, [according to] what was prophesied in [the Scriptures] of the Old Te­stament, and declared to be fulfilled in the New: After this he conversed forty days with his Disciples, [and] then [ascended] in their sight [into Hea­ven,] [Page 260] where he is restored to all his glory, [and sitteth at the right hand of the Father] interce­ding for us: [and he shall come again] from thence at the end of the World [with glory] and great Majesty, [to judge] all Mankind [both the quick and the dead] according to their works, condemning the wicked to endless Torments, and advancing the righteous to reign in Glory with this their Saviour, [whose Kingdom shall have no end. And I believe] also [in the Holy Ghost,] the third Person of the glorious Trinity, who is very God, [the Lord and giver of] spiritual [life] and sanctifying Grace, [who] is not be­gotten as the Son, but [proceedeth from the Fa­ther and the Son,] yet is not less in Dignity; for it is he [who with the Father and the Son toge­ther] in all Offices of the Church [is worshipped and glorified,] and [who spake by the Pro­phets] in the Old Testament, and by the Apostles in the New. [And] finally [I believe] the whole Body of Christians, holding the right Faith, do make [one Catholick,] Universal, True [and Apostolick Church.] In which blessed Society [I acknowledge] there are many Priviledges, viz. [one Baptism] instituted by Christ [for the re­mission of] all the [sins] we are guilty of when we enter into this Covenant. [And I] as a Member of this Society, [look for] and expect my Body, though corrupted in the Grave, shall be restored to life in [in the resurrection of the dead,] and I hope then for a Portion in the Glory [and the Life] everlasting which Christ hath pro­mised to all his Servants, in his Kingdom [of the World to come.] And oh that it may be unto me according to my Faith! [Amen.]

[Page 261]§. 4. For the more effectual explaining the My­steries of the Creed, and the more vigorous pres­sing the Duties of the Gospel, the Ancient Church appointed a Sermon or Homily in this place, which is useful every Sunday, and more especially when there is a Communion; because by a pious and pra­ctical Discourse suted to the holy Communion, the Minds of the Receivers are put into a devout frame, and made much fitter for the succeeding Mysteries. And it must be confessed, no Church in the World hath more or better Sermons than we; so that we are only to wish the Peoples profiting by them may be answerable to their Zeal for them, and the Ministers pains in composing them, and then we shall find very good effects of them.

Sect. VI. Of the Offertory and Sentences.

§. 1. AFter the Confession of our Faith follows the Exercise of our Charity, without which it would be but a dead Faith, James ii. 22. Now as Charity is to be expressed three ways, so we have directions for each of those ways, by Gi­ving, in the Sentences; by Praying, in the Prayer for the Church Militant; and by Forgiving, in the Gene­ral warning: As for the Charity of giving toward the Relief of the Poor, it is frequently and strict­ly commanded in the Gospel, hath the best Exam­ples of it, and the largest Rewards promised to it, [Page 262] being instead of all the costly Offerings of the Jews, and the only chargeable Duty to which Chri­stians are obliged: It recommends our Prayers, and thence S. Paul prescribes, and the ancient Church in Justin Martyr's time used to have Collections eve­ry Sunday: However, when we receive the Sacra­ment, it is absolutely necessary. Christ gave his Alms at the Passover, John xiii. 29. and supposes we will never come to the Altar without a Gift, Matth. v. 23. The first Christians gave all they had, and those in after-times dedicated large and noble Ob­lations when they communicated, nor was any (of Ability) allowed to receive without giving some­thing; and to reject any mans Oblation, was to de­ny him a share in the benefit of these Mysteries: Wherefore to stir us up more effectually to give bountifully, here are divers select Sentences which we will very briefly explain.

§. 2. I. Our Saviour compares good Works to Light, and enjoyns us to do them so liberally, as to invite the Rich to follow our good Example, and the Poor to give God thanks on our behalf; which is the meaning of Matth. v. 16. [Let your Light so shine, &c.] II. To encourage us here­to, our Lord shews giving Alms to be the wisest and surest way of providing for our selves, because what we lay up on Earth may be spoiled or lost be­fore we enjoy it; but what we lay up in Heaven (as we do all that we give to the Poor) we shall certainly enjoy the benefit thereof, Matth. vi. 19, 20. [Lay not up for your selves, &c. but lay up for your selves Treasures in Heaven, &c.] III. And further, Our Saviour shews that this Duty of Alms-giving is the sum of all that is required of us in [Page 263] Scripture; and a most reasonable Duty, being no more than the doing that for another that is Hun­gry, Sick, Naked or Destitute, which we would expect and wish others that were able (as we now are) should do to us in the like case, Matth. vii. 12. [Whatsoever ye would men should do unto you, &c.] IV. And since this is the sum of Gods Will, declared by the Law and Prophets, our great Judge tells us, That they who pray, or do any o­ther parts of Religious Worship, and give no Alms, shall at last be shut out of Heaven, Matth. vii. 21. [Not every one that saith unto me, &c.] V. Cer­tainly his Word will move us; for his preaching of Justice and Charity wrought so powerfully on a rich and oppressing Publican, that he gave one half of his Goods to the Poor, and promised out of the other half to make Restitution four-fold to all he had wronged in his Dealings, Luke xix. 8. [Zacche­us stood forth, and said unto the Lord, &c.] VI. If it be enquired who are to be the Objects of our Charity? S. Paul doth teach us that these Obla­tions are due, First, to the Ministers, (where they have not enough besides;) Secondly, to the Poor, and so were the Offerings of the Primitive Church bestowed. First, For Ministers; the Apostle ar­gues they have a right to be maintained, 1. From the Example of others, who take pains in meaner Offices, Souldiers, Vine-dressers, and Shepherds, who are maintained by their Professions; much more ought Ministers so to be, 1 Cor. ix. 7. [Who goeth a warfare at any time of his own cost? &c.] VII. Secondly, He proves they ought to be better maintained than those of the former Profes­sions, because the People receive the best things, such as tend to their Souls eternal good, from Mini­sters, [Page 264] and so may well give liberally of worldly things to them, 1 Cor. ix. 11. [If we have sown unto you spiritual things, &c.] VIII. Thirdly, He proves it from Gods providing, not only Tythes, but Free-will Offerings, First-fruits and Sacrifices for the Jewish Priests and Levites, who had a mean­er service, 1 Cor. ix. 13. [Do ye not know that they which minister, &c.] IX. Fourthly, He proves it from Christs injunction under the Gospel, that his Ministers should have a Maintenance like that under the Law, in the proportion of a Tenth part at least, besides these Free-will Offerings at the Sacrament, because they have a better Service, ver. 14. [Even so hath the Lord ordained, &c] X. As to the Poor, they are the second proper Object of our Charity, when the Ministers are first well provided for: And if any ask how much must be given to Ministers or Poor, S. Paul will not de­termine these Free-will Offerings, but shews we must give largely, because that will encrease our Reward; and chearfully, because God loves us when it comes freely, 2 Cor. ix. 6, 7. [He that soweth little shall reap little, &c. — Let eve­ry man do as he is disposed, &c.] XI. As for the providing for Ministers, he shews it is not lest to our liberty, whether we will give or no, or of what we will give; for God expresly enjoyns us to give them some part of all our earthly Blessings, e­ven a Tenth part, beside voluntary Oblations; and to omit this, is to mock God, (by pretending to love him, and doing nothing for his sake,) and to deprive our selves of the Reward he promises for these Gifts, Galat. vi. 6, 7. [Let him that is taught in the Word, &c.—Be not deceived, &c.] XII. Yet after all this we must, while our Goods [Page 265] are in our Power, that is, while we live, not only be bountiful to Ministers, but charitable to all that are poor, especially to poor Christians, Galat. vi. 10. [While we have time let us do good, &c.] XIII. If it be objected, By giving so much, and to so many, we shall become poor; The Apostle re­plies, First, That a Christians true Riches are not to be reckoned by the quantity of his Money, but by the number of his Acts of Piety, and the con­tent he takes in doing them. Secondly, That Wealth will do us no good in another World, and therefore it were sad if all our happiness consisted in that, 1 Tim. vi. 6, 7. [Godliness is great Riches, &c. —For we brought nothing, &c.] XIV. But Wealth laid out in Charity lays a good Foundation for eternal Happiness in the next World; and therefore God commands the rich Merchants of Ephesus, for their own sakes, to lay out their Wealth this way freely, 1 Tim. vi. 17, 18, 19. [Charge them that are rich, &c. — Lay­ing up in store, &c.] XV. If any question how so mean a Gift can be so richly rewarded? He must know, the Reward is not given for the Merit of the Gift, but out of Gods infinite Bounty; and because he hath freely promised, he will so infinitely requite those who this way shew their love to him, Hebr. vi. 10. [God is not unrighteous, that he will for­get, &c.] XVI. Wherefore the same Apostle shews us elsewhere, that upon all these accounts God en­joyns us not to forget to oblige and gratifie him with the now only remaining Sacrifice of Alms, Hebr. xiii. 16. [To do good, and to communi­cate, &c.] XVII. And well he may enjoyn this, because if we do not pity and help those whom he loves, and hath made poor by his Providence, on [Page 266] purpose to try our love to him, 'tis a sign we do not truly love him: Him we never saw, and their Necessities ever appear to us, and bespeak our Com­passion, 1 John iii. 17. [Whoso hath this Worlds good, and seeth, &c.] XVIII. Yea, even the Books of Apocrypha excite us to Alms-deeds, assu­ring us that if we do pity and regard the Poor, God will look favourably on us in our need, Tobit iv. 7. [Give Alms of thy Goods, and never, &c.] And for the quantity, let it be agreeable to our Ability; more if we be rich, less if we be low; however, let us give chearfully, and then we are sure of a proportionable Reward; so that in thus giving plentifully and freely, we provide a Friend in Heaven, against we come into any want, ver. 8, 9. [Be merciful after thy power— for so gather­est thou, &c.] XIX. If any yet doubt the cer­tainty of Gods requiting his Charity, the Canoni­cal Scripture brings in the Lord himself, First, own­ing thy Charity as lent to himself, and become his Debt; Secondly, promising to repay it, Prov. xix. 17. [He that hath pity on the poor, &c.] XX. Yea, besides the infinite Rewards of Charity hereafter, God hath promised to deliver the charitable Man out of his earthly trouble, and will be as kind to him whenever he is in distress, as he was to the sick or poor, Psal. xli. 1. [Blessed be the Man that provideth, &c.]

§. 3. While others are giving at the Lords Ta­ble, read and meditate of these Divine Exhorta­tions, and when thou hast prepared thy own Of­fering as large as thou art able, bow lowly, and present it to God, and say, Lord, thou hast given me all my worldly Goods, yea, thine own Son to be [Page 267] my Saviour; and I return a small part of thine own in acknowledgment: thou needest nothing; but hast charged me to shew my love to thee by helping the poor; Lord, I love and pity them, because they are thy Friends, I wish I could do more for them for thy sake, for I desire Riches now for no other end, but to be more charitable; I dedicate my self and all I have to thy Service by this Earnest and Pledge; accept it and me, and let it derive a blessing on all I have; yea, do thou be pleased to give me thy greater and surer Riches, even Graces for my poor blind and naked Soul, and then I shall he rich in good Works; grant this for Jesus sake. Amen.

Sect. VII. Of the Prayer for the whole Church.

§. 1. THe second way of expressing our Chari­ty is by Prayer, and though we cannot relieve all men, God can, and so we must pray for all to him that is able to supply all Mankind. And because the Communion is the highest exercise of Charity, therefore of old this Universal Interces­sion was used in this Office, where they prayed for the Peace of the Church and State, for Kings and for all Christians, especially the afflicted, as S. Cyril assures us: And Optatus calls this the appoint­ed form in the mysteries of the Sa­crament, in which we offer for the whole Church Optat. Milev. lib. 2. pag. 53.. And we do [Page 268] not (as the Roman Church) croud this into the Prayer of Consecration; but as in S. Chrysostome's Liturgy, we make this Prayer soon after the GospelEuchologion Jac. Goar. pag. 69., since none are so likely to say this charitable Prayer devoutly for all, as they who ob­serve the Rules of the Gospel, as Cabasilas well notesNic. Cabasil. Expos. Liturg. Bib. patrum.. And there are two things to recom­mend this Prayer; First, Our Alms just now offered to God by his Minister, which the Scripture assures us give great efficacy to our Prayers; Secondly, Our Commemoration of the great Sacrifice of Christs Death, the Symbols of which are now to be set upon the holy Table, that we may plead for all the World by the memo­rial of that Oblation which obtained Mercy for all, and by which Christ now intercedes for all in Heaven.

§. 2. As for the Prayer it self, besides the Pre­face and Conclusion, it doth contain Prayers, Sup­plications, Intercessions, and Giving of Thanks, which are to be made for all men, for Kings, and all that are in Authority, as S. Paul directs, 1 Tim. ii. 1, 2.

§. 3. [Almighty and ever-living God, who by thy holy Apostle hast taught us, &c.] Though the Persons we pray for are many, and the Blessings we ask for them very great; yet he we pray to is omnipotent and eternal, an [Almighty and ever-living God,] so that we cannot doubt but he is able to grant all, and we may be as sure of his willingness as we are of his Power, since [Page 269] we make these Prayers according to his own Di­rections given us by [his holy Apostle S. Paul,] who in the 1 Ep. Timothy ii. 1. [hath taught us] that it is Gods will we should [make Prayers, Supplications,] Intercessions [and Thanksgiv­ings for all Men,] in observance of which plain direction our Church hath composed this Excel­lent Form, in the very same Method prescribed by the Apostle: For herein, first, we Petition for those good things we want, which is properly termed [Prayer,] and because we have just now offered our Alms and made many excellent requests, with­out repeating the Particulars, we [humbly be­seech him of his mercy] (to accept our Alms and Oblations, though small in themselves and not like­ly to merit the least of the favours we beg; and) [to receive these our Prayers] with our former desires, [which we have offered to his Divine Majesty,] in hopes he will accept and answer them. Secondly, as for supplications, which are for re­moving of evil, we duly weighing the Mischiefs arising from Heresie and Schism in the Church, do most humbly [beseech him to inspire the Vniversal Church] as he hath promised, John xiv. 16, 17. Matth. xxviii. ult. [with the Spirit of Truth, Vnity and Concord,] that there may be a right Faith, an agreement in Worship, and a Sym­pathy in the affections of all the Members of this holy Society, which is the Mystical body of Christ, and so fitly remembred at this holy Table: And that the outward effects may shew that this great Body is acted by that one Spirit of Truth and Peace, we beg of God [that all they that do confess his holy Name,] and profess the Doctrine of Chri­stianity, [may agree in] their Faith, by sub­mitting [Page 270] all their Opinions to be examined and de­cided by [the truth of Gods holy word,] which is Truth it self, John xvii. 17. 2. Tim. iii. 16, 17. and cannot deceive us; and if we all took our Doctrines from this one Ancient and sure Rule, as we should have Truth in our principles, so we should have Unity in our affections; it would banish Heresie and Schism also, and all Christians might [live in Vnity and Godly Love,] so that the Church would be an Emblem of Heaven. Thirdly, The Intercessions are those Prayers and Supplicati­ons we make for others, and because S. Paul char­ges us when we have prayed for all men, to pray or make intercession especially for Kings and those in Authority, 1 Tim. ii. 2. therefore [we beseech God to save and defend all Christian Kings, Princes and Governors,] in all the Monar­chies, Principalities and popular Estates of Christen­dom; for their Authority if rightly managed is an excellent guard to the true Faith, and a good means to prevent Factions and Divisions, and every Church then flourishes most when its Rulers are pious and prosperous: And because we have the nearest con­cern for our own Native Country, we inter­cede with God more [especially for his Servant Charles our King,] naming him, as the ancient Liturgies did the Emperor after he became Christi­an: We know our dear Soveraign professeth the True Faith, and is a lover of Peace; so that we beg of God to save and defend him, as being assured, [that under him we shall be godly and quietly governed,] which is that blessed end S. Paul would have the Christians aim at in praying for their Kings, 1 Tim. ii. 2. And because Kings cannot see all with their own Eyes, nor act all with their own [Page 271] hands, and so are obliged to use Councellors, Judges and other Officers, we pray him to [grant to his whole Council,] with whom he adviseth, [and to all that are put in authority under him,] by whom he executeth his good Laws, such wisdom, grace and integrity, [that they may truly] determine all Causes, [and indifferent­ly] without any respect of persons [minister Iustice,] Psal. lxxii. 2, 3. aiming purely at that which was Gods great end in constituting all Ma­gistrates, [viz. the punishment of the wickedness and vice] of evil doers, and for the [maintain­ing of his true Religion and vertue,] by en­couraging and rewarding them that do well, Rom. xiii. 3, 4. 1 Peter ii. 14. And this will make the State Holy and Happy. In the next place, we pray for the Church, without the good order of which no Nation can be long prosperous. First therefore, we sire our [Heavenly Father to give Grace] to the Rulers and Pastors thereof, viz. [to all Bish­ops] who are called of God to govern his flock, [and] to all Priests and Deacons, to whom those Bishops commit the Care of particular Congregati­ons, thence called of old their [Curates,] for these we beg Grace [that they may both by] the holiness of [their Lives and] the efficacy of their [Doctrine, set forth] the excellencies, [of Gods Word,] which is in it self most [true,] and hath in it a quickning Power to revive Sinners from the Death of Sin; and to make them active and [Lively,] (Acts vii. 38.) in the ways of Piety and Vertue: And let the same Grace direct and enable them [to administer the Holy Sacra­ments,] especally this of the Holy Communion, [rightly] according to our Lords institution, [Page 272] and [duly] as the necessities of the Church do require. Moreover, since all their Preaching and ho­ly Administrations are ineffectual, unless those who partake of them be disposed by the Spirit to profit by them, we pray that [God] will [give his Heavenly Grace to all his people] every where, [especially to this Congregation here pre­sent,] on whom our Spiritual labours are bestow­ed, and for whose Souls we have a peculiar con­cern; [that with meek hearts] and a due sense of their own unworthiness, [and] with [due reve­rence] and respect to his glorious Majesty [they may hear and receive Gods holy Word,] being so guided by the instructions, reformed by the re­proofs, and quickned by the exhortations and promi­ses thereof, that they may [truly] and sincerely [serve him in holiness & righteousness,] not only at this present, but [all the days of their lives:] And since many of our Brethren, besides their spiri­tual miseries, are also under many outward Calami­ties, [we most humbly] and earnestly [beseech God,] by all that mercy and [goodness] shewed to Mankind in the death of his Son here commemo­rated, that he will please [to comfort] in their affli­ction, [and to succour] and relieve [all those who in this transitory Life are in trouble,] for fear of any evil like to fall upon them, or in [sorrow] for any misery lately past or now present, as also those that are distressed by poverty, and are in [need] of Food, Raiment and Habitations, and those that are visited with [sickness] or bodily pains, that he may comfort and deliver those that lye un­der these [or any Adversities,] for there are va­riety of these evils, and in all of them the poor sufferers need his help. Finally, Since the Holy A­postle [Page 273] bids us also to give Thanks, we cannot find any sort of Men, for whom we can securely praise God in this most uncertain life, because all Mens condition is so changeable, their prosperity so short and mixed with Evils, and their life so suddenly gone: Wherefore, [we do] principally [bless the Lords holy Name for all] our dear Brethren and Friends, even for those his Saints and [Servants] who have lived holily, and passed all the dangers of this evil World, and are [departed this Life in his Faith and fear,] having never forsaken the true Religion, nor dishonoured it by evil practi­ces: These we know are now and ever shall be truly happy in Heaven; and though we be yet (as they once were) in the midst of many temptations and afflictions, it is our comfort and support to be­hold that part of our Brethren, which is already safe and triumphant: We need not nor do not pray for them, but for our selves we must beg that the Lord will [give us Grace,] as he did to them, that we may [so follow their good Examples] in piety and virtue upon earth, [that with them] at the last [we also may be partakers of his heavenly Kingdom,] and joyn with them in singing his eternal praises: These indeed are large and weighty requests, but we beseech [him to grant them] who is our merciful [Father for Iesus Christ his sake] whose death is here set forth and remembred, and who we hope will pray with us and for us, because (not any Saint or Angel, but) [he is our only Mediator,] 1 Tim. ii. 5.) [and Advocate] to plead for the acceptance of our Prayers, so that by him we hope to prevail, [Amen.]

Sect. VIII. Of the warning before the Commu­nion.

§. 1. GReat Mysteries ought to have great prepa­ration, the Paschal Lamb was to be cho­sen four days before it was slain, Exod. xii. 3.6. The Jewish Feasts were proclaimed some time be­fore Levit. xxv. 9. and Hezekiah gave publick warning of his intended Passover a good while be­fore the celebration, 2 Chron. xxx. But we have a higher Mystery to perform, and do it now so sel­dom, and are so unprepared for it, that it is neces­sary to give us so large a time before it, to dispose our Souls for the worthy receiving thereof; and this present Exhortation not only declares the in­tended time, but also may be very serviceable to our Preparation; containing, First, An Informa­tion, 1. Of the time when we celebrate it; 2. Of the Persons to whom we shall administer it; 3. Of the manner how they must receive it, viz. in re­membrance of Christs Death, and with all thank­fulness, both for it, and for this Ordinance to com­memorate it. Secondly, It contains an Exhortation grounded on the benefit of doing it well, and the danger of doing it ill, and exciting us to the Du­ties of, 1. Serious considering the Dignity of this Sacrament, and the peril of profaning it; 2. And strict Examining our hearts in order to our accep­tance. Thirdly, This Warning contains Directi­ons, 1. To the Penitent, who is advised to prepare [Page 275] by Repentance, which is now to be exercised in Self-examination, Contrition, Confession, and holy Purposes: And by Charity to be shewed by making satisfaction for all Injuries done by us, and forgiving those done against us. 2ly, Here is Direction to the Impenitent not to come unwor­thily; and these are 1. Solemnly warned; 2. Shew­ed what they may do in order to fit them; 3. Fore­told of the danger of neglecting these Preparatives. Lastly, Here are directions to the doubting, shew­ing to what end they need Ghostly Counsel, and in what case they want it, of whom they must desire it, and what benefit they may have by it. These are the parts of this Warning, as will more clearly appear in the Discourse.

§. 2. [Dearly Beloved,] I am to give you this early warning, That [on — next] I purpose ([through Gods assistance,] James iv. 15.) [to Administer] the holy Communion, and I would not cast this Pearl before Swine, but shall desire you all to get sutable dispositions for it, because [to all such as shall be religiously and devoutly disposed,] it is a [most comfortable Sacrament] and makes them partakers [of the Body and Blood of Christ,] and therefore such need no com­pulsion to bring them to it, being attracted suffici­ently by its own sweetness, and the comfort and benefit they receive there. And lest any should pretend ignorance of the end why they come to this Ordinance, or the Manner how they must [receive] it, I do here inform such, they are to do it [in remembrance of] Christ, 1 Cor. xi. 24. and of [his meritorious Passion on the Cross,] vers. 26. Here we are to imprint that Death of his [Page 276] which he suffered for our Sins, so firmly on our own hearts, that it may never be forgotten by us, and to set it forth in this manner, that all the World may have it in remembrance; and good reason, since [thereby we obtain remission of our sins, and are made partakers of the King­dom of Heaven:] These are such great Blessings, that [it is our Duty,] not only to remember them, but to do it with Thanksgiving; and there­fore we must, in this Sacrifice of Praise, [render most humble and hearty thanks to Almighty God, for that he hath given his Son our Sa­viour Iesus Christ, not only to dye for us, but also to be our spiritual food and sustenance in that holy Sacrament:] he gave him for us in his Death, and gives him to us in this Ordinance; so that they who come prepared, are made partakers of Christ, and of all the Benefits of his Death: [Which being a thing so Divine] in its Institu­tion, and [so comfortable] in its effects [to them who receive it worthily;] and on the other side, [so dangerous to them who will presume to re­ceive it unworthily,] that in order to your es­caping these dangers, and that you may all par­take of the aforesaid Comforts, after this Informa­tion, [My Duty is] Secondly, To give you a serious [Exhortation, that in the mean time] between this and the day appointed for the Com­munion, you do prepare your selves as well as you can: And first, I exhort you very seriously [to consider the dignity of this holy Mystery] which was instituted by Christ himself, for so weigh­ty reasons, and to such excellent purposes, as the conveying his Merits and Graces to us, the taking our sins on him, and the securing our Salvation; [Page 277] [and] also to think seriously upon [the great pe­ril of] coming rudely or slightly to it, in Malice, or in any Sin unrepented of, [and so receiving it unworthily,] which is a great contempt of our Lord, and may aggravate or hasten our Condem­nation. In the next place I must advise you to en­deavour seriously to fit your selves for so high and solemn a Duty, by setting apart some time before for [searching and examining your Consciences] concerning all the sinful thoughts, words, and deeds that you have been guilty of; and [this you must not do lightly,] and formally, [after the man­ner] of Hypocrites, who only feign Repentance, [and dissemble with God,] by making some outward shews of sorrow against a solemn time: But you must do it [so] strictly and sincerely, [that ye may come holy and clean to such an heaven­ly Feast,] having put off all affection to every sin, and put on the love of all Virtue and Piety, which is [the wedding Garment required by God in holy Scripture,] Matth. xxii. 2. for this alone will make you [be received] by God, the great Master of this Feast, [as worthy partakers of that holy Table:] Which being so desirable, I shall now shew you [the way and means there­to;] which are these, [First, To examine] all the Actions of [your Lives and Conversations,] comparing them [to the Rule of Gods Com­mandments,] which will shew you where you have gone crooked, either on the right hand, by omit­ting any necessary Duty; or on the left, by com­mitting any heinous Sin; and when you have dili­gently read over the Commandments, and all along compared your ways with them, then [whereinsoe­ver ye shall perceive your selves to have offend­ed, [Page 278] either in] any thought to which your [will] consented, or in any [word or deed, there] in­wardly and heartily [to bewail your own sinful­ness, and] while your heart is thus convinced of your folly and baseness, to kneel down and [con­fess your selves to Almighty God with] un­feigned sorrow for what is past, [and full pur­pose of Amendment] for the future, if it may please God to forgive you now. Secondly, [If ye shall perceive] by this Examination, [that your offences] have been [committed not only] immediately [against God, but also against your Neighbour,] either by slandering or wrong­ing them in any kind, [then] God will not forgive you unless [ye shall] ask them forgiveness, and so [reconcile your selves unto them;] and withal, you must declare that [you are ready] (with Peni­tent Zaccheus, Luke xix. 8.) [to make restitution and satisfaction according to the uttermost of your powers, for all injuries and wrongs done by you to any others;] For indeed without this the Offender doth not truly repent, nor will God forgive the offence, while we keep the ill-gotten Goods. And because the Pride and ill Nature of the wronged Party often discourages the Offender from submitting, Christ, who bids the Offender offer satisfaction, Matth. v. 24. commands the Of­fended to accept it, Mark xi. 25. So that if you be the injured person, [you must be likewise rea­dy to forgive those who have offended you] in a­ny kind, it being most reasonable that at this Sa­crament, where you expect [to have forgiveness of your offences] (which are far greater) [at Gods hands,] you should forgive those small Trespasses which your Brethren do against you; [Page 279] and indeed you cannot be forgiven unless you for­give, Matth. vi. 14, 15, 18. Now if you examine, repent, confess, amend and make satisfaction, [the holy Communion] will seal your Pardon, and secure as well as promote it; [but otherwise] if you be injurious, malicious, and impenitent, [it doth but increase] and aggravate that [Dam­nation] which your other sins deserve. Lastly [Therefore,] though it be your express Duty to come, yet it is as much your Duty to repent; so that [if any of you be] a common Swearer and [blasphemer of God,] or by Atheistical scoffing at holy things, be [an hinderer or slanderer of his word;] or if any of you be [an Adulterer] notorious Deceiver, common Drunkard, or False-witness, or bear any [Malice or Envy] to your Neighbours, [or be in any other grievous Crimes,] I beseech you to consider the peril of coming rashly in such an estate, and I solemnly warn you [to repent of your sins, or else come not to that holy Table] where God will come to survey you; for though these sins will damn you (also if you stay away) without repen­tance, yet this presumption may hasten your ru­in, and [after the taking this holy Sacra­ment,] you may justly fear God should forsake you, and [the Devil enter into you as he did into Judas,] (who received this Sacrament with a resolution to betray his Master,) and if the Evil Spirit get such power over you, he will [fill you full of all iniquity, and bring you to destructi­on of Body and Soul,] as he did that false and most wicked man: But I hope you do resolve to repent, and so will not be in danger of this terri­ble mischief. And if upon your endeavours to ex­amine, [Page 280] you find your sins so great, as fills you with scruples and doubts, [since it is requisite no man should come to the holy Communion, but with a full trust in Gods Mercy] here set forth, [and with a quiet Conscience,] so as that he may have comfort in this most sweet and refreshing Or­dinance; [Therefore if there be any of you, who by this means] of private Confession to God and Prayer [cannot quiet his own Conscience] from those fears which his guilt hath caused, [but] that he still [requireth further comfort] to sup­port him, [or counsel] to direct him, in this case, when he is terrified with the guilt of some grievous sins past, or afraid lest he should fall into some dangerous temptation after all his Vows, [Let him come to me] whom God hath intrusted with the care of his Soul, [or to some other discreet and learned Minister of Gods Word,] and [let him] confess his Sin freely and ingenuously, and [open his grief] and his fears; For Christ hath given us a special Commission to help such dejected Penitents, if they will shew us their Diseases; for [by the Ministry of Gods holy word,] and the Promises thereof, which we have Authority to dis­pense, John xx. 23. 2 Cor. 5.18. [they may re­ceive from us the benefit of Absolution] by our pronouncing such a Pardon as God will confirm, if they be what they seem to us. And in case of their Fears of any temptation, by this means also [they may have] from us Spiritual or [Ghostly Coun­sel and Advice] how to avoid the occasions thereof: And so by the due use of this too much neglected Confession to Gods Ministers, men might [have their Consciences quieted,] and [avoiding all scruple and doubtfulness,] might come with a [Page 281] more firm Faith and a more lively Hope unto this blessed Feast, and might receive more benefits there­by.

Sect. IX. Of the Exhortation to the Communi­on.

§. 1. THough the frequency of our Communica­ting, be not expresly determined in Scri­pture, yet it is there supposed we will do it of­ten; and this latitude was left, to give us opportu­nity to shew our love by coming freely and fre­quently, not to excuse our negligence or impiety in customary or constant omitting this duty, which is so heinous and so common a Sin in this Age, and so great a scandal in some who call themselves Protestants, that there was never more need of this pious and rational Exhortation, than in these days: For it contains, First, A Declaration of the time when this Sacrament is to be celebrated. Se­condly, an Invitation of all that are present to come. Thirdly, the Arguments to move them to it, being, 1. A plain similitude from the Guests who are invited by an Ordinary Man to a rich and costly Feast, and they ungratefully refuse to come; for if this would highly displease us, much more must our withdrawing from this Sacrament provoke God. 2ly, We argue from the frivolousness of [Page 282] those pretences which Men use to excuse their staying away, viz. That they are busie and cannot, or sinful and dare not come, both of these being very base and very vain in Gods sight. 3ly, We argue from the example of those who were invited to the Feast in the Gospel, and made such kind of excuses, yet were justly condemned. 4ly, We apply all by shew­ing, 1. Our care in providing this Heavenly Feast; 2. Our desire that all may come; 3. Their duty to come in thankfulness for the death of Christ; 4. Their danger if they wilfully stay away, since it is likely they will be severely punished for so great a Sin against God, and so foul a scandal to their Brethren. Lastly, We conclude with hopes they will, and Prayers they may return to a better mind.

§. 2. [Dearly beloved] on such a day [I intend by Gods Grace,] assisting me [to Cele­brate the] most holy Feast of the [Lords Sup­per;] and I give you this notice so long before, that none may pretend ignorance. This Sacrament is compared in Scripture to a rich and costly Feast, Matth. xxii. Luke xiv. and God is the Master of this Feast, Christ himself the Food, and his Ministers are in his Name to dispense it; I therefore being one of these Dispensers, [in Gods name do bid] and invite [you all that are here present, unto] this heavenly Feast, which is provided for all bap­tized Christians, and therefore you all have a right to it, and are or ought to be fit for it; wherefore I pray you all to come, [and beseech you for the Lord Iesus Christs sake] who died to make this entertainment for you, [that you will not re­fuse to come thereto,] and especially since you are [Page 283] [so lovingly called and bidden by God himself,] who hath sent us in his own name on purpose to invite you: Now lest you should rashly resolve to deny both God and his kind Message, let me rea­son the case with you, And my first argument shall be taken from a plain and familiar Case: [You know how grievous] to the inviter [and how unkind a thing it is] in the persons invited, [when an] ordinary [Man] one of our Neigh­bors [hath prepared] with a great deal of Cost, Art, and pains [a rich feast,] and [decked his Ta­ble with all kind of Provision] that can be wish­ed or expected, [so that there lacketh nothing but those Guests to sit down] at it, whom he chose out of all his Friends, to shew his love and respects to, by this invitation: If after all, [they who were] so kindly invited and [called, with­out any cause most unthankfully refuse to come;] I dare appeal to your own selves, and make you judges of this Matter, [which of you in such a case would not be moved] to great anger, to see your cost thus cast away, your pro­visions slighted, your company refused, and your very love despised? [who would not think] this as grievous to be born, as if some [great injury or wrong were done to him?] since Affronts are the most provoking sort of offences: I know you must confess you would take this ill from your Equals; And surely when God vouchsafes to let his own Son be slain, to make this spiritual Feast, and invites his Creatures, yea his miserable Enemies to it, who must perish without it, and they insolently turn their backs, he hath much juster cause of high displeasure; [wherefore most dearly beloved in Christ,] do not rashly run into so vile a crime, but [Page 284] [take ye good heed] and consider Gods Mercy in inviting, and your own necessity who are invited, as also the excellency of the Food provided for you, and the benefits you may have thereby, [lest ye withdrawing your selves from this holy Sup­per,] be condemned out of your own mouths, and wilfully [provoke Gods indignation against you.] I know Men will study some excuses to blind the Eyes of others, and stifle the checks of their own Consciences; Secondly therefore, I will exa­mine the most usual pretences, and shew how vain they are: First, Some pretend they are busie and cannot come now, and indeed [it is an easie matter for a Man to say I will not communi­cate] at this time, [because I am otherwise hindred with Worldly business: But I answer, Why did you not contrive before-hand to put off this business? You can find time for Markets, Visits, yea for Recreations, and do put off other business for these lesser matters, so that I doubt God sees you contrived business on purpose to put him off: Again, if every little business keep you away, the World will always find you such employment, and so you shall never come: But suppose you have real business, is it of as great concernment to you as the Salvation of your Soul? if not, ought it not to be laid aside when you have the greatest work to do? Doth not this shew, you value Earth above Heaven, and Gain above God himself? 'Tis easie to feign pretences to Men, [But such excuses are not so easily accepted and allowed of God,] who sees they are false, frivolous, or highly impious. A­gain, others pretend they are Sinners and dare not come, whose plea is next to be considered; [If any man say I am a grievous Sinner, and [Page 285] therefore am afraid to come,] fearing to be judged for coming unworthily: I reply, If you see your Sin, and consider you live every moment in the danger of Damnation, till you have repented, [why do you not repent & amend] your lives just now, and then you may come without any danger; but if you continue in Sin when you know you are a Sinner, you will be as certainly damned though you stay away, as if you came; and you are con­demned not for coming to the Sacrament, but for living in Sin without Repentance: It is one great fault to live in Sin; and can that excuse us for ano­ther fault, which is the forsaking the Holy Sacra­ment? 'Tis true, while you keep your Sins you must not come; and you choose rather to leave the Sacra­ment, than to part with your Sins; and are so foolish to think this will excuse you, and shews y [...]r high esteem [...]f that Sacrament; which you love less than your Malice, your Lust, or Intemperance: Repent therefore, and shew your Reverence by com­ming humbly to this Feast which was made for Pe­nitent Sinners: [when God calleth you] by us, to forsake your Sins and come, [are ye not asha­med to say] impudently [you will not? When ye should] immediately [return to God,] as soon as you perceive your offence, [will ye excuse your selves and say you are not ready?] How oft have you put us off so before? Or what pro­gress have you made in preparing since last time? I beseech you, [consider earnestly with your selves how little such feigned excuses will a­vail before God] who seeth the heart, and knoweth, the end of them, is only to colour over a designed total Omission of this Duty: Which may be seen, Thirdly, By a plain Example in that Pa­rable, [Page 286] Luke xiv. 18. &c. wherein our Saviour clear­ly alludes to this heavenly Banquet: For [they that refused that Feast in the Gospel,] to which God had invited them by his Servants, had Excuses as well as you: And one pretended he could not come [because he had bought a Farm;] another was [to try his yokes of Oxen;] a third [was] newly [married,] and therefore could not come: These fair Pretenders [were not so excused,] but were esteemed Despisers of his Provisions and his Love who had invited them, and so [were counted unworthy of the heavenly Feast,] and finally rejected upon this base Affront: And let me intreat you to beware you do not by the like contempt provoke Almighty God to resolve to withold his Grace from you for ever, the means of which you have vilely rejected. However, [I for my part] will prepare the Sacrament, and [shall be ready] to administer it, [and according to my Office,] as I am a Steward of these Myste­ries, [I bid you in the Name of God,] the great Master of the Feast; [I call you in Christs behalf,] who is the precious Food here dispensed; [I exhort you,] for your own sakes, [as you love your own Salvation,] (which will be en­dangered by this contempt) [that ye will] set a­side all Excuses, and all Business, [and be parta­kers of this holy Communion] at this time: I am sure you are infinitely obliged to it; for [as the Son of God did vouchsafe to yield up his Soul by death upon the Cross for your Sal­vation,] as he in pure love to you did endure that most accursed death for you: [So it is your du­ty,] and as little as you can do in return for so in­finite a favour, [to receive the Communion in [Page 287] remembrance of the Sacrifice of his Death,] and especially since he expresly enjoins [you] thus to remember him; and the doing this in remembrance of him, is that which [he him­self hath commanded;] so that both in point of Gratitude and Obedience [you] must come to this Sacrament: [which if ye shall neglect to do,] after all these Arguments to convince you, [consider with your selves,] and let your own Consciences tell you, [how great in­jury ye do to God,] in despising his Love and the Merits of his dear Son hereby conveyed, [and how sore punishment hangeth over your heads for the same;] You may think it may be (by Ignorance or ill Principles) there is danger in coming, though you do endeavour to prepare; but is it not plain enough you commit a greater sin, and run into a more eminent dan­ger, [when we wilfully abstain from the Lords Table] in contempt of his Command, [and separate your selves from your Bre­thren who come to feed on the Banquet of that most heavenly Food,] either out of Pride, as if you were too holy to eat with them; or out of gross ignorance, as if you could expect, to partake with them in the Re­ward, when you will not joyn with them in the Duty; or by Uncharitableness, discoura­ging others by your vile Example? Surely you cannot expect, such a Sin against God and Man can long go unpunished: [These things if ye earnestly] and frequently [consider, ye will by Gods Grace return to a better mind,] and resolve to come prepared in the best man­ner [Page 288] you can: And [for the obtaining] of this Grace, both to persuade you to it, and fit you for it, [we will not cease to make our humble Petitions unto Almighty God our heavenly Father,] to whom be Glory now and for ever, Amen.

Partition II. OF THE More immediate Preparation.

Sect. I. Of the Exhortation at the Communion.

§. 1. THe former Exhortation is designed to encrease the Numbers, and this to re­ctifie the dispositions of the Commu­nicants, that they may be not only many, but good: The very Mysteries of the Gen­tiles were veiled with many Coverings, to make them more Sacred: And in the Greek Church, be­side all other preparatory matters, the Priests invi­ted the worthy, and warned the unworthy, when they were come to the Lords Table: which re­peated Warning is more necessary in this looser Age, and this Excellent Form is rarely suted to this Occasion: For it recommends to us two great and [Page 290] necessary Duties; First, The Duty of Self-exami­nation; which is 1. Pressed by Arguments taken from The Divine Authority enjoyning it, 1 Cor. xi. 28. From the great Benefits which follow the do­ing it well, and the great sin and danger consequent to the doing it ill. 2. It is described exactly by the several parts of it, viz. true Repentance, a lively Faith, an intire Amendment, and a per­fect Charity: To all which we are exhorted. Secondly, Here is recommended the Duty of Thanksgiving, 1. By way of Consideration, shewing The necessity of this Duty, and the gene­ral ground thereof, viz. for the Redemption of the World; withal declaring, what reason there is to praise God for this Redemption, considering it in it self; and what cause to praise him for it in this Sacrament, which was instituted on purpose for this end. 2. This Duty is directed by way of Practice, and we assisted to do it both with out lips at the holy Table, and in our lives by submit­ting to his Will, and keeping his Commandments for ever after.

§. 2. [Dearly beloved in the Lord,] I rejoyce to see you stay for these holy Mysteries; and that your good desires may be successful, I must once more tell [you, that mind to come to the Holy Communion,] that you may partake [of the body and blood of our Lord and Saviour Christ,] that now especially you [must consider how S. Paul,] and God himself by him enjoyneth and [exhorteth all persons diligently to try and examine themselves,] that they may discover and bewail their Sins, and be assured of their purposes to amend, [before they presume to eat of that [Page 291] bread, and drink of that Cup,] 1 Cor. xi. 28. And though we hope you have done this in private, yet it is fit you should reflect upon your selves once more just now, when you are immediately ap­proaching to the Lords Table, that so you may yet step back (till another opportunity) if you find you are unworthy, and that this fresh review may humble you, and make you fitter if you be disposed: And the more effectually to excite all to do this Du­ty well now, we must consider, that besides the Com­mand of God requiring it, we must do it for our own sakes; [For as the benefit is great if we] do so strictly examine our selves as to [receive that Holy Sacrament with a true penitent heart, and a lively Faith,] and so become worthy receivers; [for then we spiritually eat the flesh of Christ and drink his blood,] so that his Incarnation sanctifies our nature and his Passion seals our pardon; [then we dwell in Christ and Christ in us,] so that his Grace is commu­nicated to us, then [we are one with Christ and Christ with us,] so that our will is intirely conformed to his, John vi. 54, 55, 56. Which ad­mirable and desirable advantages are enough to in­vite all that wish to be happy, to use all means in order to their coming worthily: [So] on the contrary I must assure you [the danger is great, if we] by neglecting this preparative examinati­on shall [receive the same unworthily; For then] the same Apostle shews us, First, that we commit a grievous Sin, in thus contemning the memorial of Christs death, for [we are uilty of the body and blood of Christ our Saviour,] and he takes it as ill from us as he did the cruelty of his Murderers; yea, [we eat and drink our [Page 292] own damnation,] if we come rashly and rudely to it, [not considering] that [the Lords body] is here, nor making any difference between this and our common food: This is so high an affront to the Merits of his death, and to the love and the Mercy offered in this Sacrament, that as it is a grievous Sin, so it shall have a severe punishment; for hereby [we kindle Gods wrath against us,] who will not endure that his Son shall be despised, [we provoke him to plague us with divers diseases, and sundry kinds of death,] and if we should escape these temporal Evils, he can punish us with eternal: These are the sad ef­fects of coming without examination, which I do thus plainly relate, not to affright you from the Lords Table, but to make you very careful to come worthily to it, for I will shew you how to escape all these Evils; I know you are very desirous to obtain the former Blessings, and to avoid these Sins and Judgments, [Iudge therefore your selves Brethren,] 1 Cor. xi. 27, 28, 29, 30. First, enquire after your offences, then try your ways, and lastly pass sentence on your selves as vile and miserable Sinners, who have deserved to be con­demned, and then [you shall not be judged of the Lord,] (who never condemns an humbled Pe­nitent;) and when you are convinced of the evil you have deserved, let that cause you to [Repent you truly of your Sins past,] for which Jesus hath so sadly smarted on the Cross; yet remem­bring the Merit of that Passion, [have a lively and stedfast Faith in Christ our Saviour,] here offered to you: And as a testimony of your desire to please him for ever hereafter, [amend your lives and be in perfect Charity with all [Page 293] Men;] Do but these things, and [so shall ye be] reputed by God as [meet partakers of these holy Mysteries,] and escaping the dangers, shall certainly reap all the aforesaid Benefits of this ho­ly Sacrament. This may suffice for your Prepara­tion: But now you are come to the Lords Table, having quieted your Minds by these acts of Peni­tence, and made your Hearts sensible of Christs Love, [you must, above all things, give most humble and hearty thanks.] for this Mystery was instituted for a Sacrifice of Praise, which you must here offer up [to God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, for the] most admirable work of [the Redemption of the World,] which was ef­fected [by the Death and Passion of our Savi­our Christ,] who was [both God,] that he might conquer Death, [and Man,] that he might suf­fer it. This is the proper place, and this the pro­per Ordinance, wherein you should remember your dear Redeemer, [who] though he was equal with God, yet [did humble himself even to the] cruel, painful, and shameful [death upon the Cross,] enduring all those Torments [for us mi­serable sinners,] who could not deserve this fa­vour from him, only be pitied to behold us [ly­ing in darkness, and in the shadow of death,] condemned to eternal Misery, without any appre­hension of our Misery, or Means of delive­rance; he then most generously offered to dye for our Pardon and Reconciliation, that, of condemn­ed Rebels [he might make us the Children of God] by Adoption here, [and exalt us to e­verlasting Life] and Glory in the World to come. [And to the end that we] who were thus miraculously delivered, [should always [Page 294] remember the exceeding great love of our Ma­ster and only Saviour, thus] freely [dying for us: and] that we might never forget [the innumerable Benefits which by his precious blood-shedding he hath obtained to us,] that is, Pardon of Sin, Peace with God, the Aid of his Grace, and the Hope of his Glory, our Lord Je­sus himself [hath instituted and ordained] these [holy Mysteries] of his last Supper to be re­ceived by us [as the pledge of his Love,] the assurance of his desire to give Himself and all his Benefits to us, [and for a continual remem­brance of his Death,] which here we may often commemorate with Joy, [to our great and end­less comfort:] Since then this is the proper place for offering up our Praises to our Lord Jesus, [to him therefore, with the Father and the Holy Ghost,] at this Sacred Altar, [let us give, (as we are] most highly [bound] and obliged) [con­tinual thanks:] And because the Praises of our Lips are too mean a Return for such real and infi­nite Favour, let us praise him in our Lives, by [sub­mitting our selves wholly] in all Conditions, to his holy will and pleasure, and] (after we have here vowed to be his constant Servants) [by studying to serve him in true holiness and righteousness all the days of our lives,] so shall we shew the sincerity of our Gratitude for these Mercies. [Amen.]

Sect. II. Of the Invitation.

§. 1. THe Feast being now ready, and the Guests prepared with due Instructions, the Priest, who is the Steward of these Mysteries, according to the ancient Liturgies, invites them to come near with Fear and Faith: And that God may accept them, he repeats those Graces with which they must be adorned, which are 1. Repentance, 2. Charity, 3. Holy purposes, and then invites them to [Draw near with Faith, &c.] shewing them what is the first duty to be done, viz. ma­king an humble confession upon their Knees: So that upon this invitation, all the Communicants should come into the Choir, or as nigh the Lords Table as they can, and there kneel down to confess their Sins, to which Confession this is the Preface.

§. 2. All [ye that do truly] and in good [earnest repent you of your Sins,] being hear­tily grieved for them; And ye that have endea­voured to satisfie those you have wronged, and forgiven those who have offended you, so as to be [in love and Charity with your neighbors;] And ye that do so dislike your former ways, that you firmly [intend to lead a new life, follow­ing] no longer your own evil desires, but [the Commandments of God;] and resolving to [walk from henceforth in his holy ways:] [Page 296] I declare you are duly qualified for this Heavenly Feast, and in the name of Christ I invite you to [draw near with Faith] in Gods mercy, [and take this holy Sacrament] as the pledge of his love [to your] great and endless [comfort:] And because you know you have been Sinners, empty and cleanse your Souls first from Sin, by [making your humble Confession to almighty God,] inwardly bewailing your offences, [and meekly kneeling upon your knees,] as becomes Offendors who sue for their Pardon to the King of Kings.

Sect. III. Of the Confession.

§. 1. BEside the private Confession of the Closet, used by all good Christians before they come to the Sacrament, and that made to the Priest in special cases of a great doubt or a strong temptation, there was anciently a general Prayer for Mercy, as S. Chrysostome informs us, used by all the Communicants when they were come to the Altar; And since Christs sufferings are here re­membred, we must own our Sins which were the causes of them; yea, since we hope to have our pardon sealed, we ought first with shame and sor­row to own the transgressions, for his honour who doth so freely remit them: And here to this excel­lent Form directs us.

[Page 297]§. 2. O Lord our Consciences do accuse us of many Sins, and to whom should we confess them but unto thee, who art that [Almighty God] we have offended, and hast power enough to destroy us; yet as thou art [the Father of our Lord Iesus Christ,] thou hast inclinations of Mercy toward us: of whom should we thy poor Crea­tures seek for pity, but of thee the [maker of all things;] to whom should we petition for delive­rance but to thee, the [Iudge of all Men,] Job. ix. 15. Wherefore being now in thy presence, [we] do with shame [acknowledge,] and with sorrow [bewail our manifold Sins and wickedness,] as the true causes of all the torments and agonies that our dear Redeemer (here remembred) endu­red for us; when we consider what he suffered, it makes our hearts bleed to think of those many heinous Transgressions of thy Law, [which we] continually and with frequent repetitions, [from time to time have committed] in the [most grievous] manner, and with all the aggravating circumstances imaginable: For we have Sinned a­gainst our knowledge and our conscience, against all the divine Mercies and Methods of Grace: And these Sins are of divers kinds; we have sinned in heart [by evil thoughts,] with our lips [by] vain false and wicked [words,] and in our lives by unjust and ungodly [deeds,] so that the Hand we should take our Lord with, the Mouth and Heart we should receive him into, are polluted by these offences, which have been done [against thy Divine Majesty,] in contempt of thy holy Will, and righteous Laws; so that we must con­fess we have [most justly provoked] thee, our most gracious and long-suffering God, [to wrath [Page 298] and indignation against us,] and nothing is so terrible to us as thy dreadful displeasure: And now upon our clear and full confession of this which is the just character of our Sin and Misery, our hearts do smite us, and our consciences up­braid us with our folly and baseness, so that [we do] sincerely and [earnestly repent,] that we ever did commit them; [we are heartily sorry for] that we have displeased thee, wounded thy dear Son, and grieved thy blessed Spirit by [these our misdoings;] And now that we seriously re­flect upon their infinite number, and heinous na­ture, [the very remembrance of them is] odious, and [grievous unto us;] the shame of what is past, and the fear of what is to come, makes [the burden of them] to be so [intolerable,] that we are almost ready to sink into despair, and dare scarce lift up our eyes to Heaven: Yet since thou callest those that are heavy laden to come unto thee for rest, our grief and terror shall not drive us from thee, for then we certainly perish, but our misery shall bring us to thee; and here on our bended knees we pray thee [have mercy up­on us,] or we are eternally ruined; and again we importunately beg of thee to [have mercy upon us,] Psal. lvii. 1. O [most merciful Father] who art the fountain of all pity and compassion; And though we deserve nothing but destruction, yet [for thy Son our Lord Iesus Christ his sake,] who hath dyed for our redemption, and by the merit of his bitter Passion here represented, we most passionately beseech thee to [forgive us] all the sins we have now confessed, and [all that] ini­quity which hath been done in that part of our life which [is past;] we come to a dying Saviour to [Page 299] obtain our Pardon sealed, O do thou accept his satisfaction, and quit our scores, forgive our former Offences: [And] because we desire to be freed from the power, as well as from the punishment of sin, and come hither also to renew our Vows of holy obedience, therefore, O Lord, [grant] us to receive such effectual Grace in this Communion, [that we may] for [ever hereafter serve] thee with our Bodies and Souls, [and please thee] in all our actions, by leading a [new life] in all temperance and sobriety, justice and charity, pie­ty and devotion, aiming in every thing at the ad­vancing [the honour and glory of thy Name,] who dost pardon and sanctifie us [through Ie­sus Christ our Lord,] in whose Name we hum­bly and affectionately beg these Mercies, and to whom, with thee, and the Holy Ghost, be all Ho­nour and Glory ascribed now and ever. [Amen.]

Sect. IV. Of the Absolution.

§. 1. WHen the Discipline of the Ancient Church was in force, no notorious Offender could escape the Censures that his Sin de­served, nor was he admitted to the Sacrament with­out a publick and solemn Absolution upon his Re­pentance. And although this Discipline be now (to the great hurt of the Christian World) laid aside, yet we are required to judge our own selves, and [Page 300] however, to confess our sins to God with shame and sorrow: And now lest our guilt should terri­fie us from coming to this holy Table, the Priest doth here very properly exercise the Power given him by Christ, and pronounces Absolution in his Name, in the Form of a Prayer, or a Benediction, Numb. vi. 24. which coming from a Person com­missionated by Christ for this end, ought to be re­ceived with Faith and Gratitude, and is the only way to quiet the Conscience of a poor humbled Sinner, now that Revelations are ceased.

§. 2. Ye that are truly sorry for your sins, do not give way to doubts or despair, for I have a Com­mission from that same [Almighty God] whom you have offended, and who only can forgive, to speak peace to you; he is [our heavenly Father,] and knowing our sin and misery thereby, [of his great mercy] and pity to penitent Sinners, [he hath promised forgiveness of sins,] Matth. xi. 28. John iii. 16. &c. [to all them that with hear­ty Repentance] for their former Offences, [and true Faith] in his Mercy, forsake their evil ways, and [turn unto him:] I do hope and believe, you who have made this humble Confession, are all thus qualified, and therefore I do in Christs Name, and by his Authority, relying on his goodness and his promise, solemnly pray to this Almighty God to [have mercy upon you,] and [to pardon] the guilt, [and deliver you from] the power of [all your sins:] May he by his Grace [confirm] you in the purposing [and strengthen you in] the per­forming of [all goodness, and] may he finally [bring you to everlasting life] and glory: All [Page 301] this I declare God hath promised, I believe he will, and pray he may perform it to you all, [through Iesus Christ our Lord,] in whose Name I pro­nounce this Absolution: [Amen.]

Sect. V. Of the Sentences of Scripture.

§. 1. IT is so necessary for every one that would receive comfort and benefit here, to have a lively Faith, and a Mind freed from unreasonable doubts and fears, that the Church hath chosen these Sentences to confirm the Faith, and revive the Hope of poor Penitents, and they are those ve­ry Promises on which the foregoing Absolution is grounded; so that unless any doubt of the Truth of Gods Word, they must believe these Promises of Mercy.

Matth. xi. 28. If any doubt of Christs willing­ness to receive and pardon those who with hearty Repentance turn to him, let them [hear what comfortable words our Saviour] himself [saith to all that truly turn to him:] He most lovingly invites them, saying, [Come unto me] and do not be discouraged [all ye that travel] with grief and pain for your sins past, and all ye that [are heavy laden] with your own guilt, and the fears of my Fathers wrath; I have born this burden for you, and will take it off from you, [Page 302] so that [I will refresh you,] by making your Peace, and sealing your Pardon in my Blood.

John iii. 16. If any doubt whether he will re­ceive and pardon those who with a true Faith turn unto him, (which is the second thing affirm­ed in the Absolution,) our Lord himself testifies that [God so] wonderfully [loved the World,] when it lay in a hopeless and helpless estate of sin and misery, [that he gave his] intirely beloved, and [only begotten Son,] to suffer a cruel and bloody death for the purchase of a Pardon: And this he did [to the end that all that believe in him] as their Saviour and Redeemer, trusting he is able to deliver them, and accordingly following his directions, that all these, I say, [should not perish,] nor be condemned for their sins past, but be reconciled to God here [and have everlasting life] hereafter.

1 Tim. i. 15. If your fears suggest to you that this is true, but you are unworthy, because you are grievous sinners, [Hear] then [what S. Paul saith,] who himself had been a great Offen­der: [This is a true saying,] and infallibly certain, it is attested by God, [and worthy to be received,] and firmly believed [of all men.] es­pecially penitent sinners, [that Iesus Christ came] for no other end [into the World,] when he was Incarnate, but only to seek and [to save] such poor lost [sinners,] as you confess your selves to be: And can you think he will cast you off, now you beg of him to receive you? Will he lose the very end of his coming, and let you perish when he may save you?

1 John ii. 1. If you say Christ is full of pity, but will God the Father be appeased? [Hear] then what S. John saith,] though we ought to live holy, yet [if any man do sin] by frailty, he is not left to perish without remedy, nor must he de­spair; for though God do hate all sin, yet he pi­ties sinners; for [we have an Advocate] to plead our cause, who is in Heaven [with the Father,] and hath all power there, even [Iesus Christ the Righteous,] who never did offend in any thing; [And] he can justly plead for our Pardon, and get us excused for the Offences which we repent of, be­cause [he is the] Sacrifice which was offered as a [Propitiation] to satisfie the Justice, and pa­cifie the wrath of God [for our sins,] so that he can effectually intercede by his own Merits for our Pardon; And shall we despair who have such a Friend?

Sect. VI. Of the Prefaces and Trisagium.

§. 1. THis Sacrament is a Feast of Joy and Thanksgiving, the Apostles eat it with gladness of heart, Acts ii. 46. and the Primitive Christians did not think fit to receive upon any Day of Humiliation, because they were to rejoyce in this Feast; wherefore the Nature of the Eucharist requires some Acts of Praise and Gratitude; and this is a very fit place for them, since we have now [Page 304] cleared our Consciences by Confession, and our Hopes are raised by the former comfortable Assu­rances of our Pardon: Now therefore the Priest admonishes us to praise God in the Responses; gives the reason of it in the Prefaces; and joyns with us in the doing of it, in the Trisagium: Of each we will speak briefly.

§. 2. [Lift up your hearts,] Lament. iii. 41. Answ. [We lift them up unto the Lord,] Psal. xxvii. 9. Our hearts were pressed down with guilt and fear, but now we have searched and tryed our ways, and turned again to the Lord: We are en­joyned to lift up our hearts, Lam. iii. 40. And hence all the Liturgies in the World have this Ex­hortation; and the most ancient of the Fathers expound it, as a seasonable Admonition to take off our minds from all worldly thoughts, and fix them upon the Mystery now in hand; and as a just Com­mand, to lift up our Souls above all base fear, to consider the goodness of him that hath taken our heavy load from us. And the People do comply with this reasonable injunction, and assure their Pastor that they do now actually lift up their hearts unto the Lord, Psal. xxv. i. and they must be careful that they not only say these words, but do the thing, and now casting off all thoughts of the World, that they turn their Mind towards God only.

§. 3. [Let us give thanks unto our Lord God:] Answ. [It is meet and right so to do.] When the Priest finds the Communicants hearts thus fixed upon the thoughts of the Divine Goodness, and e­levated therewith, he doth in the words of Primi­tive [Page 305] Antiquity, exhort them to joyn with him in Eucharist and Thanksgiving, for the Mercy of our Absolution now received, and for the comfortable Feast that we are going to partake of. And the People being convinced that God justly deserves these Praises, and that they are highly obliged to give them to him, do answer, that it is very fit, and very just so to do; and none who is truly sensible of Gods goodness, can forbear blessing him for it on so great an Occasion as this.

§. 4. [It is very meet, &c.] When all are a­greed (in the Responses) to joyn in praising God, the Priest by this general Preface gives a general Reason of this Duty, and on great Festivals adds proper Prefaces, containing special Reasons for our Thanksgiving on those special Occasions: And now he begins his Sacrifice of Praise, he turns from the People (to whom he was speaking before) un­to God, and addresses himself to him, professing and declaring, that [it is meet and right,] fit and just in it self, [and our bounden duty,] who have received so many and great favours, [that we should] continually remember them, [and at all times] when ever we have leisure, [and in all places] wherever we be, in publick or private, that we should [give thanks] and praise [unto thee, O Lord,] for thou art to us a most gracious and [holy Father,] and in thy self an [Almigh­ty and everlasting God,] whose Mercies have no Measure nor no End.

§. 5. [Therefore with Angels, &c.] The Prophet Isaiah heard that Hymn with which the Angels, Cherubins and Seraphins praised God in [Page 306] Heaven, Isai. vi. 3. which, because the word Holy is thrice repeated in it, was by the Greeks called Tris­agium; and because the Primitive Church believed the Angels were present in Christian Assemblies, 1 Cor. xi. 10. and that they desired especially to look into these Mysteries, 1 Peter i. 12. considering also that the thrice Holy, plainly declares the Tri­nity, the peculiar Doctrine of the Christians, there­fore they did, in the very first Ages, take this Hymn into the Office for the Sacrament, believing it fit for Angels and Men to joyn in this heavenly Song, over the Memorial of our Redemption: And the sense of it is,

The Hosts of Heaven, who stand by and be­hold us in this Sacrament, do praise thee for our Redemption, and [Therefore] we who have the benefit of it, do lift up our hearts as well as ever we can, that [with Angels and Archangels,] Che­rubins and Seraphins, [and all the] blessed [Com­pany of Heaven, we] whom thou hast redeemed with thy Sons Blood, may [laud and magnifie thy glorious Name:] They are [evermore praising thee] above, and we who have equal Ob­ligations to thy Mercy, till we be raised to sing with them in the heavenly Choir, will at this Holy Table joyn with them, [saying, Holy] Father, [Holy] Son, [Holy] Spirit, three Persons, and one [Lord God of Hosts,] thou hast kept the blessed Angels from falling, glorified many of our Brethren in Heaven with them, and givest us hopes of coming thither also by Jesus Christ; so that [Hea­ven and Earth are full of thy Glory,] Men and Angels admire thy goodness, and sing [Glory be to thee, O Lord most high,] let thy Name be praised in the highest strain of Joy and Thanksgiv­ing.

[Page 307]§. 6. The decay of Devotion let fall the Aposto­lical and Primitive use of daily and weekly Com­munions, and the People in the later Ages did not receive but at the greater Festivals; upon which Custome there were added to the general Preface mentioned before §. 4. some special Prefaces rela­ting to the peculiar Mercy of that Feast on which they did Communicate, the Church thinking it fit, that since every Festival was instituted to remember some great Mercy, therefore they who received on such a day, besides the general Praises offered for all Gods Mercies, should at the Lords Table make a special Memorial of the Mercy proper to that Festi­val: And this seemed so rational to our Reformers, that they have retained those proper Prefaces which relate to Christmas, Easter, Ascension-day, Whitsun­day, and Trinity Sunday, and how to apply those Forms, so as to praise God for the Mercies of Christs Birth, Resurrection, and Ascension, for the sending the Holy Ghost, and for the true Faith of the holy Trinity, I have shewed in the larger Dis­course, and for brevities sake must omit them here.

Partition III. OF THE CELEBRATION.

Sect. I. Of the Address.

§. 1. THe nearer we come to God, the more holy we ought to be; and when we are just going to make so immediate ap­proaches, our very joy must be temper­ed with humility, and we must excuse our own un­worthiness in the Method prescribed by this Ad­dress.

§. 2. [We do not presume to come, &c.] It would be presumption in us sinful Creatures to sit down at the Table of the King of Kings without making some Apology: It is his goodness to invite us, but our duty to confess we do not deserve it; [Page 309] we have no merits of our own, our [Righteous­ness] is imperfect, and that which we do well, we do it by his Grace, and therefore we cannot [trust in it;] the only thing which encourages us is [his manifold and great Mercies,] Dan. ix. 18. by which we hope he will accept us: We con­fess, our manifold and great Offences which we have done against the great Master of this Feast, make the place of the very Dogs too good for us, 2 Sam. ix. 7, 8. and [we are not worthy so much as to gather up the Crumbs under his Table,] Matth. xv. 27. We deserve not the common Mer­cies of his Providence, and our daily bread which he gives to ill-natured Sinners; and therefore we could never hope to sit at his Table among his Children, and eat of the Bread of Life, but that he is [the same] good [Lord] to us that he ever was, whose peculiar [property] it is to [have mercy] on those that are miserable. And since it is this most [gracious Lord] we are now going to, we will beseech him to accept us, and [to grant] that we may [so] humbly, penitently, and de­voutly [eat] this Bread, and [drink] this Cup, which by Faith is made the [Flesh and Blood] of his [dear Son Iesus Christ,] that we may find all the benefits of worthy receiving, even [that] whereas our [Bodies and Souls] are defiled and polluted with many odious sins, they may be purified [by his Body, and washed through his most precious blood:] For when we are thus cleansed, then we may hope that the Holy Jesus, the lover of all Purity, will come to us, and remain with us, so as [he may ever dwell in us, and we in him:] And how infinitely happy shall we be in so desirable a Guest! The hope of this did invite [Page 310] us to come, Lord excuse our boldness, pity our necessity, and fulfil our desires, that we may receive this Sacrament worthily, and find these admirable Benefits of our worthy receiving [Amen.]

Sect. II. Of the Prayer of Consecration.

§. 1. WE do not eat our common Food, with­out first praying for a Blessing on it; which pious Custom is so universal, that it is cer­tainly a piece of natural Religion; How much more then are we obliged, before we eat and drink this Bread and Wine, which Christ designed to set forth the Mystery of his Death, to Conse­crate it and set it apart, by a solemn Prayer; espe­cially since Christ himself in the Institution of this sacred Ordinance, while he was teaching his A­postles how to celebrate it, did use a Form of blessing over it, Matth. xxvi. 26. which S. Paul calls Giving thanks, 1 Cor. xi. 24. Wherefore all Churches in the World from the Apostles days, have used such a Form, The ancient and essential part of which is the words of our Saviours Institution; for since he makes this Sacramental change, it hath been thought fit by all Churches to keep his own words, which being pronounced by a lawful Priest, do properly make the Consecration; wherefore our Church hath cut off all the later superstitious Additions, by which the Roman Church hath cor­rupted [Page 311] this Form, and given us a Prayer of Conse­cration, consisting only of the words of our Savi­ours Institution, and a proper Prayer to introduce it: The first part is a Prayer directed to [Almigh­ty God our Heavenly Father,] Commemora­ting his Mercy in giving his Son to dye for us, and the all-sufficient Merit of his Death, together with his Command for our remembring it in this Sacra­ment: And on these grounds desiring that since we obey him in thus celebrating it, we may therein receive Christs Body and Blood. The Second part is the repetition of the Words and Actions of our Lord at the Institution, concerning both the Time and the Manner of its Institution.

§. 2. [Almighty God our Heavenly Father, &c.] When Christ was to bless the Bread and Wine, he looked up to Heaven, and thither the Priest di­rects this Prayer; and that he may beg of God the more effectually to sanctifie these Elements, he doth first lay down the occasion and ground of this Re­quest, calling to mind how this [Almighty God our Heavenly Father] did [of his tender mercy,] and meer pity, freely [give his only Son Iesus Christ,] whom he loved most dearly, [to suffer] a cruel, tormenting and shameful [death upon the Cross for the Redemption] of our sin­ful Souls, from that eternal Death which they had deserved; and surely he that hath given us his Son thus to dye for us, will not deny us a share in the benefits thereof, which we earnestly desire, be­cause we believe that our Saviour [made] upon that Cross, [by that free oblation of himself,] though he was but only [once offered,] (and not often as the legal Sacrifices were) [a full, perfect, and [Page 312] sufficient Sacrifice, oblation, and satisfaction,] not only for our Sins, but also [for the Sins of the whole World,] so that if we can get an in­terest in this All-sufficient Sacrifice, we make no doubt but it will procure our Pardon, Especially since there is no need to have Christ offered and sa­crificed over again, as the Roman Church (con­trary to S. Paul, Heb. ix. 26. and x. 10.12.) teach­eth; all that now is required to convey the bene­fits of this one Offering to us, being our devout re­membrance thereof: For he that thus dyed for us, did [Institute] this Ordinance, [and in his Holy Gospel] expresly [Command us] to Do this frequently and solemnly in remembrance of his Passion, that thereby we might [continue in] our own Minds, and in the minds of our Brethren, [a perpetual Memory of that most precious death of his;] so that it may not be forgotten [untill his coming again:] In observance of this Insti­tution of his, and in obedience to this Command, we are now come to celebrate this Mystery in re­membrance of his death; And we cannot do it effectually, O Lord, without thy Grace, which we hope thou wilt not deny us, because we are about to do this in complyance with thy Holy will, [Hear us] therefore [O most Merciful Father, we most humbly beseech thee] in this earnest re­quest for thy assistance and thy blessing, [and grant that we] thy unworthy servants, [re­ceiving these thy Creatures of bread & wine,] which are as yet no more but common food, but being chosen by Christ, and consecrated to this Sacred use, by thy Spirit descending on them, and our taking them [according to thy Son our Sa­viour Christs most holy Institution,] in a Sa­cramental [Page 313] manner, [and] received not as ordinary meat or drink, but [in remembrance of his Death and Passion,] thus taken and received though they be not changed in substance, yet do thou so change them in use and signification, that by them [we may be partakers of his most Blessed body and blood,] for so they really are to every worthy Receiver. And since our surest way to celebrate this Mystery aright, is to go by that first Pattern which our Lord did set us, we will call to mind what were his Actions and Words up­on this grand Occasion; for since his Grace must make these Elements to become a Sacrament, it is fit his words should be the instrument of this Sacra­mental change: We call to mind therefore, That [in the same night in which] by our Sins, and his unfaithful servant, [he was betrayed,] then he was contriving this admirable means of our Salvati­on, and being at his last supper with his disciples, [He took bread,] the food of our body, to re­present the food of our Souls, and to set forth his be­ing the bread of life; He took it, to signifie that body which he took in his incarnation, [and when he had given thanks] and praised God, that he had such a body to suffer for us, and begged of his Fa­ther a blessing upon it, for the purposes to which he now designed it, [He brake it] into many pie­ces, as an Emblem of those many breaches and wounds to be made in his own Body upon the Cross, (to remember which, we thus also break this bread;) And for an assurance, that he designed all the benefits of those his sufferings to his faithful servants, he [Gave it to his Disciples,] and with it reached out to them all his Merits and Gra­ces: And that he might direct them what to do [Page 314] with it, as well as instruct them what it was, he [said] unto them, [Take] this pledge of my Love, this Memorial of your Redemption, [Eat] it by Faith, for [This is] the Communion of [my Body,] and shall make you really partakers of that Sacrifice, [which was given] to make attone­ment [for you;] wherefore [do this] Holy Rite [in remembrance of me,] seriously medita­ting of all my grievous sufferings endured for you: We [likewise] do commemorate how, [after] that same Paschal [Supper, he took the Cup] of Wine, to represent the shedding of his Blood, [and when he had given thanks] for this opportunity to save Mankind by suffering, and blessed this Wine also, [He gave it to them,] as freely as he pou­red out his Blood for them, and offered the benefits thereof to them, [saying] I will give my whole self for you, and communicate all my Graces to you; therefore it is not enough for you only to eat the Bread, but [Drink you all of this,] for every one of you needs a share in it, [for this is] the Communion of [my Blood,] shed on the Cross, to be the seal [of the New] Covenant, and the confirmation of all the promises in the New [Te­stament] concerning forgiveness, for it [is shed for you] in particular, [and for many] Millions of poor Sinners, who had forfeited their Lives to my Fathers Justice, and therefore by that New Co­venant, I was to lay down mine [for the remission of their Sins;] wherefore as an evidence you be­lieve this, and are thankful to me for it, I charge you [do this] also, [as oft as] may be, and when [ye shall drink it,] let it be done [in remem­brance of me,] and of all the Love that I have shewed to you: And now the Priest hath done as [Page 315] Christ did, and hath said the words which Christ spoke, let none doubt but the Elements are become what he made, and intended them to be, and in testimony of their Faith, let all the People joyn with the Priest in saying [Amen.]

Sect. III. Of the form of Administration.

§. 1. THe holy Symbols being thus Consecrated, the Feast begins: And all the Guests are to approach in the posture of Kneeling, as well to express their humility, and the sense they have of their own unworthiness, as that they may be in the posture of Prayer; for they have many Petitions to put up all the time of the Celebration, for Pardon, Peace, and Grace, for themselves and their Friends, for the Church and for all Mankind: So that if the Posture were left at our liberty, no good man would do other than kneel; but we are more obli­ged so to do, since our Church enjoyns it, and all the well ordered Churches in the World practise it, nor do any scruple it, but they who study for pretences to palliate their most unjustifiable Sepa­ration, or designed neglect of this Ordinance: For our Church declares we adore Christ, not the Bread; and there is no more reason to call it Ido­latry to kneel before the Altar with the consecra­ted Bread upon it, than to kneel before a Desk on which a Bible is placed: And if the devout Com­municant [Page 316] lift up his heart to Jesus, he will never scruple to bow his knee to him also. As for the Form of Words used by him that God hath made the Steward of these Mysteries to give his Children their Portion in due season, it consists of three Particulars; 1. Instruction, declaring what it is, viz. [The Body of our Lord Iesus Christ, The Blood, &c.] And this was used in S. Ambrose his time. 2ly, Prayer, desiring this Communication of them to us may [preserve our Bodies and Souls unto everlasting Life,] and this is as an­cient as S. Gregory at least. 3ly, Direction what we are to do, viz. [Take, eat (or drink) this in remembrance that Christ died (and his blood was shed) for us;] and to [feed on him in our hearts by Faith with Thanksgiving,] (and to [be thankful] for his blood-shedding.) And this part is a full Paraphrase on Christs own words, and the whole Form together comes as nigh our Lords own words, in his administring this his last Supper, as can well be.

§. 2. The main thing now is to keep our minds fixed upon the duty, and to enlarge our thoughts in holy and proper Meditations; wherefore, in­stead of explaining the Form, we will now direct the devout Soul how to exercise it self before and after the receiving, in fit and seasonable Ejacula­tions drawn from the words of this very Form.

A Meditation before we receive the Bread.

BLessed Jesus, thou hast said, This is my Body, and therefore I believe it to be so; and though my senses assure me, the substance is not changed, yet thy Power and my Faith convince me, I shall verily and indeed take and receive thee by these Holy Symbols. Thy flesh would profit me nothing, but thy Spirit which is giv­en with these sacred Elements, shall make me by them a partaker of thy nature, thy merits and thy graces, with all the benefits of thy death; wherefore I will re­ceive it as thy Body, and believe it to be the Commu­nion of thy Body, And lifting up my thoughts above the outward part, will fix them only upon thee, O my sweet­est Saviour. I long for thy company, and am mise­rable without thee; but dare scarce draw nigh, because I have nothing pure enough to entertain thee. Lord be merciful to me a Sinner, for I am really grieved for my unworthiness, and hugely amazed at thy condescen­sion, in offering thy self to so vile a creature; As it is thy body, I am not fit to touch it, but as it was given for me, and made the price of my Redemption, I may hope it shall be given to me, and must profess I am surprized with thy wondrous love, in laying down thy life for me; In return to which inestimable favour, I will now give my self wholly to thee, to love and serve thee with all my powers, so long as I have a being. I know my body is lyable to temporal, and my soul to eternal death; but if I may but touch thee by Faith, thy Life-giving-body will preserve my Body and Soul to everlasting life. This O Lord, this [Page 318] is the Bread which I need infinitely, desire earnestly, and beg most importunately, for this will take away the sting of the first, and the power of the second death: And oh, how it chears my languishing Soul, to hear thee call upon me, to take and eat this, adored be thy bounty to a poor perishing Sinner; behold I open my mouth, and my heart to receive thee, with all thy Merits and Graces; blessed be he that cometh in the Name of the Lord: Come Lord Jesus, come quickly, Amen.

A Meditation after the receiving of the Bread.

BEhold O my Soul, how thy dearest Saviour hath been used by thy Sins; be was scourged with Whips, wounded with Thorns, torn with Nails, and rackt most cruelly on the Cross, for three long hours; and while thou pressest the Sacramental bread with thy Teeth, do it in remembrance that Christ dyed for thee, and think with a most affectionate pity, how he was bruised for thy Iniquities, and wounded for thy Transgressions, thy pleasures have put him to all this pain, thy sinful life hath caused his bitter death. How canst thou look upon these Lusts of thine, the Tormentors and Murderers of thy loving Redeemer, without the highest indignation against thy self, and them? Thou must now resolve to renounce them all for ever: And then his sufferings and all the merits of his holy Passion, shall be as really given to thee, as this holy Bread is, which thou hast eaten; For thy Saviour assures thee by this pledge, that he will take thy Sins upon him, and give his righteousness to thee: Welcome, thrice Welcome art thou to me, O bles­sed Jesus, I am not worthy thou shouldst come under my [Page 319] roof, but the more unworthy I am, the greater is thy goodness, and the higher my Obligations; I will believe thy Mercy, though it exceeds my very expectations, and I will rejoyce in this favour, as much as I am able; I will feed on this heavenly food, in my heart by Faith with thanksgiving; This thy broken body is a sacrifice to pacifie thy Fathers just displeasure, and a Medicine to cure my Sin-sick Soul: It quickens my hope, quiets my Conscience, and renews my strength, it unites me to thee, so that I shall be thine, and thou shalt be mine for ever: Praise thou the Lord, O my Soul, praise the Lord.

A Meditation before the receiving of the Cup.

HOly Jesus, thou art willing to be wholly mine; thou hast given me thy Body to cleanse my Nature, and art preparing thy Blood to wash away my guilt; with­out shedding of blood, there could have been no remissi­on, and this Cup is the blood of our Lord Jesus Christ, which was shed for me: I will receive it therefore as the Blood of the Everlasting Covenant, for the remission of my Sins, and will admire the wonderful love of my blessed Redeemer, who so freely poured it all out, and his life together with it, to make satisfaction for me and all mankind; But oh, how wretched have I been, who have so highly incensed the God of Heaven, that nothing less than the blood of his own Son can make my peace! my Lusts have made those ghastly Wounds, and pierced him to the very heart, but their life shall go for his, and this bleeding spectacle shall stir up my revenge, so that I will mortifie and destroy them all; and it is high time to [Page 320] do this, for both temporal and Eternal Death, the due reward of my iniquities, wait for me; and I shall certainly suffer both of them, unless thou please, O my Saviour, by sprinkling me with this all saving blood, to preserve my Body and Soul to everlasting Life. This Heavenly sign will make the destroying Angel pass by me; deny me not then this Cup of life; I am defiled, this will cleanse me; I am inflamed, this will cool me; I am liable to be condemned, this will save me; my Soul thirsteth for thee, my heart longeth for thee, O do thou pity and refresh me.

A Meditation after the receiving of the Cup.

LOrd! How chearing is this cup to me, which was so bitter to thee! for thou didst drink it as the price of my Sins, and it was mingled with thy Fathers wrath, but I receive it as the Seal of my pardon, and the pledge of his love. I call to mind how my life was for­feited to the divine Justice, and I drink this in Re­membrance that thy blood was shed for me, I com­memorate thy bloody sacrifice for my expiation, and thereby alone I hope to find mercy. I remember how freely thou didst pour out this blood for thine enemies, and will learn from thence both to forgive, and to do good to all that offend me. Thou hast loved all mankind so well as to spend thy blood for them, and therefore I will love all the World, and express my charity particu­larly to these my brethren, who eat at the same Table, and drink of the same Cup with me, for we have all drunk into one Spirit, and as it were mingled Souls. And I am unfeignedly thankful, that in this most [Page 321] blessed Cup thou dost give me thy Life and thy Blood, thy Spirit and all thy Graces, hoping it will trans­form me into thy likeness, so that I may follow the Ex­ample of thy holiness, meekness and patience, and as I have received a new life from thee, may live no lon­ger to the world, but to thee and to thy service. I rejoyce and am inexpressibly pleased at thy goodness, in sealing a New Covenant with me in thy Blood, and by this sacred Cup I bind my self to be faithful to thee while I live, and to lay down my life to bear witness of thy truth, if thou callest me thereto, for neither life nor death shall part us, I will love thee while I stay here, and live in hope to enjoy thee, when I go from hence for ever and e­ver, Amen.

§. 3. If we have any more time, we may remem­ber, that since all our Prayers are accepted for Christs sake, now we have received him, and are full of the apprehensions of his love, we may very affectionately in our hearts pray for all Mankind, and for the whole Church; as also for any special Blessings for this Church, for the King, the Magi­strates, Ministers, and People thereof; and par­ticularly for our Neighbours and Friends, Relati­ons and Acquaintance, especially for such as are sick or sorrowful, poor or distressed: And also for our selves, for Pardon, for Grace, and Cou­rage to keep our Vows: Yea, if we have time we may meditate of the baseness and danger of the ways we have renounced, of the wisdom and com­fort of a holy life, the greatness of Gods assistance, and the mercy of his acceptance, with the sweet­ness of his rewards. And further, we may re­solve upon such acts of Charity, to the Souls and Bodies of our Brethren, as we will afterwards per­form; [Page 322] and this will banish vain and impertinent thoughts, and keep our Devotions alive till the Priest have done the Celebration; and then ha­ving most heartily wished that all the Communi­cants may be accepted as well as our selves, we must joyn in the Post-Communion.

Partition IV.

OF THE Post-Communion.

Sect. I. Of the Lords Prayer.

§. 1. OUr Saviour concluded this Feast with Prayers and Hymns, Matth. xxvi. 30. and John xvii. and all Churches have followed his Example; and if we rise not from our common Meals without Prayer and Thanksgiving, surely we must more solemnly use them before we depart from the Lords Table: And the first part of this Office is the Lords Pray­er; it being very fit, that after we have received our Saviour into our hearts, the first words we speak should be his: To as many as receive him, he gives power to become the Sons of God, John [Page 324] i. 12. Wherefore we may now, upon good grounds, call God, [Our Father,] and are obliged to desire his Name may be [hallowed] and praised for all his kindness towards us; and if ever we be in a fit posture to wish his [Kingdom] may [come,] it is now when we have made our peace with him: We have now such assurances that he always wills that which is for our good, that with intire submission we may say, O Lord, not my [will,] but thine [be done:] He hath given us heavenly Bread to feed our Souls, and so we need not question but he will [Give us] every day [our daily Bread] to sustain our Natural Life. We have set forth the memory of that great Propitiation, and now by the vertue of that Sacrifice, we may chearfully ask the [forgiveness of our Trespasses,] and shall prevail the sooner, because in this Feast of Charity [we] have [forgiven] all them that have [tres­passed against us:] We have vowed to forsake all evil ways, and so may reasonably desire to [be kept] from [Temptation,] and [delivered] from all kind of [evil;] And as well with respect to what he hath done for us already, as to our hopes of his hearing these Requests, we must con­clude with the Doxology, and acknowledge that His is [the Kingdom, Power, and Glory,] both now and [for ever, Amen.]

Sect. II. Of the first Prayer in the Post-Commu­nion.

§. 1. FOr the further exercise and improvement of our Devotion, the Church, in imitati­on of ancient Liturgies, hath provided two larger Forms of Prayer; The first of which is principally designed for the practice of that advice of S. Paul, who beseeches us by the Mercies of God to present our Bodies a living Sacrifice, holy and acceptable to God, as our reasonable Service, Rom. xii. 1. Upon which account the Fathers esteemed it one great part of this Office to dedicate our selves to God; and this Prayer is the direction for doing that Duty, which is very seasonable to be done just now: For since Christ hath put us in mind of his infinite love in giving himself for us, and in this Sacrament hath given himself to us, and we have chosen him for our Lord, and solemnly vowed our selves his Ser­vants; now it is most just and reasonable we should give our selves wholly to him in this proper and pertinent Form.

A Form of Vowing and Dedicating our selves to God after our receiving the Communion.

§. 1. O Lord our heavenly Father,] who hast fed us at thy Table as thy Children, [we] esteem it our honour to be accounted [thy humble Servants,] and in obedience to thy Commands, have endeavoured to Praise thee for that Sacrifice for Sin which Jesus did offer on the Cross; and we do most heartily and [entirely de­sire] thee of [thy Fatherly goodness] to pass by our many failings and infirmities in this Duty, and [mercifully to accept this our] Service, which is an Eucharistical [Sacrifice of Praise and Thanksgiving] for the Sufferings of thy dear Son: We have great reason to remember his Passion with Joy and Praise, because of the mani­fold Benefits which he purchased for us thereby: And [we most humbly beseech thee,] who hast appointed this Sacrifice to be made for us, and in­stituted this Sacrament to offer and convey the Benefits thereof unto us, that thou wilt [Grant] we may find and feel the blessed effects thereof, so [that by the Merits and Death of thy Son Iesus Christ,] which we have now set forth, as the moving and meritorious Cause, [and through Faith] in his [Blood] shed for us, as the instru­mental Cause; Both [we] who have now Com­municated, [and thy whole Church,] for which he laid down his Life, [may receive] from thy Mercy the full and free Pardon and [remission of all [Page 327] our Sins,] with Grace to enable us to resist e­vil and do good, as also Peace of Conscience to comfort us, and the Hopes of Glory to encourage us, with [all other Benefits of his Passion. And] in return to all these inestimable Gifts of thine, we would gladly give back something, that we may at least acknowledge those favours of thine which it is impossible to requite: And thou requi­rest us to give thee our Hearts, and offer up our Bo­dies as a lively Sacrifice unto thee; and truly thou hast highly deserved both, if they were worth infinitely more; but these are all we have to give, and they will become better by being thine: Wherefore [here] at thy Altar, where thy Son hath given himself to us, [we] humbly and sin­cerely [offer and present unto thee, O Lord, our Selves] wholly and entire, even all the Fa­culties of [our Souls, and] all the Members of our Bodies,] solemnly dedicating them, and re­signing them up most absolutely to thy Service, and Vowing them [to be a reasonable, holy, and lively Sacrifice unto thee:] For we are not now to kill and offer any more brute Creatures, as they did under the Law; but we must offer up our Selves to be pure and holy, by abstaining from all Sin, and to be lively and active in every good Work, which is our rational way of owning the Divine Mercies under the Gospel, and justly stiled our reasonable Service: We consecrate therefore our Understandings and Wills, our Affections and Pas­sions, our Senses and all our Powers of Body and Soul, to be employed in thy Commandments for e­ver: O Lord accept us, and take possession of us, that we may never have any other Master. And that we may keep this wise, just, and necessary [Page 328] Vow, we do [humbly beseech thee, that all we who are] engaged thus firmly to be thy Ser­vants, and have now renewed our Covenant with thee, by being [partakers of this holy Com­munion, may be fulfilled,] and throughly re­plenished [with thy Grace and heavenly Bene­diction:] For by the experience of thy Love in granting this Grace to us, we shall not only be en­abled, but encouraged also to perform our Vows, and shall be confirmed in our Purposes of holy Li­ving, so as never more to leave thee nor forsake thee. [And] now, O Lord, [though we be] very [unworthy through our manifold Sins,] and very unfit through our miserable Indispositions, [to offer unto thee any Sacrifice,] either of Praise for our Redemption, or of our own Souls and Bodies, by way of Gratitude for the same; [Yet] we have ventured to do both, and [we be­seech thee to accept this] though it have been done with many Imperfections, because it is [our bounden duty and service:] Thou didst com­mand us, and desiring to please thee, we set about it; accept us therefore, dearest Lord, [not weigh­ing our merits,] by which we can claim nothing, [but pardoning our offences,] which we have sincerely bewailed. Hear us, and grant all these our Requests [through Iesus Christ] whom we have now taken to be [our Lord] and Master, [by whom] as he is our Redeemer and Mediator, [and with whom] as he is thy Son, and very God, [in the Unity of the Holy Ghost,] the third Person of the glorious Trinity, let [all Ho­nour and Glo [...]y be] given [unto thee, O Father Almighty,] both now and [World without end, Amen.]

Sect. III. Of the second Prayer in the Post-Com­munion.

§. 1. FOr the help of Devotion, the Church hath added another Form to be used when we have more than ordinary Comfort in Receiving: For as the other consists chiefly of Vows, so doth this of Praises and Thanksgivings, yet so, as here is a very earnest Prayer for Perseverance, which is highly necessary after the Sacrament. The parts of which Prayer are, A hearty Thanksgiving direct­ed to God the Father; And an humble Petition for his Grace, to make us persevere, and be fruit­ful in good Works.

A Form of praising God, and praying for the Grace of Perseverance after our Receiving the Sacrament.

§. 2. ALmighty and ever-living God,] whose Power is infinite, and thy Mercy ever­lasting, we daily praise thee for our ordinary Food, but oh! how much greater a Favour is it that thou feedest our hungry and fainting Souls? Wherefore [we most heartily thank thee,] and bless thee in the highest manner we can, [for that thou] who art the glorious King of Heaven, [hast [Page 330] vouchsafed to feed] us, mean and miserable Creatures, at thy own Table, the Divine Food whereof is made to [us who have duly recei­ved these holy Mysteries,] according to our Saviours Institution, [the spiritual Food of the most precious Body and Blood of thy Son our Saviour Iesus Christ:] we have bewailed and renounced our evil ways, remembred our Re­deemers Passion, and laid hold by Faith on the Merits of a crucified Saviour; so that we doubt not but thou hast made us verily and indeed to be partakers of the Body and Blood of Christ, which is a mighty Favour in it self; and infinitely greater, because, O Lord, [thou] who wert angry at us for our sins, [dost assure us thereby of thy favour and goodness towards us;] For if thou hadst not been reconciled to us by the Sacrifice of Christs Death, we could never have been admit­ted to sit at thy Table, and to eat of this Peace-offering, yea, to be fed with this heavenly Food: This, O Lord, is a pledge that thou art reconciled to us; and though by our sins we deserved to be cut off from the Body of Christ, yet thy feeding us among thy own Children, shews, [that we are] very true and living [Members incorporate into the Mystical Body of thy Son, which is the blessed Company of all faithful People;] for we have now been made to drink into one Spirit, and received of that same Grace which quickens e­very good Christian, and so we have now an Inter­est in their Prayers and Priviledges. [And] as they who are thy Children by Grace, are also Heirs of Glory, so we [are also,] by this Seal of thy Covenant and Promises, [made Heirs through hope of thy everlasting Kingdom;] and though [Page 331] we have not yet the possession thereof, yet we may chearfully expect to enjoy it, because it was purchased for us [by the merits of the most pre­cious Death and Passion of thy dear Son,] here set forth so, as to communicate the Benefits of them to us. These, even these, O Lord, are the infinite and inestimable Blessings conveyed to us in this Sacrament, and we can never sufficiently praise thee for this our Reconciliation to thee, for this Union with thy dear Son, and these Hopes of Glo­ry. But that our Lives, as well as our Lips, may testifie our Joy and Gratitude, [We] who have formerly too often relapsed and broken our Vows, do [most humbly] and earnestly [beseech thee, O heavenly Father,] not to leave us to our selves, for our Enemies are mighty, politick, and watchful, and we are weak, and apt to be deceiv­ed: Lord, thou hast put us into a happy estate, we now enjoy Peace, our Faith is confirmed, our Hope revived, and our Resolutions seem firm, we are united to a blessed Society here, and hope to be with them in Heaven hereafter; do thou there­fore [so assist us with thy Grace, that we may continue in that holy Fellowship,] by living as thy Saints have lived in Innocence and Purity, in Mortification and Abstinence, in Charity and De­votion, in Meekness and Patience; and because they by this quickning Grace have all been exercised in well-doing, grant that we by the same Grace may [do all such good works as thou hast pre­pared for us to walk in,] and may persevere and go on in them to the end of our lives, so shall we still retain the Grace and the Comfort, the Joy and the Hopes we have now received, so shall we own the goodness of God now shewed to us, and engage [Page 332] him still to shew us more favour, till we come to receive the full Rewards of our Piety in eternal Glory. Grant us therefore this necessary and ad­vantageous Grace of Perseverance, [through] the Intercession of [Iesus Christ our Lord, to whom with thee,] O Father Almighty, [and the Holy Ghost,] for all the Blessings and Benefits of this most holy Sacrament, let there [be] ascribed [all honour and glory,] by us now, and by all thy Saints and Servants in Heaven and Earth, [world without end, Amen.]

Sect. IV. Of the Gloria in Excelsis, or the Ange­lick Hymn.

§. 1 AFter such high favours and such great bles­sings received, it is fit and necessary we should express our joy; and how can we welcome our Saviour into our hearts more properly than by the Hymn which the Angels welcomed him into the World withal, Luke ii. 14. and by that descant the Primitive Doctors made upon it, to sute it to this Ordinance, where it hath been sung in all Churches from the beginning.

An Act of joy and Thanksgiving after our Receiving.

§. 2. WE will welcome thee O blessed Jesus into our Souls, as the Angels welcomed thee into the World, and with them will joyfully call to mind, how this Redemption wrought by thee, hath procured [Glory to God,] who dwells [on high,] from Men and Angels, and by reconciling us to God and to one another it hath made [on Earth] a blessed [Peace;] yea it hath begotten in the offended Judge of all the World, [good will toward Men,] so that he now will remit their Sins, and give them his Grace and Glory also: And now Holy Father, who art thus infinitely kind to us, [we praise thee] for contriving, [we bless thee] for accepting this great Propitiation, [we worship thee] with our bodies, [we glorifie thee] with our Spirits, for thou hast created and redeemed both, [we give thanks unto thee,] from the bottom of our hearts, [for thy great glory] which thou hast gotten in Heaven and Earth by this wonderful work, [O Lord God, Heavenly King,] who hast subdued our Enemies, [O God the Father Almighty,] who hast designed and brought to pass this great Salvation, we will ever magnifie thy Name: We also adore thee, [O Lord] our Sa­viour, confessing with joy that thou art [the only begotten Son] of God, [Iesu Christ] our a­nointed Redeemer, [O Lord] we believe thou art very [God,] yet in love to us thou didst be­come [Page 334] Man, that thou mightest be Sacrificed as the [Lamb of God,] and slain for our offences; and though thou didst then endure the divine wrath for us, yet still thou art that dearly beloved [Son of the Father,] in whom he is well-pleased: To thee therefore we make our Supplication; O thou [that takest away the Sins of the] whole [World,] and so hast merit enough for us, [Have Mercy upon us,] and pity our Misery: And a­gain we beseech thee [thou that takest away the Sins of the World,] by the love thou didst then shew us, [Have Mercy upon us,] and pardon our Sins; And again we importune thee, [thou that takest away the Sins of the World,] and makest their persons and services to be accepted, [receive our Prayer] for Pardon and acceptance; Yea, once more we do intreat thee, [O thou that sittest at the right hand of the Father,] using thy all-powerful interest there for us, [Have mercy upon us,] and make our Peace in Heaven: And there is just cause why we should thus pray to thee, and praise thee O blessed Jesus; [For thou only art holy,] in and from thy self, and thou on­ly canst make us so, [Thou only art the Lord] who hast bought us, [Thou only O Christ with the Holy Ghost,] the Comforter, [art most high] in the Favour, and a partner [in the Glo­ry of God the Father,] constituting that holy and undivided Trinity, which is blessed for ever, [Amen.]

Sect. V. Of the Final Blessing.

§. 1. OUr Lord took his leave of his Disciples with a Blessing, Luke xxiv. 50. and the Blessing he left them was his Peace, John xiv. 27. the Form of giving which is set down by S. Paul, Philip. iv. 7. from whom the Primitive Church took this Form, ordering the Bishop (if present) to pronounce it, and all to stay till this Blessing was given, which is a Solemn desire that the Peace of God may remain in us, and his Blessing be upon us for ever, and may be thus paraphrased: You who have worthily received this Holy Communion, have made your Peace with God and one another, may therefore [The peace of God] now impar­ted to you, [which passeth] and excelleth all other gifts, yea, and far surpasseth [all understanding] to comprehend it, be so sweet and pleasing to you, as to guard and [keep] all [your hearts and minds] from ever desiring any base and sinful pleasures; and as you have had great satisfaction and delight in this prospect of God, and his Love, may the comfort thereof make you desirous to en­crease [in the knowledge,] and continue in the [love of God and of his Son Iesus Christ,] whom we have all taken for [our Lord,] and only Saviour: And let [the blessing of God Almighty,] which you all so much need and desire, even the Blessing of God [the Father] for your preservati­on, of God [the Son] for your redemption, [Page 336] [and] of God [the Holy Ghost] for your sancti­fication, [be amongst you] and upon you all at present, [and] let them [remain with you al­ways] for your everlasting comfort and advan­tage, and may the Almighty fulfil this Blessing we have given in his name, [Amen,] Be it so.

There are six other Prayers in the end of this Office, which our brevity will not allow us to ex­plain, and their clearness is such as not to require it; So that we shall only give you the Titles of them, that you may know on what occasion to use them, and doubt not but if you bring devout Affections to them, they may be useful to you, and accepted by your Heavenly Father: The First is a Prayer For safety in all worldly changes: The Second, For the preservation of our Bodies and Souls: The Third, For a Blessing on Gods Word: The Fourth, For Di­rection and success in all our Ʋndertakings: The Fifth, For excusing the defects of our former Prayers: The Last, For the acceptance of all the rest of our Supplications.

The End of the Communion Service.

THE OFFICE OF BAPTISM.

The Introduction.

§. 1. THe Matter chosen by Christ for this Sa­crament is Water, which is very fit to signifie his washing our Souls from Sin, because it hath a natural quality of cleansing, and therefore it was used by Jews and Gentiles, to pu­rifie both their Sacrifices and their worshippers; and in our Saviours time, such as were converted to the Jewish Religion were admitted to it by Baptism, so that he kept the Rite, and advanced it to a spiritu­al use. The Form of Baptism, as to the essential part of baptizing, in the Name of the Father, [Page 338] Son, and Holy Ghost, was instituted by Christ, Matth. xxviii. 19. the rest he left to his Church to appoint; but it is evident the Church did very ear­ly draw up a larger Form, because all Christians do perform this Rite, after the same manner as to the main: The Subjects of Baptism are Infants, or Persons grown up, whence there are three several Offices: First, Publick Baptism of healthful Infants; And since Infants were circumcised, and not excep­ted by Christ, when he instituted Baptism in the place of Circumcision, since they need it to wash them from Original Sin, and were baptized in the Primitive Church, they ought to be baptized now, and to be brought to the Church, that there may be many Witnesses of this solemn Act, and that others may be put in mind of their Vow, as also because thus they are admitted Members of our Religious Assemblies in the proper place. Secondly, When Children are weak, there is a Private and short Of­fice; And since Christ makes this the ordinary means of entring into Heaven, John iii. 5. Parents and Ministers must in this case be very careful to get them baptized, being assured this will wash a­way their Original Sin, and graft them into the Body of Christ, so that if they dye before they have done actual Sin, they are undoubtedly saved; and if this be neglected by the fault of Parents or Ministers, (however Gods infinite Mercy may deal with the Child) they must answer for putting its Salvation on so great a hazard: Now this short Office is good and sufficient if the Child dye, but if it recover it must be brought to Church af­terwards; that the Congregation may be certified it was rightly Baptized, and the Covenant solemn­ly entred into for it. The third Office is for those [Page 339] of riper years, who are converted from being Jews, Turk, Heathens, or from those Sectaries who with those Infidels renounce Baptism: These must be well Catechized before they come, and spend some days in Fasting and Prayer to prepare them, be­cause they Answer for themselves, and make the Covenant with their own Mouths, so that their Godfathers are only Witnesses to the Fact, and must be Monitors to them to live according to their Vow.

Sect. I. Of the Preparation before Baptism.

§. 1. THis first part of the Office concerns either the Child or the Sureties: As to the Child, we first enquire if it want Baptism; Secondly, shew the necessity of it in an Exhortation; Thirdly, we pray it may be fitted for it in the Two Collects. First, The Priest asks if this child have been already baptized, because S. Paul saith, There is but one Bap­tism, Ephes. iv. 5. and as we are born, so we are born again but once: Secondly, The Minister be­gins the Exhortation, shewing, 1. What reason there is to baptize this child, viz. because of its being born in Original Sin, Psal. li. 5. and by consequence liable to condemnation, Rom. v. 12. the only way to free it from which, is the baptizing it with Water and the Holy Ghost, John iii. 5. And 2ly, Beseeching all pre­sent, upon this account to pray to God, that while he baptizes this Child with Water, God will give [Page 340] it his holy Spirit, so as to make it a lively member of Christs Church, whereby it may have a title to Remission of Sins. Thirdly, The two Collects fol­low, made by the Priest and all the people for the Child: The first Collect commemorates how God did typifie this Salvation, which he now gives by Baptism, in saving Noah and all his by water, 1 Pet. iii. 21. and by carrying the Israelites safe through the Red Sea, 1 Cor. x. 2. And it declares also how Christ himself by being baptized sanctified Water for remission of Sin: And upon these grounds we pray, that God will by his Spirit cleanse and sancti­fie this Child, that he may be delivered from his wrath, saved in the Ark of his Church, and so filled with Grace as to live holily here, and happily hereafter. The second Collect, after the owning Gods power to help this Child, and to raise him from the death of Sin to the life of righteousness, doth petition him to grant it may receive remis­sion and regeneration, pleading with God to grant this request, by his promise to give to them that ask, that so this Infant may be spiritually cleansed by Gods Grace in its Baptism, and come at last to his Eternal Kingdom, through Christ our Lord, [Amen.]

§. 2. The next part of the Preparation concerns the Godfathers or Sureties, who are 1. Encouraged in the Gospel and its application, with the Thanks­giving; 2. Instructed in the Preface before the Cove­nant; 3. Engaged in the Questions and Answers. The Jews had Sureties at Circumcision, who pro­mised for the Child till it came to Age, Isai. viii. 2. and the Primitive Christians had Sponsors to en­gage for such as were baptized; and since Children [Page 341] cannot make a Covenant themselves, it is charity to appoint (as the laws of Men do,) others to do it for them till they be of Age, and this gives securi­ty to the Church, the Child shall not be an Apostate; provides a Monitor for both the Child and its Pa­rents, to mind them of this Vow, and keep the memory of this New birth, by giving the Child New and spiritual relations, of Godfathers and Godmothers: Now to these the Priest next ad­dresseth, 1. In the Gospel, Mark x. 13. which shews how the Jews believing that Christs Blessing would be very beneficial to young Children, brought them to him in their Arms, and when the Disciples checked them, Christ first declares that Infants, and such as were like them, had the only right to the Kingdom of Heaven, and therefore they had good right to his love and his Blessing, and to all means which might bring them to it, and accordingly he took them in his Arms and blessed them. After this follows the Explication, and applying this Gospel to the Sureties; for if they doubt, here they may see Christs love to Infants, and their right to Heaven and to this means, so that they may firmly believe he will pardon and sanctifie this Child, and grant it a Title to his Kingdom; and that he is well pleased with them, for bringing this Child to his holy Baptism; for he desires that this Infant as well as we, may all come to know and be­lieve in him. Wherefore Thirdly, here is a Thanks­giving to be offered up by all, Beginning with prai­sing God for calling us into his Church, where we may know him and obtain the Grace to believe, it being very proper for us to bless God for our be­ing Christians, when a New Christian is to be made; And then follows a Prayer, that we who are [Page 342] Christians may grow in Grace, and that this Infant may receive the Spirit in order to its regeneration and Salvation. After which form of Devotion, Fourthly, there is a Preface to the Covenant, wherein the Godfathers and Godmothers are put in mind, First, what hath been done already, viz. They have brought the Child to Christ, and begged of him in the Collects to accept it, and Christ hath shewed them in the Gospel, that the Child is ca­pable to receive, and He willing to give it Salvati­on, and the means thereof upon the Conditions required of all Christians, that is, Repentance, Faith and New Obedience. Secondly therefore, they are required to engage in the Name of this Child, till it come of Age, that it shall perform these Conditi­ons required on its part, that it may have a Title to that which Christ doth promise, and will cer­tainly perform on his part. Fifthly, the Engage­ment it self follows, which is very necessary, since Baptism is a mutual Covenant between God and Man, and therefore in the beginning of Christiani­ty, (when the Church consisted chiefly of such as were converted from the Jews and Heathens, after they came to Age,) the parties baptized answered these very same Questions, and entred into these very engagements for themselves, which Infants (who need the benefits of Baptism as much as any) not being able to do, the Church lends them the Feet of others to bring them, and the Tongues of others to promise for them; And the Priest stands in Gods stead to take this security in h s Name; he [demands] therefore of the Sure­ties, First, If they in the Name and stead of this Child will renounce all sinful complyances with the [Devil,] the [World] and the [Flesh,] [Page 343] which tempt us to all kinds of Sin, and so are Gods enemies and ours also, in so high a measure, that unless we vow never to follow and be led by them; we cannot be received into league and friend­ship with God: To this they reply in the singular Number, as if the Child spake by them, [I re­nounce them all.] Secondly, As Philip asked the Eunuch, if he did believe before he baptized him, Acts viii. 37. so the Priest asks, if they believe all the Articles of the Christian Faith, into which Reli­gion they are now to be entred, and therefore they must engage to hold all the fundamental Prin­ciples thereof revealed in Scripture, and compri­zed in the Apostles Creed, and they are to answer, [All this I stedfastly believe.] Thirdly, That it may appear to be their own free act to admit them­selves into this Holy Religion, they are asked if they will be baptized into this Faith, & they answer [That is my desire;] for who would not desire to be a Child of God, a Member of Christ, and an Heir of Heaven? But since these benefits of Bap­tism are promised only to them who live holily, Fourthly, it is demanded if they will keep Gods Holy will and commandments as long as they live, since they now take Christ for their Lord and Ma­ster, and List themselves under his Banner, and re­ceive his Grace in this Sacrament, to renew and strengthen them to keep this Vow? Upon these ac­counts they promise [They will] keep Gods Com­mandments. And now the Covenant is made be­tween God and this Infant; He hath promised it Par­don, Grace and Glory, and is willing to adopt it for his own Child: And this Child by its Sureties hath engaged to forsake all evil ways, to believe all Truth, and to practise all kind of Virtue.

Sect. II. Of the Administration of Baptism.

§. 1. THe Administration of this Ordinance contains, First, Prayers for sanctifying the Child, and the Water: Secondly, The Form of Baptizing instituted by Christ himself: Third­ly, The solemn Receiving it into the Church. The first Prayers are four short Collects for the Child, that it may receive the Benefits of Baptism. First, That the evil inclinations which it draws from old Adam may be mortified, and that it may put on those virtuous dispositions called the New Man. Secondly, That the Concupiscence, and all Carnal Affections may be destroyed, so as the ef­fects of the Spirit may live and grow in it. Third­ly, That it may have strength to triumph over the Enemies it hath renounced. Lastly, That it may grow in Grace, and be indued with all kinds of Vir­tue. Secondly, The Prayer of Consecration for sanctifying the Water (which was always made in the Primitive Church,) contains, First, A Preface commemorating how Baptism was one of those Sa­craments of Remission, typified by the Blood and Water shed out of our Saviours side on the Cross; and How it was instituted after his Resur­rection by his own express Command; the words of which Divine Institution were anciently believ­ed to consecrate the Water, and to oblige the most holy Author to joyn his Spirit to the Water, to make it effectual to that Regeneration which [Page 345] is the inward part of this Sacrament. And since the Spirit is necessary as well as the Water, the whole Congregation joyns in beseeching him by whose Commission we do this, to sanctifie the Water for the washing away of Sin, and so to let his Spirit go along with the outward part, that it may not only seal the Childs Pardon, but convey Grace into it, to make it a living Member of Christ, and a Child of God, and to keep it in that estate for ever. Thirdly, The holy Actions follow; First, Naming the Child with a New Name, answerable to the New Nature it here receives, a Christian Name, as a Remembrance of that Religion it is entred in­to, given by the Godfather as a Memorial of its new Relations which it gets in Baptism. Second­ly, The Form by which it is Baptized, being of Christs own inditing, [In the Name of the Fa­ther, the Son, and the Holy Ghost:] And as the Apostles only had Commission to do this, so with us only lawful Ministers may Baptize. And since the belief of the Trinity is the peculiar and distin­guishing Article of the Christian Religion, there­fore Christ appoints they shall be made Christians by being thus baptized in the Name of the three Persons of the Trinity: And while we pronounce Christs words, we dip the Child in Water, or (which Custome, and the coldness of our Climate, hath now made almost necessary) Sprinkle it, because the Efficacy of the Sacrament depends not on the quantity of Water, but on the Grace of God, which we believe to be conveyed by this Divine Sacrament, and therefore say [Amen.] Fourth­ly, Having thus baptized it as Christ appointed, we first declare the Child is a Christian, and a Member of the Church, into which holy Society [Page 346] the Minister (as a Steward of Gods Family) doth solemnly receive it, (and of old this was done with a kiss of Charity:) And for the clearer manife­station that this Child now belongs to Christ, we fet his Sign and peculiar Mark upon it, signing it with the Sign of the Cross on the Forehead (a Cu­stom by which the Primitive Christians declared what Religion they were of;) For Christians only believe in a crucified Saviour, and therefore the Cross was the Badge of a Christian, and that in which S. Paul gloried: And though the Papists have abused this to Superstition, yet that ought not to hinder us from restoring it to its first inno­cent use, viz. To be a Token that this Child shall confess the Faith of Christ crucified, and to be the Souldiers Badge, to declare it is now listed under Christs Banner, and hath engaged to fight very couragiously against all its spiritual Enemies, under that victorious Leader: And now that it is thus listed and signed with Christs cognizance, we hope it will continue his faithful Servant and Soul­dier to its lifes end, and we pray it may do so. Amen.

Sect. III. The Consequents after Baptism.

§. 1. AFter the Child is baptized, we conclude all with, First, Declaring the Benefits of Baptism; Secondly, Praying the Child may receive [Page 347] them; Thirdly, Directions to the Sureties in or­der thereto. First, There is an Exhortation to the Congregation, grounded on the benefits which this Infant (who being guilty of no actual sin, could put no bar to Gods Grace) hath received: So that we doubt not it is inwardly regenerate, and hath obtained a new Principle of Grace which will al­ways guide it in holy ways, (if it do not afterwards wickedly resist it.) And secondly, We are sure it is by this holy Rite made a lively Member of Christs Church. Wherefore the Priest exhorts all present, First, To praise God for these Benefits, and then to pray it may lead the rest of its life answerable to Gods Mercy, and its own Vows. Secondly, The Priest begins these Devotions, and now can say with, and for this Infant, being a Child of God as well as any of us, [Our Father, &c.] And then follows a Prayer, wherein we, First, Give thanks for the Benefits of Baptism, blessing God, first, for Regenerating this Child with his holy Spirit; Se­condly, for Adopting it in Christ Jesus to be one of his own Children, and consequently making it an Heir of Glory: And thirdly, in order to the ob­taining thereof, that he hath by this Rite made it one of the Members of his Church, one of that Body whereof Christ is the Head. And because it is possible by its wilful Apostasie it may lose these Benefits, Secondly, We pray for Grace to assist it in the whole course of its life, so that what is signi­fied by this Rite, may indeed be fulfilled, even that it may forsake all evil, and as it were be dead to all the motions of it, and may be lively and active to all good, so that it may have the benefit of Christs Death and Resurrection, and with all faithful Chri­stians may come to inherit the Kingdom of Glory: [Page 348] Amen. Lastly, We turn to the God-fathers and God-mothers, and we mind them, First, What they have done in entring this Bond to God in the Childs Name; so that it hath promised by them to renounce all Evil, to believe all saving Truth, and to live in all Holiness. Secondly, We shew them what they must do, viz. sincerely endeavour the Child may keep this Vow, by bringing it to Church to be instructed by Preaching and Catechizing in the Nature and Benefits of this Baptismal Vow, and by private endeavours with the Parents and the Child, that it may have a virtuous Education. And the reason of this is given also, viz. Because the de­sign of Baptism is to make us holy, and to oblige us to live agreeable to our Religion, and to walk ac­cording to the Example of Christ in all Purity and Virtue: And though they shall not be condemned, who use their best care to make this Child keep its Vow, though it should fall away; yet it is a great fault in Sureties not to look after those they have engaged for, and an occasion that some fall into e­vil Principles, others into wicked Practices; which may be prevented in many, if the Sureties will do their Duty, especially if they will labour, first, to fit them for Confirmation, and then bring them to it, for then the Child enters the Bond in its own Name, and the Surety is discharged from all but the Duty of Charity.

OF THE CATECHISM.

§. 1. THe Catechising of Children is enjoyned by God, Deut. vi. 7. Prov. xxii. 6. Ephes. vi. 4. and was always practised by pious men, Gen. xviii. 19. 1 Chron. xxviii. 9. 2 Tim. i. 5. And it is Christs especial Charge to Ministers, to feed his Lambs, John xxi. 15. The Jewish Doctors took care of this, Luke ii. 42. And in the Christian Churches there was a peculiar Officer who was the Catechist, and all new Converts, who were to be baptized at Easter, were Catechized all the Forty days of Lent: But since we have few such now, and generally bap­tize Infants, who cannot at that time understand the Covenant which is entred into, therefore we are bound to take more care to make them understand it afterward, by instructing them in the Catechism of the Church; which is drawn up according to the Primitive Forms, by way of Question and Answer, Acts 8.17. 1 Pet. iii. 21. being not a large System of Divinity to puzzle the Heads of young Begin­ners, but like those of the Ancients, a short and full Explication of the Baptismal Vow; Teaching them, First, What their Baptismal Vow is, viz. What were the Benefits promised on Gods part [...] [Page 350] Quest. I. II. And what were the Duties promised on their part, to renounce all Evil, to believe all Divine Truth, and to keep Gods Commandments, Quest. III. together with their grateful owning this Covenant, Quest. IV. Secondly, The parts of the Vow are explained; First, As to the Mat­ter of them, in the repeating and expounding the Creed, Quest. V. & VI. and the repeating and ex­plaining the Ten Commandments, Quest. VII. VIII. IX. X. XI. Secondly, As to the Means to enable them to keep them, which are Prayer and the Holy Sacraments: And the Duty of Prayer is taught them in the Lords Prayer and the Explica­tion thereof, Quest. XII. XIII. The due use of the Sacraments is taught them, first in general, as to their Number, Nature, and Necessity, Quest. XIV. XV. Secondly in particular, Baptism, Quest. XVI.—XX. and the Lords Supper, Quest. XXI. —XXV. This is all that is absolutely neces­sary to be known in order to Salvation, and all that the Primitive Church did teach their Cate­chumens. And if Children be but made to repeat this perfectly, and understand it fully, they will en­crease in knowledge as they grow in years: Where­fore the Ministers are obliged to Catechize every Sunday, and especially in Lent, and not barely to hear Children and Servants repeat the words, but by plain and familiar Discourses make them know the sense. Parents also and Masters are bound by the Laws of God and the Church to teach them privately, and send them to the Church to make publick Answers, and to be in­structed. And Children and Servants (even all who have not been on good grounds admitted to the Communion) of whatever Age they be, [Page 351] ought to come willingly as they love their own Souls: For this is the Method appointed by Christ and his Church, to lay the Foundation of Saving Knowledge, which is the first step toward Hea­ven. And this is the best way to secure them a­gainst all evil Principles of Popery and Faction, and all wicked practices of Debauchery and Dis­honesty; yea, without this all Preaching and o­ther kinds of Instructing are in vain: Therefore let neither preaching, nor any other thing be pre­tended to exclude this great and necessary Duty of Catechizing, which is the only means to make many sound and pious Christians.

OF CONFIRMATION.

§. 1. WHen Children are well instructed in the Vow made for them at Bap­tism, by the Church Catechism, it is then required they should take it upon themselves, and be confirmed by the Bishop: Which holy Rite of Confirmation, though it were not instituted by Christ, and so be not properly a Sacrament, yet the Apostles did lay their Hands on such as had been before Baptized by an Inferior Minister, Acts viii. 14, 15, 16, 17. and Chap. xix. 6. which cu­stom the Primitive Church imitated in the Bishops laying on their Hands, with holy Prayers, upon Per­sons that had been baptized; which was believed to convey the Holy Spirit to them for enabling them to keep their Vow. And this holy Rite is still retained in the Eastern and Western Churches, and in all Protestant Churches where they have Bi­shops. And we have an excellent Office for it, containing, First, The Preparation for it by a se­rious Admonition to all that come to it, a Solemn Engagement from the Parties to keep their Vow, with some Acts of Praise and Prayer suited to the Occasion. Secondly, The Rite it self consists of [Page 353] The Ceremony, which is Laying on of the Bishops Hands, and his Benediction. Thirdly, The Office is concluded with Prayers; general, as the Lords Prayer; and peculiar to the Occasion, as the two Collects: And with a final Blessing.

§. 2. The Person who doth Confirm is a Bishop, to which Order the Ancient Church did always re­serve the dispensing this Rite, because the Apostles only did this, Acts viii. 14. and therefore the Bi­shops are highly obliged to take care that all in their Dioceses, who need and desire it, may not want the opportunity of coming to it. The persons who are to be Confirmed are all that have been bap­tized from the time they come to years of discre­tion, or however to be able to understand the Na­ture of their baptismal Vow which they are here to take upon themselves; and since we baptize In­fants, it is more necessary to bring them to Confir­mation, and their Godfathers can no way better ac­quit themselves of the Charge they have underta­ken, than by taking care, as the Church in this Ex­hortation requires, that they may learn their Cate­chism, and understand their Vow, and here solemn­ly before God and many witnesses, renew it in their own Name. For Secondly, The Bishop doth par­ticularly enquire, if they do here in Gods presence, and before all the Congregation renew that solemn Vow in their own Names made at their Baptism; and if they do engage to perform and do what was promised for them by their Sureties: To which they must every one answer with great Reverence and serious consideration that They do. Thirdly, The Bishop and the Priests that are present begin their Devotions, encouraging the parties who have [Page 354] promised this, by minding them that they shall have help from him that made Heaven and Earth, Psal. cxxiv. 7. And praising God for bringing these per­sons into so blessed a Condition, Psal. cxiii. 2. Fi­nally, Desiring him to hear the Prayers now to be made for them. Fourthly, There is a larger Form of Prayer made by the Bishop, wherein he first ac­knowledges Gods Mercy in granting them Rege­neration and Pardon of their Sins in their Baptism: And now that they are to exercise that Warfare they then engaged themselves to, He prays for a larger Supply of Gods Holy Spirit with its seven­fold Gifts, Isa. xi. 2. so that they may be made so wise as to understand their Duty, and so strong as to perform it, desiring they may by his Ministry have these gifts conveyed to them now, and by their diligent improving of them, keep them for ever.

§. 3. Being thus prepared, the Rite it self is now to be Administred by the Ancient Ceremony of Laying the Bishops Hand on the Head of each Person, used by the Apostles as the means of con­veying the Holy Spirit, Acts viii. 17. whence the whole Office is called Laying on of Hands, Heb. vi. 2. (yet the Papists omit this Apostolical Cere­mony, and use the Anointing with Chrism, which came later into the Church) The Bishop also gives a solemn Blessing to every one, Desiring God to defend that Person with his Heavenly Grace, from forsaking his Faith, or breaking Gods Command­ments, that is, to take him for his own, and seal him with his Spirit, so that he may ever after look on him as one of his own Children: And praying that he may daily increase in grace and grow wiser [Page 355] and better, until he be fit for that Heavenly King­dom which God hath promised to him in Baptism: And this Prayer thus offered up by a Holy Man, and one of the Chief Officers of Christs Church, shall be effectual to the obtaining of the Spirit for all that have duly prepared themselves, and do sin­cerely make and renew this Vow. And now the Bishop concludes the Office, first with the usual Form, desiring God may be with them to assist them in these Prayers, as they also desire he may be with his Spirit who is to offer them; calling also upon God as the common Father of all that are confirm­ed and so in Covenant with him: To which is joyn­ed the Proper Collect, beginning with a Preface which confesseth, that this good desire and resolu­tion of these persons to keep their Vow came from God, and by him they must have Grace acceptably to perform it. And then here are Petitions for them, First, That as the Bishops Hand was over them, so the good hand of his Providence signified thereby, may be ever over them to preserve them: Second­ly, That the Holy Spirit now imparted to them by this Holy Rite, may be ever with them, the blessed Effect of which is here declared to be, that this will make them understand Gods Word, and enable them to obey it, so that at the end of their Lives they may be certainly saved through Jesus Christ; To whom with the whole Trinity, for these means of Salvation we offer up our Praises and Acknow­ledgments: And to this is added a Devout Collect out of the Communion-Service, that God who hath sealed these his Vowed Servants with his Spirit, will direct, sanctifie, and govern their Souls and Bodies in the ways of his Laws, so that they may ever be holy, safe, and happy. Finally, the Office [Page 356] is concluded with the Bishops Blessing, who now in the Name of God wishes the blessing of the Fa­ther, Son, and Holy Ghost, may be now bestow­ed on you, and remain upon you for ever. Thus our Church appoints this Necessary and Pious Of­fice shall be done; And the due Administration thereof would highly conduce to make the bene­fits of Baptism more visible, to encrease know­ledge and piety in the Younger Sort, and to secure them from being seduced by Papists or Sectaries; it would make the Church to flourish and be at U­nity, and convey mighty blessings to all that reve­rently and devoutly receive it: Wherefore as the Bishops are ready to do their Part, let all that want it be willing and very desirous to come, and let Pa­rents and Masters, and especially Godfathers and Godmothers encourage them to come to it, and la­bour to fit them for it, That it may be done to Gods Glory and their Comfort.

The End of the Third Part.

PART IV. OF THE OCCASIONAL OFFICES.

Partition I. OF MATRIMONY.

The Introduction.

§. 1. MAnkind is naturally inclined to So­ciety, and the Bond as well as the Foundation of all Societies is Mar­riage, which ought to be made Sacred and adopted [Page 358] into Religion, because it is the Interest of Man­kind it should be inviolable: Wherefore our Church appoints, First, That none but a Lawful Minister shall tye these Bonds, for God himself married the first Man and Woman, and the Cove­nant is made to him, and the Minister is Gods Re­presentative, to take the Securities and bless the Parties in Gods Name, for which cause the Primi­tive Christians did not account it a Lawful Mar­riage unless it were celebrated by a Lawful Mini­ster; and the Laws of this and all other Christian Nations affirm the same thing. Secondly, Our Church allows no clandestine Marriages, for it or­ders that the Bans (that is the Decree) of Matri­mony shall be published three several days in the Church before the Marriage be celebrated; a Cu­stom as ancient as the days of Tertullian, and used in the Protestant Churches abroad as well as here, and is designed to prevent all Objections that might be made in vain, when once the Bonds are tyed: and if this were duly observed, no Children could rash­ly marry without their Parents consent: No Ince­stuous Marriages could be made, nor could any break their Contracts by treacherous forsaking those to whom they had engaged themselves; from whence come innumerable Mischiefs, where the Marriage is huddled up in secret, to the Parties as well as to their Friends and Families: So that what Priest soever consents to such secret Marri­ages, our Canons order him to be suspended for three years. Thirdly, for better security against Clandestine Marriage, the Church Orders that all Marriages shall be made in the Day-time, for those who intend Honourably and Honestly, need not fly the Light: And since the Parties are most serious [Page 359] in the morning, it is appointed that it shall be cele­brated between the hours of Eight and Twelve; and of Old it was required, the Bridegroom and Bride should be Fasting when they made this Reli­gious Vow in Gods Presence, and by that means they were safe from being made uncapable by Drink of making a wise and voluntary Choice in this great and weighty Affair. There are also some Times which are set apart for Extraordinary Devo­tion, viz. From Advent-Sunday, till a Week after Epiphany; from Septuagesima-Sunday, till a Week after Easter; and from Ascension-day, till Trinity-Sunday; which some old Canons and the Custom of this Nation reckon Times prohibited for Mar­riage: The frequent Returns and long Continuance of which Times give the Parties more space for Consideration and good Advice. Fourthly, And that this Holy Rite may be still more solemn, it is expresly required that the Marriage be celebrated in the Church, the place of Gods Special Presence, before whom they make this Religious Covenant; and the Sacredness of the Place should make them more Reverent in entring into it, and more Careful in keeping of it. For the better assurance where­of, Lastly, It is enjoyned to be done in the Pre­sence of their Friends and Neighbours, who ought to be there, to testifie their Consent unto it, to be continual Witnesses of it, and to joyn with the Ho­ly Man in Prayers for a Blessing on it: For which End our Church hath provided a most Proper, Pi­ous and Judicious Form; consisting of, First, The Preparation, by instructing the whole Congregati­on, and charging the Parties to declare all known Impediments: Secondly, The Solemnization, by asking their Mutual Consent, joyning their Hands, [Page 360] plighting their Troth to each other, and confirm­ing it by the Pledge of a Ring: As also the Priests Ratifying this Covenant, by praying for a Blessing on it, publishing the Validity of it, and pronoun­cing his Benediction over the Parties. Thirdly, The Conclusion of the Office, by Praises in the Psalms, by Prayers in the Collects, and finally, by instructing them in their Duty out of Gods Word.

Sect. I. Of the Preparation.

§. 1. TO prevent that vain and loose Mirth, too frequent at these Solemnities, The Church begins this Office with a grave and awful Preface, which, if it be considered, is enough to make the Parties and all the Congregation very Serious: For it admonishes them, First, In what Place they are, viz. [In the Sight of God,] who is most espe­cially present in the Church, and all wanton Beha­viour in that Place is no less than Profaneness: They are also (or ought to be) in the presence [of the Congregation] who are come to bear wit­ness to this Religious Contract. Secondly, They are desired to consider the End of their coming thi­ther, which is [to joyn these Persons in Holy Matrimony,] to do a Holy and Important Work, in a Sacred Assembly; and therefore all that are present ought to consider well what they are about [Page 361] to do: And for their Assistance, this Preface in­structs them in three very necessary Points relating to Matrimony: First, as to the Nature of it, That it is [an honourable Estate,] highly esteemed by all wise Lawgivers, and encouraged with divers Privi­ledges by all good Laws. Secondly, As to the In­stitution of it, [It was instituted by God] him­self, Genes. ii. 24. who made the very First Marri­age, and blessed the Parties, even Adam and Eve, who were married before the Fall, to shew that Marriage hath nothing in it of Impurity, but was appointed [in the time of Mans Innocency,] and would have been used if we had yet lived in Pa­radise; yea further, the Honour of this Estate ap­pears in being made use of in Scripture to signifie to us [the mystical Vnion between Christ and his Church,] Ephes. v. 32. And in that Christ himself, though he lived in the State of Virginity, yet was [present at a Marriage in Cana of Ga­l lee] and [wrought his first Miracle there,] Joh. ii. 1, 2. Yea, S. Paul plainly affirms, That Marriage is Honourable among [all men,] Heb. xiii. 4. Wherefore we ought to have an high Opinion of, and a great Esteem for Matrimony, as being an Or­dinance of God the Father, an Estate much respect­ed by God the Son, and highly commended by the Holy Ghost in the Mouths of the Apostles: And therefore, Secondly, This Preface shews the Manner how it must be undertaken: 1. Negative­ly, [not unadvisedly,] rashly [and lightly,] without considering the Vow to be made, the Per­son that is chosen, or the Duties belonging to this Estate; nor [wantonly, to satisfie our carnal Lusts like brute Beasts] void of Reason, for Marriage is designed to subdue those bruitish Affe­ctions, [Page 362] and to teach us to confine those Desires within the bounds of Necessity, Reason, and Re­ligion. Wherefore affirmatively, it ought to be undertaken [reverently,] with due regard to so Divine an Ordinance; [discreetly,] and through­ly weighing the case with themselves; [advised­ly,] taking the Counsel of their Friends; [so­berly,] with purposes of Chastity and Moderation, [and in the fcar of God,] praying for his Dire­ction and Blessing. This is the manner how we must undertake this great work. And Thirdly, We are here Taught [the ends for which it was or­dained,] and are admonished [duly to consider] the same. 1. For [the procreation of Children,] that since Sin hath made all persons mortal, the World might be peopled and the Church continued in this regular way of Gods appointing, and that Fami­lies may be upheld, and every Man may live in his Posterity after his own date of Life be expired. 2. It was ordained for the [bringing up these Children] in the [fear of God,] Ephes. vi. 4. Both Nature and Religion engaging Parents to en­deavour that their own Lawful Issue may be Holy here, and Happy hereafter. 3. It was ordained [for a remedy against Fornication] and all unna­tural and roving Lust, to confine those desires which Nature placed in us for the Propagation of Man­kind, and make them serve that End alone for which they were given us, in such a way as God al­lows, who doth not deny us the liberty of Marri­age, but forbids the satisfaction of our Desires in any sinful way, 1 Cor. vii. 2. Hebr. xiii. 4. For those Methods would pollute us, but this keeps us [un­defiled members of Christs Body.] 4. It was ordained [for the mutual society, help, and [Page 363] comfort, that one ought to have of the other] in all Estates: God saw it was not good for Man to be alone, Gen. ii. 18. and therefore he contrived he should have one constant and individual Compa­nion of his Joys and Sorrows, who having the same Interest, might encrease the Comfort of his Pro­sperity, and help to lighten the Burthen of his Ad­versity, and make him easie in both Estates. Lastly, upon all these Considerations, since Marriage is so Useful and Honourable a state of Life, and [these persons] come now [to be joyned] therein for the whole time they shall live together, we should take all care that it be not done in an Evil Manner, and therefore the Priest charges the whole Congrega­tion, [if they know any just cause] why they may not be [lawfully joyned] together, they do now declare it, before this Holy Bond be tyed; for it will be in vain to make any Objections after­ward: Now they may speak and prevent their Mar­riage if they know it to be in any point contrary to Gods Law; but if no Objections be made, then the Priest is to proceed.

§. 2. The Charge to the Persons to be joyned, is the next thing in the Preparation: And because if there be any Impediment which they conceal from the Priest, they must either live in perpetual Sin, or be separated by an Endless Divorce; therefore the Priest now [Requires and charges] them [both] (who are likely to know best) [as they will answer it at the Day of Iudgment, when all Secrets shall be known, to confess it, if they know any Impediments to this their Marriage:] Some for covetousness of Great Fortunes, others out of a violent and misplaced [Page 364] Affection do choose where by Gods Law they ought not to choose; and lest those who have done this, should conceal that which might hin­der their Desires, it is very necessary to make this Charge so strict. Now the Impediments to a Marriage, reckoned up in the 102 Canon of our Church, are three: 1. A preceding Marriage or solemn Precontract; for God made but one Wife for Adam, and rather connived at Polygamy in the First Ages, than allowed it; and in the Gospel it is plainly forbidden, Matth. xix. 5, 6. 1 Cor. vii. 2. And none can be married to more than one at once, so that if either of them have a Husband or Wife living, they sin grievously in profaning this Ordinance, and this latter Marriage is null: Yea, if they were solemnly contracted with their own and Friends Consent to any other, and for light Causes or for temporal Advantage break that Con­tract, that ought to be confessed as an Impedi­ment to this Marriage, unless the Party to whom they were contracted, release them. 2. The next Impediment is, If the Parties be of near Kindred; God hath forbidden all such to marry, Levit. xviii. and such Marriages are accursed Incest, the Punish­ment whereof is not only the Wrath of God, but a total Separation of the Parties, because this kind of Marriage is Null from the beginning: And if the Civilized Heathen abhorred such Marriages, and believed it brought a Curse on their Posterity, much more should Christians abhor it. 3. The last Impediment is, Want of the Consent of Parents, or Guardians in the case of Minority: For such can­not choose for themselves, and are not of Judg­ment sufficient to fix an Affection for their whole Lives, and may easily be drawn in to marry to [Page 365] their Ruine; and as the Parents give their Chil­dren Estates and Portions, so it is fit they should have a great sway in directing this Choice; and though they do very ill in forcing them to mar­ry where they utterly dislike, yet the Children must believe their Parents are wiser than they, and, as far as they can, submit to their Direction, and it is a Sin in them to marry without their Consent, especially in their Minority: And this is so great a Cross to Parents, that the Church labours to discover and prevent this also, by en­joyning them to confess it. Finally, here is a co­gent Reason why they should declare these Impe­diments now, because otherwise [this Marri­age] would be contrary to [Gods Word,] and so it cannot be expected God should bless it, yea, it is declared to be [unlawful:] So that if they conceal these Impediments, they must answer it at the great Day of Judgment; the Sin will lye at their Door, for denying their Knowledge of these Impediments, and for making a Marriage, illegal and wicked, in which they can have no Comfort, and on which they must expect no Blessing:

Sect. II. Of the Solemnization.

§. 1. THe Impediments being removed, we pro­ceed to the Marriage it self, which be­ing a solemn Compact, we first [ask the mutual Consent of the Parties,] because Consent of the Persons is so Essential, that the Marriage is not good without it: Hence Rebekah's Friends asked her Con­sent, Gen. xxiv. 58. And in the firmest kind of Ma­trimony among the Romans the Parties did mutual­ly ask this of each other, and amongst all Christi­ans the Priest in Gods stead puts this Question, that the Declaration may be made as to God himself: And in our Office, 1. He names the Party to excite his or her Attention, and then shews them the Per­son now to be chosen, [this Man] or [Woman.] 2. He declares in what manner they are to choose her, not as a Concubine, but as a [wedded Wife,] and the Woman must choose this Person as her [wedded Husband,] as constant Companions. 3. He tells them to what End they make this choice, [to live together according to Gods Ordinance,] for continual Cohabitation, Gen. ii. 24. 4. He shews them what Duties they must pay to such as they thus choose: The Man must love his Wife, Ephes. v. 25. and comfort her or cherish her, and use her well, Ephes. v. 29. He must honour her, 1 Pet. iii. 7. and keep her not only in Health but in Sickness, affording her all Necessaries in every Condition, Ephes. 5.29. He must be Faithful to [Page 367] her, not marrying another Wife, nor living in A­dultery with any, but [forsaking all other, keep him only to her;] nor may he be finally divorced, for he must now declare he will keep only to her so [long as they both shall live,] Malach. ii. 14. 1 Cor. vii. 10. And the Wife also is to declare that she will take this Man for her Husband, with all these Conditions and one more, viz. [to obey him,] Colos. iii. 18. Ephes. v. 22, 24. because he is of the worthier Sex, and God hath made him the Head, and he represents Christ, as she doth the Church, and by her observance she will gain such Love from a good Husband, that he will deny her nothing which she can prudently desire. Now both Par­ties should seriously weigh these things, and if they do like the Person with all these Duties and Con­ditions, let them declare their Consent solemnly to the Minister as in Gods Presence, and say, [I will.]

§. 2. The next thing in the Solemnization is, The mutual Stipulation, or the Covenant they make with one another, which is introduced with two very significant Rites: First, The Fathers giving the Woman in Marriage, Luke xvii. 27. 1 Cor. vii. 38. which Custom was used amongst the Romans and the Christians in all Ages, for divers Reasons. 1. Be­cause the weaker Sex is always supposed to be un­der the Tuition of a Father or Guardian, whose consent is necessary to make their Acts valid. 2. This declares that the Parents and Friends agree to this Marriage, and that the Father doth emanci­pate his Daughter, and make her free to engage in her own Name. 3. This also shews the Wo­man doth not seek an Husband, but is given to one [Page 368] by her Friends, following herein their Commands, rather than her own Inclinations, which doth very well sute the Modesty of this Sex. Secondly fol­lows the [joyning of Hands,] which all the World over is a Ceremony signifying the contract­ing Friendship and making Covenants, Prov. xi. 21. 2 Kings x. 15. and hath ever been used in the Covenant of Marriage, Tobit vii. 13. The Father delivers her up to the Priest as it were to commit her to Gods Disposal, and he in Gods Presence joyns their [Right Hands,] because the Right Hand is generally used in plighting our Troth, and engaging our Faith to any person; And having thus delivered them into each others Hands and Power, 1 Cor. vii. 4. the Priest, while they thus give each other their Hands, causeth them to make the mu­tual Stipulation, or solemn Engagement and Vow to each other: He asked the Parties Consent be­fore, and then in words of the Future Tense they promised they would have this Person in Marriage, but that is no more than Espousals, which of old was a different Office from this of Matrimony, and done some Weeks or Months before; but because some cast off their Spouses, before the Marriage was compleated, the Church hath now put the E­spousals and Marriage both into one Office, only there they say, I will; and here, I do take, &c. And nothing can be more solemn and strict than this Covenant; for the Husband first Names him­self, to shew it is his voluntary Act; Secondly, he specifies the Person he hath chosen, and doth 3dly. declare before Almighty God he [doth take her for his wedded Wife,] and that in the Nature of the firmest settlements [to have] and [to hold.] 4thly. And withal he expresseth when he is to begin to [Page 369] have this Right, viz. [from this day] of the Nup­tials and so [forward] during the whole term of their mutual lives. 5. And to take away all Ex­ceptions afterwards that might be pretended for Di­vorce, he doth solemnly promise, First, as to her Mind and Manners, that he will keep her as his Wife, whether she prove [better or worse]: Se­condly, As to her Estate, whether she prove [richer or poorer,] than he imagined or expected: Third­ly, As to her Body, whether she be [in sickness or in health] which come from Gods Hand, and must be born patiently if he visit our Relative with Infirmities, Marriage being designed for mutual Support in Adversity, as well as mutual Comfort in Prosperity. Sixthly therefore he promises [to love and cherish] her, Ephes. v. 25, 29. whatever Estate she be in, or however she prove as to the forementioned Points: And the Wife besides all this adds on her part she will [obey him] that she now chooses for her Head and Husband; and all this they engage to do [till death part them.] For though the Church upon great and weighty Causes may separate married Persons from Cohabitation, yet they cannot permit them to marry again while each other liveth, Rom. vii. 2, 3. Mark x. 2. it be­ing Adultery so to do, 1 Cor. vii. 10, 11. Canons of this Church, Can. 107. Indeed if the Marriage were never rightly made, it may be declared null ab initio: But if it were right made, Death only can make such a Final Dissolution, as to allow a second Marriage. Lastly, to confirm the truth of this Vow and solemn Engagement and of every Particular in it, they do [plight] their [Troth] each to other, that is, [they say] their [Truth to pledge,] and in Gods Presence engage their Ho­nesty [Page 370] and Fidelity for the performance hereof: and therefore they ought well to consider this Vow before they make it, and beware that they never break it.

§. 3. Besides the Pledge of our Truth, there is a visible Pledge also, viz. [The Ring,] which being anciently the Seal by which all Orders were signed, and all choice things secured, the delivery of this was a Sign, the Party to whom it was given was admitted into the nearest Friendship and the highest Trust, so as to be invested with our Autho­rity and allowed to manage our Treasure and other Concerns, Gen. xli. 42. and hence it came to be a token of Love, Luke xv. 22. and was used in Ma­trimony not only among the Jews and Gentiles, but the Christians also, who in Clemens Alexandrinus his time, gave their Spouse a Ring to declare her worthy of the Government of the Family, and thus it hath been used ever since. And we may ob­serve, the Matter of which this Ring is made, is Gold, to signifie how noble and durable our Affe­ction is: The Form is round, as the properest Fi­gure to unite things separated before, and to imply, our respect shall never have an End: The place of it is on the fourth Finger of the left Hand, where the Ancients thought was a Vein which came di­rectly from the Heart, and where it may be always in View; and being a finger least used, where it may be least subject to be worn out: But the main End is to be a visible and lasting Token and Re­membrance of this Covenant, which must never be forgotten; and if in ordinary Bargains we have some lasting thing delivered as an Earnest or Pledge and Memorial, much more is it needful here, and [Page 371] to scruple a thing so prudent and well designed, so anciently and universally used, is so foolish, it de­serves our Scorn rather than our serious Confuta­tion. When the Ring is delivered, the Husband speaks to his Wife, declaring, 1. The general meaning of this significant Token, [with this Ring I thee wed,] that is, This is a Pledge of that Covenant of Matrimony which I just now make with thee. 2. He shews the particular Rights accrewing to her thereby, viz. To share in all the Honours belonging to his Person, which is the meaning of those words [with my Body I thée worship:] And to have an Interest in his Estate, signified in that Phrase, [with all my worldly Goods I thee endow;] and in that ancient U­sage to lay down a Sum of Money on the Book, part of which is the Mans Oblation to God (viz. the dues of the Priest and Clerk) and all the rest is by the Priest delivered to the Wife, to give her livery and seisin, of her Husbands Estate, which though she may not alienate without his Consent, yet she may and ought to have the use of as she hath occasi­on, which is no more than Justice requires, because she hath already endowed her Husband in her Fortune; so that hereafter they are to have all things in common, and the Husband is bound to provide for his Wife according to his Power while he lives, and when he dyes, especially since he makes this solemn Covenant, [In the Name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost,] that is, by his Christianity, and before the Trinity as wit­ness thereto, who if he break it, will be the Aven­ger of this Perjury, for these words, calling God to Witness, turn this Promise into a solemn and sa­cred Oath.

[Page 372]§. 4. The Custom of old was to conclude all Cove­nants with Sacrifices, Gen. xxxi. 54. which being now ceased, we finish this with a Prayer, in which we describe God, to whom we pray, by his Attri­butes and Works. We are mortal, and must mar­ry to repair the decay which is caused by death; but he is an [Eternal God;] we are but Instru­ments, he is [the Creator and Preserver of Mankind,] Rev. iv. 11. we do but contribute to the Body and the Temporal Life of our Children, he [is the Giver of Grace and the Author of Everlasting Life.] Of this God therefore, on this great occasion, we beg [a Blessing upon this Man and this Woman,] who by marrying according to his Rules, have declared that they are [his Servants;] and the Priest, who is Gods Representative, being assured of his great Masters being pleased with Holy Marriage, doth Authoritatively [bless them in Gods Name:] And proposing the Example of a loving, chast and vertuous Pair [Isaac and Rebekah,] who lived most faithfully together, (Isaac keeping him only to this one Wife when he might have had more) He prays, that this Couple may [surely perform and keep this Covenant and Vow] between them made, and ratified by [the] solemn [giving and receiving this Ring,] desiring of God that they [may live in perpetual love and peace,] being dear to each other, and agreeing together so constantly, that there may be no abatement of their Affections, nor any discord happen between them, which will not only be to their great Comfort, but to Gods good Pleasure, because [his Laws] do enjoyn Men and their Wives thus to live together: [Page 373] Wherefore we humbly beg they may as carefully keep this Covenant, as they have solemnly made it, [through Iesus Christ, Amen.]

§. 5. The Covenant being thus made, and a Bles­sing begged on it, the next thing is, The Churches Ratification thereof in the Name of God, who be­ing the Supream Lord, ought to confirm his Ser­vants Marriages: And this is done, First, By de­claring the Authority upon which this Covenant is founded, viz. Upon the Divine Authority, for the Rite is of Gods own Instituting, the Vow hath been made in his Presence, and the Promise made to him and in his Name, wherefore God hath joyned those who are thus married; And we declare in our Saviours Words, Matth. xix. 6. Those whom God hath joyned together, no Man may put asunder: None but God (by death) can untye this holy Knot; which shews there is no Power upon Earth can an­nul a Lawful Marriage: and though for some causes there may be a Separation (which when it is for causes allowed in Gods Law seems to be made by him) yet there can be no final Divorce: And this Declaration shews the Covenant is irreversible, and not to be repealed. Secondly, The Priest publish­eth the Marriage-Covenant, by repeating the man­ner in which it was made, by mutual [Consent] declared, and by a solemn Vow made [in the pre­sence of God] and the [Congregation,] by plighting their Troth [and giving a Ring] as the visible and lasting Pledge thereof, as well as [by joyning Hands:] Therefore he now sets Gods Seal to this Holy and Religious Compact to make it perfect and compleat, [pronouncing them to be Man and Wife together, In the Name of the [Page 374] Father, of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, Amen.] That is, They are joyned rightly, ac­cording to the Christian Rules, and by Gods own Authority, so that the Union is Sacred, Inviolable and never to be dissolved. Thirdly, This Part is concluded with a solemn Benediction; for being made by the Divine Authority and Direction, the Institution being his, the Method his, and he being the Authorizer of, and Witness to the Marriage, the Priest may without scruple pronounce Gods Blessing on the Parties, mentioning the whole Tri­nity in whose Name the Vow was made, and de­siring God to bless them with all good things, [to preserve and keep them] from all Evil, praying that he will be kind and [favourable] to them, giving them such [Grace,] that they may [live] so lovingly and holily together [in this Life,] that when they come into that World where they neither Marry nor are given in Marriage, [they may be both] made Happy, and meet [in everlasting Life, Amen.] This is the Priests Blessing, which is so comprehensive and so effectual, that the whole Office was anciently called, The Bles­sing of the Priest, which happily concludes this Part.

Sect. III. Of the Devotions concluding the Of­fice.

§. 1. TO impress this Religious Covenant still more deeply on the parties Minds, they are to go up and kneel at the Steps of the Altar, and then the Office is finished with Hymns, Prayers, and Exhortations. First, with Hymns or Psalms; For since Joy becomes a Marriage, instead of the Heathens looser Songs, Christians are to rejoyce in Psalms, Jam. v. 13. And here are two very pro­per ones chosen; 1. The cxxviii Psalm, which was composed at first to be an Epithalamium, and is used in this Office, both in the Eastern and We­stern Churches, because it contains the Blessings publick and private which attend Piety in the State of Marriage. Ver. i. shewing the general Be­nefit of living in Gods Fear, viz. They that so fear God as to walk in his Ways, shall be blessed. Ver. ii. beginning with the Particular Branches of this Bles­sing, viz. Such shall be blessed, first, in their own persons, for God will so prosper their Labours, that they themselves shall enjoy the Fruit of them and be happy. Ver. iii. They shall be blessed in their Wife, who is compared to a Vine, which though it be weak and needs a Support, yet being Fruitful, is Ornamental and Profitable to the House which stays it. Ver. iv. They shall be blessed in their Children, who are compared to the Olive Trees [Page 376] planted in the Gardens of Judaea round about their Tables, to shadow and adorn them: So shall the good Mans Children be green and flourishing, they shall be a Credit and a Comfort to him. Ver. v. Advising the married Persons seriously to consider these advantages of Piety, since it is sure they that fear the Lord shall be thus blessed. Ver. vi. Further declaring that their Happiness shall not be confined to their private Families, but the Church and State, Sion and Jerusalem shall be in peace and prosperity all their days. Ver. vii. Yea they shall enjoy both pub­lick and private Felicity; for their own Family shall spread and prosper, and the Nation shall be happy, and they shall long live to see and enjoy the Comfort of both: Which as it ought to engage the married Persons to be very religious, that they may be thus happy, so it ought to oblige us all to give [Glory to the Father, &c.] who hath an­nexed such Rewards to true Piety. 2dly. The lxvii. Psalm is sometimes used, being a Prayer for the Blessing promised in the former Psalm, and the Ar­gument used to obtain it, is taken from the Glory which God will gain thereby: But this was explain­ed before, Part I.

§. 2. To those Acts of Praise we add Supplicati­ons and Prayers, introducing them with that ancient Form, Lord have mercy upon us, and the Lords Prayer, which sanctifies and makes way for all the rest; to which are annexed, the Supplications, chosen out of the Psalms, and put into the form of Re­sponses, that the Friends here assembled may all shew their Love to the Parties by publickly joyning in them. 1. Psalm lxxxvi. 2. We must pray to God [to save] these two, who marrying by his [Page 377] Rules, have declared they [are his Servants, and trust in him] for help. 2. Therefore we pray that he will [send them help] in all good, [and evermore defend them] from all evil, as the effect of these Prayers which they make in this holy [Place,] Psal. xx. 2. 3. Since Satan and his In­struments may strive to sow Discord between them, we beg of God to be [to them a strong Tower,] to secure them when [their Enemies set their Faces] against them, Psal. lxi. 3. Lastly, That these and all the following Prayers may be accepted, we desire, [the Lord may hear our Prayer] and receive our importunate calls for his Help, Psal. lxi. 1. And when we have thus prepared the way, we do apply our selves to the Three Prayers. 1. For Spiritual Blessings. 2. For the great Temporal Blessing of Children. 3. For the fulfilling of that which is mysteriously signified by this Holy Rite. 1. The First Prayer in its Preface sets God before us as the God of [Abraham, Isaac, and Ia­cob,] who were Holy Persons, happy in their Marriages, and Founders of Gods Church by their Issue. The first Petition is for Spiritual Grace, that what they have heard in the first Part of the Office of the Nature and Ends of Marriage, and what they shall hear in the following Exhortation of the Duties of it, [out of Gods Holy Word,] they may remember and practise. The second Pe­tition is for Temporal Blessing, [that God may mercifully] and favourably look on them, and make them as loving to, and happy in each other, as [Abraham and Sara] were, by whose names of Old men used to bless the Married Couple, Gen. xii. 2. Ruth iv. 11. and the end of these two Pe­titions is, [that] by the Spiritual Grace [they [Page 378] may obey Gods Will], and by the Divine Bene­diction [they may be safe under his Protection,] and so may continue [in Gods Love] (who doth thus inwardly and outwardly bless them) [to their lives end]. 2. The Second Prayer is, that [they may be Fruitful] and multiply, which is the End of Marriage, and was the Blessing which God gave at first, and which Men ever since have wished to it, Gen. i. 28. Chap. xxiv. 60. Ruth iv. 11, 12. And here God is described as a [Merciful Lord,] who appointed Marriage as the Remedy for that mor­tality which Sin had brought in; and as that [Hea­venly Father, by whose gift Mankind is en­creased;] For our Parents are but the Instruments, he is the Author of our Being, Psal. cxxvii. 4. To him therefore we pray for his Blessing on [these Persons that they may be fruitful,] for of him Children must be asked, 1 Sam. i. 10. And since it is little comfort to have Children born if they be not brought up in Knowledge and Goodness, we pray [that the] Parents may [live long together] to do this great Work themselves, and not leave it to others who will not take so much Care; and that by their [own living] religiously and [vertu­ously] they may set a good Example to their Children, so that the Children by the Care and Pattern of their Parents [may be] instructed in Religion and trained up in Virtue to Gods [honour] and their Parents comfort; and thus Marriage will become a Seminary to the Church, a Propa­gater of Religion to the Worlds End, and a Re­plenisher of Gods Kingdom. 3. The Last Prayer is made for the accomplishing those Duties signified by the mystery of Marriage; and is brought in with a Preface containing the grounds of our Hope, [Page 379] for it calls to mind, 1. [Gods] Power in [ma­king all things of nothing,] and especially in making so noble a Creature as Man. 2. His Re­gard to Marriage, which was shewed, [in his ta­king the Woman out of Man,] Gen. ii. 21, &c. to declare he would have them near and dear to each other, and in that [he himself] did knit the Holy Band of Matrimony between the first Pair, and declared then that the Marriage Vow should be irrevocable and never to be dissolved. And still further we commemorate how God hath raised the Esteem of Marriage higher in the New Testament, by [consecrating it to signifie the Spiritual Marriage between Christ and his Church,] E­phes. v. 25. All this cannot but make us [Hope,] in the second place, that our Petitions made to him on this Occasion, shall prevail. 2. Therefore we pray, that as the Man in the Mystery represents Christ the Head, so he may after Christs Example [love his Wife] most dearly, so as to deny her no good thing, and to be as careful and tender of her as of [his own Flesh.] And that the Woman, who represents the Church, may [love] her Hus­band, and shew that Love, by being [amiable and courteous] in her Deportment, [faithful] to his Bed and his Counsels, and [obedient] to his Re­quests and Commands, living [quietly] at home, [soberly] as to her self, and [peaceably] with her Neighbours, avoiding ill Company, and [follow­ing] the Example of [Holy and Godly Ma­trons,] so that they may be exceeding happy in one another while they live, and though death part them for a while, that they may both meet and en­joy Gods [Everlasting Kingdom,] through [Ie­sus Christ, Amen.] Finally, these Prayers are [Page 380] concluded with a [solemn Blessing] pronounced in Gods Name by the Priest upon good grounds and with great Authority. Wherein [Almighty God] (who could have made every individual Man out of nothing if he had pleased) is set forth as contriving to propagate Mankind by Marriage, and to that End he created the first Pair [Adam and Eve,] and [he] himself joyned them in [holy ma­trimony:] He therefore is desired [to pour] the heavenly [riches of his Grace] upon this Couple, and [to sanctifie and bless them], so that they may be Holy and Happy, and be beloved by God, and loving to one another [unto their Lives end.] And we may hope he will confirm the Words of his Deputed Servant, and then this Marriage will be truly happy.

§. 3. The Office is concluded with Exhortations taken out of Holy Scripture; The Parties have pro­mised to live together according to Gods Ordinance, wherefore we must teach them what Ordinances and Laws he hath made in this case, for unless they know them they cannot live according to them. So that we do here call upon the Persons now married, and all others in that Estate, and all that intend it [to hear and learn] their Duty as God himself hath laid it down in Scripture: And first we are to shew [the Husbands Duty] to his Wife from these places.

Ephes. v. 25. Though the [husband] be the Head of his Wife, yet he must not rule with rigor, but [love his Wife] as dearly and sincerely as [Christ did love the Church;] and as he [gave his Life for it,] so should the Husband be ready to undergo any danger or difficulty for his Wifes [Page 381] good. Ver. 26. Christs Church did not deserve this Favour of him, he found it not pure nor ami­able, but [sanctified] it by [Baptism,] and con­verted it to the lovely ways of Vertue by [his Word.] Ver. 27. And this he did, [that he might make it a Glorious Church,] free from the [spots] of Guilt or the [wrinkles] of cu­stomary Sins, that it might be fit to share with him in the Glories of his Kingdom; To instruct Hus­bands, if they do not find their Wives good, by Love and endearing Care to make them so. Ver. 28. And that not only in imitation of Christ, but in respect to their own advantage, for now they two are made one, having one Interest: So that to love [our Wives] is really [to love] our selves. Ver. 29. [And no Man] was ever yet so barbarous to [hate his own Flesh,] though sick or sore, and though it were clothed in Rags; but even then [we love and cherish] our own [Flesh,] as Christ doth the Church. Ver. 30. Which Church, since he became incarnate and mar­ried our Nature, is [his Body,] of the same [Flesh and Bones,] and that makes him be so tender over us and bear so much with us, even as we ought to carry it toward our Wives in all their Infirmities, looking on them as part of our selves, they being made by Marriage [one Flesh] with us. Ver. 31. And [for this cause] a [Man] that is married must [leave] his Father who begat him, and his Mother who bare him, and [cleave to his Wife,] and dwell in Unity and Love with her, be­cause God hath declared them to be [One Flesh,] Ver. 32. 'Tis true, this seems strange, that a Man should leave his nearest Friends for a Wife, now mysteriously made one with him; but it is a greater [Page 382] [Mystery] how Christ should leave his Father and his Glory, to be joyned to Mans Nature and be made [One Flesh with us,] of which he hath made Marriage the Emblem and the Type. Ver. 33. [Nevertheless,] whether the Husband can understand the Mystery or no, the Duty is plain, even That every one must love his Wife even as him­self.

Colos. iii. 19. Again, S. Paul saith the same thing in fewer words; That [Husbands] must [love their Wives, and not be bitter against them,] neither by pride domineering over them, nor by anger or cruelty dealing harshly with them.

1 Peter iii. 7. And S. Peter, who was a [mar­ried Man,] commands [Husbands] first [to dwell] with their [Wives] so as not to part from their Company, yea to converse with them [ac­cording to knowledge,] that is, prudently, so as to instruct and direct them in that which is good. Secondly, He charges them [to give honour] to their Wives, that is, both respect and maintenance suitable unto her Degree. And he gives three Reasons for this; 1. [Because] the Woman is the [wealter vessel,] and being made so by God, must not be despised or neglected for this, 1 Cor. xii. 22. but more kindly and gently dealt with, and more care is to be taken of her. 2. Because she as well as her Husband is [an Heir] of the King­dom of Heaven, and though different in Sex and some external Priviledges, her Soul is bought by Christ, and shall be equal to his in Heaven; and therefore he should not insist much on his Superio­rity here. 3. Because if the Husband be not kind to his Wife, their [Prayers will be hindred;] contention and ill-usage will break Charity, and [Page 383] make them both unfit to pray, either together (as they always should do) or asunder: So that on all these accounts it is necessary, and just, and profit­able for Husbands to love and esteem their Wives.

Secondly, as the Wife desires and expects these things from her Husband, she also must learn her Duty to him, which is set down in the same places of Scripture.

First, Ephes. v. 22. When God made the Socie­ty of Marriage, he knew Equality would breed Confusion, and therefore he made the Man Supe­rior, and chargeth the Wife [to submit to her Husband,] as a good Man doth [unto the Lord,] performing his Will to the utmost of her power. Ver. 23. For there is great reason it should be so, [the Man] being the [Head] of the [Wife,] e­ven as [Christ] is [Head] of the Church, and as the Church submits to Christs Will and keeps his Com­mands, so should the Wife do to her Husbands Com­mands; and as the Church gains by this Subjection, (for Christ not only rules over, but [saves] the Church which is his [Body,]) so doth a good Hus­band defend and preserve his Wife, being obliged to it by her Observance. Ver. 24. Therefore in imitation of so good a Pattern, and for their own Advantage, [as the Church is subject to Christ] in all his just Commands, [so let the Wife be to those] of her [Husband.] Ver. 32. And a little after, he saith, Let the Wife take care she reve­rence her Husband, for by respecting him she will engage him to give her honour, and his credit is her glory also.

The same Apostle, Colos. iii. 18. bids the [Wives to submit] to their Husbands, because [Page 384] [it is fit] the nobler Sex and the Head should rule, therefore they must yield to their Will as far as they can [in the Lord,] that is, with a safe Conscience, where they do not command unlaw­ful things.

1 Peter iii. 1. The same Lesson (that it may be throughly learned) is again taught by S. Peter, who enjoyns Wives to be in [subjection to their own Husbands,] even to those who are not so good as they should be; for though [they do not obey the Word] of God which bids them love their Wives, but are churlish and wicked, it is likely [they may be won] to a better mind, by the [Wives] courteous and obliging carriage. Ver. 2. For [while they behold how chast and pious] your Conversation is made by Religion and the [Fear of God,] they cannot but entertain a good Opinion of Religion it self. Ver. 3. This Sub­mission, Chastity and Piety is a better way to please your Husbands than that outward [adorning] of [plaiting the Hair] and putting on rich and cost­ly Ornaments and [Apparel,] which some vain Women excuse as if it were to please their Hus­bands, whereas it argues their Pride and Folly to all wise Persons. Ver. 4. But let Wives study to adorn their Inside, their Mind with Vertue, which never wears out, grows old, or changes its Fashion, espe­cially with [a meek and quiet Spirit,] which is not only lovely in the eyes of Men, and sets them out more than any gay Clothes can do, but also [is in the sight of God of great price,] and will make him esteem you. Ver. 5. And this was the way by which those [holy women of old] who feared God, got so much Renown; they had plain Garments, but Souls adorned with all Vertues, and [Page 385] especially with [submission to their Husbands.] Ver. 6. As for Example, The Famous Mother of the Jewish Nation [Sarah, obeyed Abraham] most readily, and with great respect [called him Lord,] Gen. xviii. 12. And as Abraham was the Father, so she is the Mother of all Faithful Men and Women; but you cannot be [her Daughters,] unless [ye do well,] and that so constantly as not to be [afraid] to go on in a vertuous Course to your Lives end. Which excellent Advice, if it were carefully heeded by Husbands and Wives; would make them both happy in one another, and blessed by God also.

Finally, we will note, the Rubric after this Office adviseth the Persons who are married, either that day (as the ancient usage was) or as soon after as is possible, to receive the [Holy Communion,] to confirm their Vow to each other by that Blessed Sa­crament, and to bind themselves more strictly to their several Duties; which prudent and pious Use hath of later years been banished by those unchristi­an and vain Revels which are so generally the Con­clusion of this Religious Rite, that the Persons scarce have any serious thoughts of the Vow they have made, or the Duties they have promised: which evil Custom ought to be broken off, and the Mar­riage day dedicated to the Receiving the Sacrament, or at least to Religious Exercises, and such kind of Joy as is suitable thereunto.

Partition II. OF THE VISITATION OF THE SICK.

The Introduction.

§. 1. IN so uncertain a World, where Sickness sometimes interrupts the very Joys of Marriage, it is no wonder that this Sad Office should be placed next to Matrimony: For all people in all Conditions, of all Ages and Sexes are subject to Diseases continually: So that when any person falls sick, those that are in health must Re­member them, as being themselves also in the Body, Heb. xiii. 3. and lyable to the same Calamities; and all [Page 387] Christians are commanded to visit their Neighbours in this Estate, and are promised they shall be re­warded by God for so doing, Psal. xli. 1, 2. Matth. xxv. 34, 35. James i. 27. Ecclus. vii. 35. And in the Primitive times they were Famous for this piece of Charity. But it is especially the Duty of the Clergy, To visit the Sick, a Duty instituted and en­joyned by God himself; Is any sick among you? let him call for the Elders of the Church, and let them pray over him, anointing him with Oyl in the Name of the Lord; and the Prayer of Faith shall save the Sick, and the Lord shall raise him up, and if he have committed Sins, they shall be forgiven him, Jam. 5.14, 15. In which words (being the Original and Foundation of this Office) we may note, First, That the Duty is enjoyned by Divine Authority, and therefore it is not barely a point of Civility, but an Act of Re­ligion, and a necessary Duty which God requires from us. Secondly, The Time to perform it is, When any are Sick among us; For then the Parties have most need of Comfort, Advice, and Prayers to support them and procure Help for them, as also to prepare them for their last and great Account: And then these Religious Exercises will do us most good, because Sickness embitters the World and endears Heaven to us, making us pray devoutly, and hearken willingly to Holy Advice; so that this happy opportunity must not be lost: Nor may it be deferred till the sick persons be very weak and nigh to death, for then they are uncapable either to joyn in the Office, or to receive the main Bene­fits thereof; and the word in S. James is, If any be infirm, Ver. 14. to note, this should be done in the beginning of Sickness, and not put off till the Physicians give men over. Thirdly, As to the man­ner [Page 388] of performing this Duty; 1. The Sick Man (or his Friends) must Send for the Priest, who else may either not know of his Sickness, or when it may be seasonable to visit; and if he come unsent for, it is more than he is obliged to do: But yet it is an Act of great Charity, because God requires the Elders of the Church shall do this Duty. The Sick Man must pray for himself, ver. 13. and his Neighbours may pray with him and for him, ver. 16. but neither of these sufficeth, he must send for the Minister besides, who, now the Church is settled, lives not far from him, and he is most able to give Counsel, and most likely to prevail, be­cause God requires him to perform this Office, which is described in S. James, 1. By praying over him, that is, besides him in the House where he lyes sick. And since God enjoyns Prayers shall be made, and doth not prescribe the Form; as all other Churches have made proper Forms, so hath ours also com­posed this, which is the most full and useful Office on this Occasion extant in the World. 2. In S. James's time, and as long as the miraculous gift of Healing continued, they anointed the Sick with Oyl also in the Name of Jesus, not to convey any grace to the Soul (as the Papists now pretend to do by their extream Unction, lately made a Sacrament) but to work a miraculous Cure, which was the u­sual Effect in those Ages. But the Power and Gift being now ceased, the Reformed Churches left off the Oyl, which was the Sign, because the thing sig­nified was now taken away. But yet we retain all the substantial Parts of this Office. 3. Here are by S. James set down the Benefits which may be obtain­ed by it, which are annexed to the Prayer of Faith, the Part which was not Ceremonial, and which con­tinues [Page 389] still as the Benefits also shall do, viz. This shall be a Means to save the Sick; and more particu­larly, 1. The Lord shall raise him up, that is, if God see that Health be good for him, the devout Per­forming of this Office shall contribute to his Reco­very: Or, 2. However (because Men are Mortal and must dye at some time) it shall be a Means [to procure forgiveness] of the Sins he [hath commit­ted,] not the Priest only will absolve him upon his Penitent Confession, but God will seal his Pardon, and then whether Life or Death follow, the Man shall be Happy. Wherefore as we love our Friends, or our own Souls, all care must be taken that this necessa­ry and profitable Office be not neglected. The Method of performing which in this Church, may be thus described: The usual Office contains, 1. Sup­plications to avert Evil in the Salutation and short Li­tany. 2. Prayers to procure good things in, the Lords Prayer and the two Collects. 3. Exhortations prescribed in The large Form of Exhortation; and directed in the Rubric, to advise the Sick Man to forgive freely, to give liberally, to do Justice in set­ling his Estate, and to confess his Sins humbly and ingenuously unto Gods Minister now with him. 4. Consolations in the Absolution, the Prayer to God to confirm it, in the lxxi. Psalm, and the concluding Benedictions.

Secondly, There are added, 1. Extraordinary Prayers for a sick Child, for one past Recovery, for a dying Person, and for one troubled in Conscience. 2. The manner of Administring the Communion to the Sick.

Sect. I. Of the Supplications.

§. 1. WHen the Priest enters the Sick Mans House, he salutes all that are in it, with that Phrase which our Lord ordered his Disci­ples to use when they went to cure both Souls and Bodies, Luk. x. 5. Peace be to this House; which is a Pious Wish, for the Health and Prosperity of all that dwell in it, and Christ hath promised it shall have its Effect, and prove a real Blessing. And be­cause the Litany is the proper Office for averting Evil, all of it should be used here, only in conside­ration of the Parties Weakness, one Petition is taken out of it, wherein we beg of God (who for our Sins lays Sickness on us) not to remember our Ini­quities, nor those of our Forefathers, which we have made ours by imitating them; but to [spare us] even from temporal Judgments, because Christ hath [redeemed us with his precious Blood:] However we intreat him to deliver us from Eternal Death, and not to [be angry with us for ever.] To which all that are present, as suffering, or de­serving to suffer, say, Spare us good Lord. And as all those who came to Jesus of old to be healed, used to cry Lord have mercy on us, so do we here on the like occasion supplicate the whole Trinity for Mer­cy, in that Ancient Form of which we spake before.

Sect. II. Of the Prayers.

§. 1. AFter we have prayed against Evil, we pro­ceed to petition for Good, beginning with the Lords Prayer, which ought to be joyned with all our Prayers, especially these for the Sick; for many of the Petitions do well agree to that E­state: Herein the Afflicted Party may shew his Love of God by desiring his [Name may be hal­lowed;] his desires of Heaven, by wishing [his Kingdom may come;] and his submission to the Divine Pleasure, by praying [his Will may be done:] Herein he may beg Earthly Comforts, in asking for his [daily Bread;] he may crave Par­don for what is past, in beseeching God to [for­give his Trespasses;] and express his Charity, by declaring he [forgives] them that [trespass against him:] Herein he may testifie his Resolu­tions to amend, by requesting he may not [be led into temptation;] and procure Freedom from the punishment of Sin, by praying to be [delivered from evil.] In which necessary Petitions all pre­sent must joyn with the Priest and the Sick Person, as also in the Responses which follow, taken out of Davids Psalms.

1. Psal. lxxxvi. 2. Being an humble Request to God [to save] this Person who professeth himself his [Servant,] and only [trusts] in his Mercy.

[Page 392]2. Psal. xx. 2. And though the Lord dwell in Heaven [his holy Place,] we pray that he will [send him help] from thence, and that he will now and [ever defend] him by his Power.

3. Psal. lxxxix. 23. We know Satan is most ready to tempt the Afflicted, because they are then weak­est, and he may shortly not be able to reach them; wherefore we pray that [this Enemy may have no advantage against him,] for Gods Grace will make him an equal Match for him in this low Estate, so that though [that wicked one] 1 John ii. 13. do [approach] he may not be able [to hurt him.]

4. Psal. lxi. 3. For which end we desire [The Lord] to take him into his Protection, where he will be as safe [from the face] and fury of this his [Enemy,] as in [a strong Tower.]

5. Psal. lxi. 1. Finally we wish these and all our Prayers for him may be [heard] and reach as high as [Heaven,] for we are very earnest in them.

§. 2. That which hath been more briefly desired in the Responses, is now collected into two larger Prayers thence rightly called Collects. The First of which is, For Support under the Affliction, shewing from whom it must come, viz. from [the Lord] of [Heaven,] and how he may dispense it [by be­holding, visiting, and relieving] this Person, and more particularly by [looking on him] with Mercy, [giving] him [Comfort and Confi­dence] in God, [Defending him] from Satans Malice, and [keeping] him inwardly [in peace] and outwardly [in safety.] Though God dwell in Heaven, yet he hath commanded his People in their Trouble to cry unto him and desire him to look down from thence, Deut. xxvi. 15. Isai. lxiii. 15. Wherefore we call on him, from Heaven to [be­hold] this Servant of his, yea, to come to [visit [Page 393] and relieve him,] or else our visiting him is in vain. We may pity him, but cannot help him, and there­fore we desire the Lord will [look on] him with Compassion; and now when his Heart is low and dejected, that this Father of all Consolation will give [him comfort,] 2 Cor. i. 3, 4. And though this sharp Correction might make him fear his Lord was highly displeased, yet we beg that his Faith may not fail, but that [he may have sure confi­dence] in God still, when all other Supports are ta­ken from him: For this Faith is the only Shield to secure him from Satans Darts, Ephes. vi. 16. And if this fail not, Luk. xxii. 32. though he may be tempted and assaulted, he shall not be overcome. There is [danger] that this [Enemy] may now tempt him, if he have lived Carelesly, to Despair; if Piously, to Presumption; if he be Weak, to Impatience; if he be Wavering, to Unbelief; if he be Worldly, by Unwillingness to dye; if he be Secure, to defer his Repentance: But we pray that God will preserve him from [the danger] and mis­chief of consenting to any of these Temptations, and make him trust firmly in his Mercy, and see clearly his own Unworthiness; bear patiently what he hath so justly deserved; hold fast his good Prin­ciples, and be very willing to dye if God pleaseth, and very diligent while he lives to repent sincerely; so shall he be [kept perpetually] in [peace and safety,] his Mind shall be in quiet, and his out­ward Condition safe; this therefore we beg [through Iesus Christ our Lord. Amen.]

§. 3. The next Collect is either for removing the Affliction, or however for sanctifying it; wherein we beg of Him to [hear us,] who is an [Al­mighty God] and a [most merciful Saviour,] [Page 394] who is able and willing to help the Distressed, and is continually [accustomed] to exercise his unspeak­able [goodness] for their Relief. And here we present a fit Object for his Mercy, a poor [Ser­vant] of his now sorely [grieved] with dangerous [Sickness,] in great weakness and extremity: We can do no less than pity him, but if God please to extend his wonted Goodness to him, it will be effectual indeed: The Sufferer and his weaker Friends, may perhaps only desire present case and restoration to Health; but since Health it self would not be a Mercy, till the Correction had ef­fected that good End for which God sent it, we first pray, That he will [Sanctifie it to him] so as it may make him penitent and devout, humble and holy; for we know it is not the stroke of an E­nemy designing present Destruction, but a [Fa­therly correction,] for he hath time given him, and is yet sensible of his Condition; we pray therefore [that the sense of his weakness] and extream danger may make him take faster hold of Gods Mercy (so absolutely necessary now) and [add strength to his Faith and seriousness to his Repentance,] that he may perform it throughly and sincerely now, since this may be the last Op­portunity that ever he will have to judge himself be­fore he come to Gods Judgment-Seat; or if he have a longer time, this Sickness cannot end well whe­ther it be in Life or Death, without this unfeigned Repentance, for thereby, [If it shall be his good pleasure to restore him to his former health] which is very possible to God and much desired by us, he will be bettered by this Affliction, and [lead the residue of his Life in his Fear,] doing his Will, and aiming at his [Glory] who hath deli­vered [Page 395] him: Or if God see Life not to be good for him, we know upon this his true Repentance, he will [give him grace] so patiently to take this [Visitation,] that he shall make a Happy Ex­change, for [after this painful Life] in which he struggles with so many sad Pressures, be [ended,] he shall go into an infinitely better Place, and [dwell in Life Everlasting,] where there is no Sorrow nor Pain, no Sin nor no Sickness, but Joy and Peace for ever: Wherefore since the Event will be Good whatever it be, if this Sickness produce this lively Faith and true Repentance, we heartily beg it may be so Sanctified, and then Gods Will be done: And all this we desire [through Iesus Christ our Lord. Amen.]

Sect. III. Of the Exhortation.

§. 1. WE are commanded by God, not only to pray for, but to Support the Weak, 1 Thess. v. 14. by Comfort, Counsel and Exhorta­tion; for in Sickness Men need these most, and will be most likely to profit by them: Wherefore after the Example of the Ancient Church we have an Excellent Form provided, consisting of Instruction concerning the Author of Afflictions, the End why they are sent, the manner how we must bear them, and the benefit of so doing; to which are added Ex­hortations [Page 396] to Patience and Self-examination: All which Particulars are so proper and pious, that they well deserve a serious Consideration. The Form beginneth with Instruction, courteously saluting the Party as [Dearly beloved,] and seasonably teach­ing him, not to look too much on second Causes, but to remember [Almighty God is the Author of Life and Death,] Deut. xxxii. 39. He gave us our Life, and may take it when he pleases, Wisd. xvi. 13. And all the Means that tend to the conti­nuance of Life, that is, [Youth, Health, and Strength;] as also the contraries to these, [Old Age, Weakness, and Sickness,] which are the Causes of Death; all these are ordered by his Pro­vidence, so that in which of these States soever we are, we must firmly believe it to be by the Divine Appointment, and that will make us patient under our Infirmities, 1 Sam. iii. 18. and convince us they are justly inflicted for our Sins, Lament. iii. 39. yea it will put us upon all Exercises of Piety for gain­ing his Favour who laid them on, and who alone can remove them. And further we teach the Sick Person, Since God is the Author of this Sickness, there must be some great End aimed at by it, and some wise Reason for it: And it is sent for one of these three Ends, 1. To try our [Patience] and give us an Opportunity to shew how well we love him by our Submission to the very Corrections of our Loving Father, and that others may learn to submit [by our Example,] 1 Pet. iv. 12. James v. 10, 11. Or, 2. To prove [our Faith,] 1 Peter i. 7. whether it be sincere, and, like pure Gold, will endure the Fire of Affliction; for Hypocrites, like Dross, fall off when Trouble comes, but true Faith hath no worse Opinion of God for his Correcti­ons, [Page 397] but cleaves to him even in Death it self, Job xiii. 5. Or, 3. it may be (and commonly is) [sent to correct and amend us,] for we have sinned, and are careless till we feel the smart of it; so that if God love us, he is obliged to chastise us, and we are bound seriously to examine what Crimes in our Health have brought this Sickness on us; and if it was Lust or Intemperance, Covetousness or Pride, Uncha­ritableness or indevotion, we must repent of them and amend them, and then it is very likely the Cross may be removed. However it is [certain] all shall turn to good if we demean our selves un­der this Affliction as we ought: Here therefore we are taught in what [manner] to bear our Sickness, and how to behave our selves in it. 1. We must [Repent truly] of all those Sins that have brought it on us, in order to procure a Pardon before we come to Gods Tribunal. 2. We must [bear it patiently,] because we have justly deserved it, and because it is necessary for our Reformation and the Cure of our Souls. 3. We must [trust] firmly [in Gods Mercy,] that though he be displeased at our Misdoings, yet upon our Repentance and pa­tient bearing his Correction, he will forgive us for [Iesus sake.] 4. Therefore we must [take our Correction thankfully] as coming from a Loving Father, and designed for our Good, Job i. 21. Lastly, We must leave the Event to him, [submit­ting our selves] intirely to his [Will,] who knows what is best for us, and can make not Life only but Death also to be a Blessing. This is our Duty, which if we carefully perform, the Minister assures us, that this Sickness shall [turn to our Profit,] and God will make it [help us forward in the way to Everlasting Life,] which is that we [Page 398] all desire and hope to come to at the last. Having thus instructed us concerning the Author and the Ends of Affliction and the manner of bearing it, the Priest proceeds to [Exhortation,] especially to Patience, and to that first, because unless the Mind be calmed, no other Duty can be done aright. Now the Motives to Patience are taken, First, From Scripture; Secondly, From Example: The Scri­pture is Heb. xii. 6. &c. where S. Paul argues with the Afflicted Hebrews, that they [ought to take pa­tiently the Lords Chastisement,] 1. With re­spect to God, because ver. 6. it is an Argument of his Love, for [whom the Lord loveth he chaste­neth,] Amos iii. 2. Yea sometimes he [scourgeth] his own Sons the most severely; so that the sharp­ness of your Disease is no Argument of his Hatred. Ver. 7. This is the way that [God dealeth with his] dearest Children: For what good Man can you find that was not often and grievously [chaste­ned,] and do you take that ill which hath been the Lot of the Best Men, yea which was the Means to make them so eminently good? Ver. 8. You should rather suspect Gods Love and your own Estate, if you were not afflicted: For [if you be without chastisement] (of which all Gods Children have their share) you may well fear [you are no right born Son of God,] but one who is to have your Portion here, and to be without any part in the Kingdom of God, and then you buy your ease and prosperity too dear. Ver. 9. Again S. Paul exhorts to Patience with respect to the Parties Suffering: For [your Earthly Parents] (who are but [Fa­thers of your Flesh] and contribute only to your Body) have [corrected you, and you] loved and respected them the more for it, is there not then [Page 399] much more reason for [you to submit] to God when he corrects you, who is your Heavenly [Fa­ther] and the Creator of your [Soul and Spi­rit?] Ver. 10. Especially since his Chastisement is for better Ends than theirs; they often do it for things of this World in which we have but a [few days] to stay, and chastise us [for their own plea­sure,] but God always aims at our [profit,] that we may be [Partakers of his Holiness] here, and his Glory hereafter. Now this rational and pious Arguing is taken from [Holy Scripture,] written by God himself on purpose to quiet our Minds and teach us with [patience and thanksgiving] to bear all sorts of Adversity which come from the Hand of [our Heavenly Father,] Rom. xv. 4. and therefore we should seriously think upon it. And again, besides these Reasons we have a great [Ex­ample] to comfort us, even that of [Christ] him­self, who was perfectly Innocent, and yet suffered for our Sakes, Poverty and Scorn, Pain and Death it self: So that when we are afflicted we [are made like unto him,] which should be a great satisfa­ction to us, especially since our Captain was not made perfect, but by Sufferings; He went by the Cross to the Crown, by Death to Life, Heb. ii. 10. And we his Vowed Souldiers must follow him the same way, and unless we suffer with him, we can­not reign with him, 2 Tim. ii. 11. Unless we dye and go from hence, we cannot live in Heaven with him, 1 Cor. xv. 50. and surely we shall not be a­verse to endure one Pinch to attain Eternal Joy. All this it is hoped may suffice to make us Patient, and when our Mind is composed by these Conside­rations, then we must begin to prepare for Death and our Great Account; First, By [remembring [Page 400] our Vow] made in [Baptism,] wherein we en­gaged to forsake all Evil, to believe all Truth, and to keep Gods Holy Commandments even to our [lives end.] And since that Period seems now to draw very near, we must expect to be examined shortly at Gods Tribunal how we have performed these Engagements: For [after death] comes the great [Iudgment,] Heb. ix. 27. at which we must all appear to give a strict Account to that [Righ­teous Iudge] who will try us without respect of Persons, Rom. ii. 11. for all our Thoughts, Words, and Works: Wherefore you must now very care­fully examine how you have done your Duty both [to God and to Man,] for in Baptism you vow­ed to do your Duty to both; read over therefore, or call to mind the Sum of those Duties in your Catechism, and consider diligently in what Parti­culars you have failed, and with shame and sorrow go to God and [accuse your self] for your Neg­ligence, Perjury, and Disobedience; yea [con­demn] your self by confessing you have deserved to suffer all the Wrath due to these many and great Offences. For if we thus judge our selves we shall not be judged of the Lord, 1 Cor. xi. 31. but [shall find Mercy at our Heavenly Fathers Hand for Christs Sake,] Prov. xxviii. 13. and be fully and finally acquitted and pardoned in that terrible [Iudgment;] and who would not take any Pains for so great a Mercy as that is? And this is the first Part of our Duty, viz. [Repentance] and renouncing all Evil. Secondly, You vowed you would [believe] all the [Articles] of the Christian [Faith,] and therefore the Priest re­peats unto you [the Creed,] and you are to say it after him, and declare your [stedfast Faith] in [Page 401] every Article thereof: First, To shew you dye a True Christian, and are a Sound Member of the Holy Catholick Church, out of which there is no Salvation. Secondly, To arm your self with this Shield against the Fear of Death, and the Argu­ments Satan may use to bring you to despair: For if you do believe God is your Creator, and Christ your Redeemer, and the Holy Ghost your Sancti­fier; if you believe there is for all True Members of the Church Forgiveness of Sins, a Resurrection from the Grave, and a Life of Everlasting Glory, you need not fear Death, and you may chearfully hope this God will save your Soul: And this is the Use you must make of your Creed.

§. 2. The former Instructions, Exhortations, and Advice agree to all Sick Persons, and therefore are prescribed in a set Form: But because of the great Variety of Mens Cases and Tempers in time of Sickness, the Church leaves it to the Dis­cretion of the Minister who Visits, to assist and direct them in other Matters as they see the parti­cular Case requires; only in the Rubric here are some General things prescribed. First, The Mi­nister must examine whether the Party do truly repent of his Sins; because till he knows this, he cannot Comfort or Absolve him upon any good Grounds; and if he find the Sick Person hath examined slight­ly, or is not very sensible of the Number, Nature, and Desert of his Sins, not heartily grieved for them, or not stedfastly resolved (if he recover) to amend his Life: The Priest must impartially tell him the Danger of dying in that Impenitent State, and labour to bring him to Repentance now, or else he must perish for ever. Gods Minister must [Page 402] not fear any Mans Anger, or destroy him by con­cealing this necessary though unpleasing Truth from him: And every Man ought to give his Spiritual Physician leave to be plain and impartial, since his own Salvation depends upon it. Secondly, The Minister must exhort him to Charity, the first and greatest Commandment, which the Sick Man must exercise in all the Branches of it, viz. 1. [Forgi­ving all] that have [offended him,] for other­wise God will not forgive him: Our retaining any Malice now, cannot much hurt others, but will bring Damnation upon us: Wherefore we must now Love and Pray for our very Enemies, even though they be the Causes of our Death, Luke xxiii. 34. Acts vii. 60. 2dly. If we have done any Injury, we must confess it, and if we have op­portunity, not only [ask forgiveness for it] but [make satisfaction] to the utmost of our Power, since God will not forgive the Injuries done to our Neighbours, unless they who otherwise would ac­cuse us at his Bar, by our doing them Justice, be­come Interceders for us; and he that keeps that which he got by any unjust Course, declares he loves the Sin still, and doth not truly repent: but we had better strip our selves of all ill-gotten Goods, and then the rest will thrive better. 3dly. We must [give to the Poor,] but before we can know what is our own to give, it is here noted, That if the Sick Man have not made [his Will,] he shall be advised now to do it; for to dye and leave our Friends engaged in Suits and Contention, is a most grievous Sin; and those who put it off to the Last, are Men that hate to think of another World, and vainly expect Long Life, and for this Presumption are often cut off suddenly. Conside­ring [Page 403] therefore this is so necessary to be done, make your Will in your Health, or however while you have your Life and Senses, and distribute your E­state Prudently and Impartially to your nearest Re­lations, and do it with a free and willing Mind, praising God for what you have enjoyed while you needed it; and chearfully leaving all to those that survive you, since you are to be provided for in a better Place; But be sure to take care to pay all your just Debts as far as you are able, and then out of what remains be liberal to the Poor; your Estate will be taken from you shortly, and you will have no Opportunity but this, to do this necessary Du­ty in, Galat. vi. 20. All the Rest you leave to others, it is only what is given in Charity that is laid up for your selves, Matth. vi. 20. of that only you will have Comfort in another World. Say not, We must not think to merit Heaven by Alms-deeds: For though Heaven be too Glorious to be bought by them (as we teach against the Papists, 1 Pet. i. 18.) yet God hath promised to reward them in Heaven who relieve the Poor on Earth, and gives Heaven only to Charitable Men, Matth. xxv. 42. not for the Merit of their Charity, but of his free Grace (as we teach against hypocritical and sordid Protestants who pretend this only to save their Purses) Give therefore with assurance of Reward: And plead not, you have Children and Friends to pro­vide for, since if it be so, you ought first to provide for your own Soul; and to leave them abundance, may perhaps contribute to their Damnation, where­as this little will contribute to your Salvation and bring a Blessing on what you leave; and whoever would hinder you from this, have no true Love for you, nor do they deserve any of your Estate. [Page 404] And though you be but poor, out of a little give a little, 2 Cor. viii. 12. and God will accept you how­ever small the Gift be, if it be given freely, and be proportionable to your Ability.

Lastly, The Priest must advise the Sick Man, to con­fess those Sins which do most trouble his Conscience: To confess our Sins to a Priest even in Health is a Pious and Ancient Custom, and not only a Sign of Repentance, but the best Means for obtaining Par­don and for amending our Lives, and (though grosly abused by Papists) is but too much neglect­ed by Protestants. But in Sickness God strictly en­joyns us to confess to the Elders of the Church whom we have sent for, James v. 16. For if they be clearly told the Case, they can better apply pro­per Spiritual Remedies, and will both pray more heartily for us, and may on better grounds Ab­solve us. Wherefore, as we love our Souls, let not a foolish Shame make us hide our odious Sores now, since, if they be not cured very speedily, we shall Eternally perish in them, and be shamed for them before all Men and Angels: Choose your Priest as wisely as you can, but be very clear and impartial to him, for the Benefit will be your own, and the Comfort following upon it will make your Death far more Easie.

Sect. IV. Of the Consolations.

§. 1. HAving done all this to fit our penitent Sick Man for Comfort, it is now time to dispense it, Job vi. 15. And since his first and greatest Trouble is Sin, our first Comfort is to re­move that by the Absolution, which S. James doth expresly require shall be given to a Sick Penitent af­ter we have prayed over him, Jam. v. 15. And the Primitive Church by many Canons took Care, none that repented should dye without it; for since it is certain Christ did leave such a Power with his Church, there is never more need to use it than now. And therefore this is the highest Form of Absoluti­on used by this Church: For, 1. Here is shewed the Commission by which we Act, granted by [Our Lord Iesus Christ,] who purchased Pardon for all Penitents by his Death, and hath the only right to forgive. [He] not only exercises this [Power] himself, but [left Power to his Church,] Matt. xxviii. 18. John xx. 23. [to absolve all] such [Sinners] as [truly repent and believe in him,] for our Master will not, and we cannot forgive on any other Terms; but we being perswaded thou dost truly repent and believe, do not doubt to de­clare that our Lord Jesus doth [forgive thee thine Offences;] And therefore [by his Authority committed to me,] in my Ordination (and not by any Power of my own) [I do absolve thee] also [from all thy sins,] and confirm it [in the name [Page 406] of the Father, the Son and the Holy Ghost: Amen.] Now as it must be a mighty Comfort to a dying Man to hear Christs special Officer thus solemnly pronounce his Pardon upon so good and unquestionable Warrant and Authority: So the Priest must by the Confession, Devotion and Peni­tence of the Party, be well satisfied that he needs, desires, and is prepared for this solemn Absoluti­on before he use it, and then it shall not only de­clare, but convey the Pardon.

§. 2. And that this comfortable dispensing of Remission may not want its due Effect, we add [a Prayer after it,] to beg of God to ratifie our Act, and to declare he hath done so by other visible Testimonies of his Favour. The Prayer begins with a Description of Gods Merciful Nature and Graci­ous Dealing with [those that truly repent, whose sins he doth so put away as not to remember them any more,] Jerem. xxxi. 34. so that the sick Man ought not to despair because he hath sinned; for now that God hath given him time and grace to repent, and [most earnestly to desire pardon and forgiveness,] he need not doubt but [he will open the eye of his Mercy,] and pity [his Servant] who is so exceeding sorrowful for his Offences, and that he will manifest this pity not only by pardoning what is past, but by [renewing in him] those Graces of Faith, Hope, Devotion, and sincere Obedience, [which have been decay­ed or impaired in him by Satans fraud and malice] inticing him to Evil, or [by his own carnal will and frailness] consenting thereto. He will remove the evil Dispositions that Sin hath brought upon him, create a new Heart and renew [Page 407] a right Spirit within him, to fit him for that new Jerusalem in which there is no Sin. And while he doth continue in this World, we pray he will [pre­serve this sick] Person who is a [Member] of his dear [Son, and continue to keep him in the Unity of the Church,] wherein he hath received so many Comforts all his Life long, and in the Faith whereof he doth still remain: And if any Sin be the Cause of this sharp Correction, good Lord [consider his Contrition] and sorrow for it, [ac­cept his Tears] as a Testimony of his unfeigned Repentance; and when thou hast forgiven the Sin, [asswage his Pain] and abate his Distemper if it seem to [thee expedient for him:] However since thou hast promised to save all those that trust in thee, and he hath declared by flying to thy Churches Prayers, [that he putteth his full Trust only in thy Mercy,] Psal. xxxvii. 40. be thou merci­ful to his Soul, and [impute not to him his for­mer Sins,] in this World nor the next, but [strengthen him] now his own strength faileth [with] the Inward Comforts of [thy Holy Spi­rit,] so that he may either live Holily or dye Hap­pily; [and whensoever thou] (who sentest him hither) [art pleased to take him hence,] be thou reconciled to him and [take him to thy Favour, through the Merits of Christ,] and then in­stead of a short life of Pain and Misery, he shall have an endless life of Glory and Felicity with thee in thy Kingdom: [Amen.]

§. 3. After this excellent Prayer, the Church comforts the Sick Man with a very proper Psalm, viz. lxxi. used in all Churches on this Occasion, containing the grounds he may have to hope for [Page 408] that Favour from God which hath been desired. Psalm lxxi. ver. 1. [O Lord,] my praying to thee in this and all my Troubles, shews [I have put my trust in thee] alone, let me find thy Favour which I seek for, and [let me not be put to con­fusion] by a sad disappointment of my Hopes; [rid me and deliver me] from my fear and dan­ger, though not for my own Merit, yet for [thy Righteousness] sake, who hast promised it: I am weak and speak saintly, stoop down [and in­cline thine Ear] to my cry [and save me.] Ver. 2. There is none on Earth can help me, [be thou my strong Rock, whereunto I may always re­sort,] and especially now when I have no other shelter, [thou hast promised to help me,] and by Faith I rely on thee [as my House of De­fence and my Castle;] and now I have more need than ever to fly unto thee. Ver. 3. Satan would now drive me to despair, and his Instruments would discourage me; [Deliver me] now therefore [O my God, out of the hand] of the [wicked one,] Ephes. vi. 6. and out of the Power of those he em­ploys, even the [unrighteous and cruel Men.] Ver. 4. I am not unwilling to dye, that I may live with thee, [for thou O Lord art the thing that I long for] above any thing in this World; even in my [youth] and best health my chiefest [hope] was to enjoy thee at last. Ver. 5. Yet if thou or­derest me longer life, I know thou canst preserve me even in this World, [for through thee have I] a frail Creature [been holden up ever since I was born, thou art he] that [took me out of my Mothers Womb] wherein thou hadst formed me, and from my Birth unto this latter Period of my Life thou hast preserved me, therefore [my [Page 409] praise shall be always of thee,] in all Estates and Conditions. Ver. 6. My Sickness makes some avoid me as a strange [Monster,] and others won­der I can have any Hope left now, [but my sure trust is in thee,] who never failest us in our greatest need. Ver. 7. Lord help me now in this low Estate, and it will so [fill my] Heart and [Mouth with thy praise, that I shall] be very chearful even in this sad Affliction, and [sing of thy Glory] and the [Honour] thou deservest by doing good, [all the day long,] yea till my Sun do set and my Breath fail. Ver. 8. In my health I could not subsist without thee, O therefore [cast me not away] from thy Protection [in my] de­clining [Age,] and when through this grievous Sickness [my strength faileth;] now I have more need of thy help than ever, and in my weakness is the proper time to shew thy strength. Ver. 9. And now my Heart as well as my Body is weak, [Mine Enemies,] even Satan and Evil Men [speak a­gainst me] as if I deserved all that I suffer, and [they that lye in wait for my Soul] do now con­spire to assault me and drive me to despair, [say­ing,] they see by my sufferings thou art finally an­gry with me, [and hast forsaken me,] so that now they may [persecute and take me, for there is none to deliver me.] Ver. 10. But their Brags shall not rob me of my Hope, I will yet pray to thee and say, [Go not far from me O God,] I know though thou chastisest me, thou art still [my God, haste thee therefore to help me,] as they make haste to hurt me. Ver. 11. Deliver me so wonderfully [that they may be confounded] and their hopes [perish who are against my] poor [Soul: Let them be covered with shame who [Page 410] seek to do me evil,] when they find how basely they are disappointed and how certainly thou art my Friend still. Ver. xii. But if thou shouldest de­fer thy Succour, though they give me up for lost, [As for me I will patiently abide always,] and endure to the End, [yea I will praise thee more and more] for the new Supports that every day brings forth, Ver. xii. Even while my Cala­mity is upon me [My Mouth shall daily speak of thy Righteousness] in succouring me as thou hast promised while I am under this trouble, and of [thy Salvation] and freeing me from it; and also of all thy Mercy, [for I know no End thereof,] and so can never want fresh matter for thy Praise. Ver. xiv. Though I have no strength of my own, [I will go forth] to resist these Foes of mine [in the] might and [strength of the Lord God,] and when I get the Victory over these discouraging suggestions, [I will make mention of thy] grace and thy [righteousness] as the [only] cause of my Conquest. Ver. xv. [For thou O God hast taught me] by a thousand Instances [from my Youth] and so [up] even [until now,] that it is by thy Grace I am preserved in all my Tryals, [there­fore will I tell of thy wondrous Works,] and give thy Name all the Glory. Ver. xvi. Where­fore since I have resolved to dedicate all my Life to thy Service, [Forsake me not O God in my old Age when I am grey-headed,] nor in any time when my natural Powers fail; and spare me [until I have] so fully [shewed thy strength] and the Power which delivers thy Servants [unto this Generation,] that they may believe it as firmly as I, and teach it to their Children [that are yet unborn.] Ver. xvii. My time is but short [Page 411] at longest, but I wish thou mayst be praised when I am gone, [for thy righteousness is very high] and praise-worthy, [great are the things thou hast done] for me and others: [O God, who is like unto thee?] so able and so willing to help the Miserable, both I and all that know thee will ever sing [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

§. 4. And now being for ought we know to take our last leave of our dear Brother, we do it with giving him a Blessing at the parting, by three so­lemn Forms; The First directed to God the Son, in which the Priest saith, [O Saviour of the World] who hast suffered in our Nature more than we can endure, and [by thy Cross and precious Blood hast redeemed us] from Eternal Death, [save and help] this Sick Person and all of [us,] and grant us thy Pardon [we humbly beseech thee good Lord,] and then we shall not fear temporal Death. The Second is a Formal Blessing in the Name of God the Father, [The Almighty Lord who,] as you heard in the Psalm, [is a strong Tower to all that trust in him,] and who can do what he pleases, because [all things in Heaven and Earth] honour and [obey him.] He [be now] in this Sickness [and ever] after [thy De­fence,] for Jesus Christs sake, that by his pardon­ing and restoring thee for his sake, he may [make thee know and feel there is no other Name un­der Heaven] by which thou canst [receive health] here and [salvation] hereafter, but [only the Name of Iesus Christ,] which we have used in all our Prayers for thee. The last is an Address to the whole Trinity, That thou mayst be safe in life or death: [Unto Gods gracious protection] who [Page 412] is able to keep thee from falling, and to present thee spotless before his Throne [we commit thee,] praying that God the Father may [bless thee] with all good, [and keep thee] from all Evil; that God the Son may look chearfully on thee [and be gra­cious to thee] in the Pardon of thy Sins; and that God the Holy Ghost may behold thee favourably [and give thee] that sweet [Peace] of Conscience which will fill thee with Joy, and carry thee through death to a glorious Immortality, and will support thee [now and evermore: Amen.]

AN APPENDIX OF THE PRAYERS IN SINGULAR CASES.

§. 1. THis Office is admirably composed for the generality of the Sick, but some are not capable of it, 1. For want of Age, as Children. 2. For want of Strength and Time, as Persons very near death. 3. For want of Inward Peace, as those in trouble of Mind. Hence there are Four Prayers in these Special Cases.

First, For a Sick Child; These are their Parents greatest Comforts, and their Sickness is very afflict­ing to them, which makes all Pious Fathers seek Help for them from God; they cannot pray for themselves, nor be exhorted, but we can pray [Page 414] for them, and here is a proper Form; describing him we pray to, as an [Almighty God and mer­ciful Father,] who alone hath [the Power of Life and Death,] 1 Sam. ii. 6. Wisd. xvi. 13. He gave this Child to its Parents, and may take it again if he please, Job i. 21. and the [Issue] of this Sickness is at his disposal: Wherefore we [humbly beseech] this Supream Lord [to look down from Heaven with] pity upon this [sick Child,] we vi­sit him in Charity, and can wish well to him, but God only can [visit him] with Health and [Salva­tion;] of him therefore we beg that he will [de­liver this] poor Child in his [appointed time from his bodily pain,] by restoring it to Health if it be his Pleasure; however we pray him [to save its Soul for his Mercy sake,] since he hath washed it in Baptism from Original, and yet kept it from Actual Sin. And [if it be Gods plea­sure] we earnestly desire for its Parents sake, [it may live longer] upon [Earth,] yet so as in that case we pray [it may live to God,] and prove an eminent [Instrument of his Glory, serving God] in all Piety, and [doing good] to the Men that live in this [Generation,] because it were bet­ter for it to dye Innocent now, than live to disho­nour God, grieve its Parents, and destroy its own Soul. Wherefore if God sees not fit to grant these two Requests, we submit to its Death, and beg of the Lord [to receive it into] a better House than its Parents can give it, even [those Heavenly Ha­bitations where they that sleep in Iesus] (as baptized Children certainly do) [enjoy perpetual rest and felicity,] which can never be had in this Mortal Life. Finally therefore we desire this may be [granted for Gods Mercies sake, and [Page 415] through Iesus] his Intercession, [who liveth and reigneth in Heaven] for ever: [Amen.]

§. 2. The next is, A Prayer for a Sick Person of whose recovery there is small Hopes: When by the negligence of those about the Sick Man he is so weak as that he cannot perform the former Duties when the Priest is sent for, or when he hath per­formed them, and the Priest makes a second Visit and finds him weaker, then we may use this Form, wherein, First, We set forth him we pray to, as very fit to be addressed unto in this case, being [the Father of Mercies and the God of all Com­forts,] 2 Cor. i. 3. [and our only Help in need,] Psal. xlvi. 1. Secondly, We describe our present occasion for his speedy Aid, declaring [we fly to him in behalf of this sick Man] who by [his] Appointment and [under his] Correcting [Hand,] lyes now in great [weakness of Body.] Thirdly, We make Requests for him, that God will please to support him, [by looking graciously on him,] and the [more his outward Man decayeth,] 2 Cor. iv. 16. that he will so much the more streng­then his inward Man by [his Grace and Holy Spi­rit,] to enable him to bear his Bodily Pain: We pray also for Remission of his Sins, even that he may [unfeignedly repent for all his past Er­rors] and firmly [believe in Christ,] (which are the Gospel Conditions required in order to For­giveness) and we hope God will then [Do away] his Offences, and [seal his Pardon in Heaven be­fore he go from hence,] Psal. xxxix. 13. Finally, We beg a happy Event to this Sickness, declaring [it is not impossible,] Luk. i. 37. [for God yet to raise him up and restore him,] which if it be [Page 416] his Will, we do much desire; [Yet since] this seems rather to be wished than hoped for, and [in all appearance the time of his dissolution draws nigh,] it seems more necessary to pray [he may be] fitted and prepared [for the Hour of Death,] that so he may dye [in Peace and Gods Favour,] and be immediately received [into Gods Everlasting Kingdom,] which is pur­chased for all that live and dye well, [through the Merits of Iesus Christ:] Amen.

§. 3. To this is added, A Commendatory Prayer for a Sick Person at point of departure; From the Ex­ample of Christ, Luk. xxiii. 46. and S. Steven, Acts vii. 59. The Primitive Christians used to commend the Souls of their dying Brethren to God, as we do in this Form: In the Preface of which we shew our Assurance of the Happiness of the Faithful after Death, saying, [Almighty God, with whom the Souls of just Men made perfect] Heb. xii. 23. [do live] in Glory [after they leave their] Bodies, which are but their [Earthly Prisons.] And instead of useless Lamentations, Secondly, We pray for the dying Person, and do [commend his Soul into the Hands of God] who gave it, Eccles. xii. 7. being assured he was the [merciful Creator,] & hoping he will be the [Saviour] there­of: We know he dearly bought it, and therefore pray [it may be precious] in his Sight, Psal. cxvi. 15. And since nothing that is unclean can enter into Heaven, we beseech him to [wash it with his Sons Blood,] who was slain to take away [the sins of the World,] that [whatever spots] it may have gotten by living [in a sinful World,] having the [Flesh to] intice within, and the [De­vil] [Page 417] to tempt from without, all these [may be purged and done away,] so that it may be pre­sented [pure and spotless before God,] and then it shall be crowned immediately with endless Glo­ry, Jude ver. 24. Lastly, We pray for our selves that [we who] are permitted to [live] a little longer [may in this and other Spectacles of Mortality] daily be made sensible of the [short­ness and uncertainty of our own Lives,] and [learn so to number our own days,] of which many are past and few remain, that we may [ap­ply] our Heart to that true [Wisdom] of prepa­ring immediately for that which will so certainly be our Lot shortly: And this will, when our [end comes,] bring us also [to Life Everlasting,] where we shall meet this dear Friend again: This therefore we beg [through the Merits of Iesus Christ: Amen.

§. 4. Lastly, Here is, A Prayer for Persons trou­bled in Mind: When by any Distemper in the Bo­dy Melancholy prevails, or by any Evil Principles Men have dismal Apprehensions of God, or by some great Sin Conscience disturbs Mens Peace, the Spiritual Physician, after bodily Remedies used to the first sort, and fit Instructions and Exhortations to the others, may thus pray for them. First, since it is Comfort that is now desired, he may remem­ber that the Lord is [the Father of Mercies] and God of all Comforts, 2 Cor. i. 3. and may very reasonably hope [he will look with pity] upon this poor dejected Servant of his. Secondly, He may describe his sad Condition, for the troubled Person believes God is [angry] with him, and complains that [he writeth bitter things] against [Page 418] him, and makes him now smart for his [former sins,] Job xiii. 26. He groans under a Load of [thy wrath,] and his [Soul is full] of fear and [trouble,] Psal. lxxxviii. 6. And if some great Sin be the ground of this grief, there is reason for this Complaint, however the case is very sad, Prov. xviii. 14. Thirdly therefore our Petitions for him are, 1. That since God [writ his Word for our lear­ning,] this Person [may] from thence learn his own [Condition,] and how the [Promises or Threats belong] to him, and may not by misap­plying these, be [driven] to despair of Gods help, or seek it from any other unlawful means. 2. Where­as Satan tempts him to take desperate Courses and to despair of Gods Mercy, we pray him to grant him [strength] to overcome all the [Temptati­ons;] if his Body be disordered, we beg he will [heal his Distempers;] if the [terror] be only in his Mind, then we [pray] God will remember his Promise, Isai. xlii. 3. and not [break this brui­sed Recd, nor quench] this wasted snuff of [smoaking Flax,] in whom are yet some sparks of Hope if God would quicken them. 3. We pray him to [have Mercy on him,] Psal. lxxvii. 9. and to give him some Testimony of his Favour, Psal. li. 8. to deliver him from this unreasonable fear of [Satan] his and our Enemy, and to give him [peace] of Conscience, [through the Me­rits and Mediation of Iesus Christ:] A­men.

[Page 419]§. 5. The Church thinks it very necessary the Sick Man should receive the [Communion,] after the Custom of the Primitive Ages; wherein great Care was taken that no good Christian should dye without it, since they esteeme it the Viaticum for this last and longest Journey. And rather than he should want so necessary a Comfort, we are allowed to dispense it in a Private House, and to a small Company, which in other cases we avoid. Indeed there are divers weighty Reasons why the dying Christian should receive this Sacrament, and why Ministers should perswade them to it, and labour to fit them for the Worthy receiving of it. For, 1. This is the highest Mystery of Religion, and fittest for those who are by Sickness put into a Hea­venly Frame and are nearest to Perfection. 2. This is Gods Seal of Remission to all that receive it with Penitence and Faith. 3. This arms them against the Fear of Death, by setting Jesus before them, who dyed for them, and hath pulled out the Sting of Death. 4. This assures them of their Resur­rection, by making them Members of Christs Body, John vi. 54. 5. It declares they dye in the Peace and Communion of the True Church, out of which there is no Salvation. And if the Sick Man have done all the Duties in the foregoing Office, he is prepared to dye, and therefore fit for this Commu­nion; and if he do receive it with Devotion, the comfortable Assurances of Gods Love which he gets here, will never leave him till he see God face to face. We shall only add, That lest the Fears of the Divine Displeasure which Sick Men are very apt to entertain, should trouble their Minds, and hinder their Joy and Comfort in this Holy Ordi­nance, [Page 420] the Church hath chosen a peculiar Epistle and Gospel on purpose to comfort them and deliver them from these Fears; and also made a proper Col­lect to beg Patience for them under this their Affli­ction. All which are so plain they need no Expli­cation, but only require the Sick Mans devout At­tention, and then it is hoped they will not fail of their desired Effect.

Partition III. OF THE BURIAL OF THE DEAD.

The Introduction.

§. 1. WHen Death hath parted the Soul from the Body, the Soul returns to God that gave it, and the Body to the Earth whence it was taken, Eccles. xii. 7. He takes care of the better Part, and leaves the other to us to dispose of. And though the Manner hath been different, some Burying, others Burning, and others Embalming their Dead, yet among all Na­tions [Page 422] the Care of the Bodies of the deceased hath been accounted a Pious Thing: The Gentiles have called it, A Divine Law, and reckoned it among the principal Acts of Religion and Justice: Among the Jews it was counted an Eminent kind of Mer­cy, 2 Sam. ii. 5. And the Primitive Christians were Famous for their Charity in burying the Bodies not of their Friends only, but of their very Enemies. The Reason whereof is, not that any of these be­lieved the Dead were any better by what was done to their Bodies, for divers of the Philosophers cared not whether they were buried or no; and some of the Martyrs despised their Persecutors threatning them with want of a Grave. Where­fore the true Reasons are, 1. That our Friends Bo­dies may not be a Prey to Birds and Beasts. 2. That the shame of Nature may not be exposed. 3. That all may return to their proper Place, and be cover­ed with the skirt of their Mother, the Earth. To which the Christians add three more. 1. Because Men are made after Gods Image. 2. And as they were Christians, their Bodies were Temples of the Holy Ghost. 3. And shall be raised again and made glorious; upon which grounds the Christians have been always careful to give their Dead decent Burial. Only the Rubric informs us, 1. That this Office is denyed to some, viz. To those who dye in that desperate Sin of Self-murder, whom the Jews and Gentiles also suffered to lye unburied to deter others from so horrid a Crime. It is denyed also to all that dye Excommunicated, because they having by their Crimes cast themselves out of the Church, cannot be called Brethren nor buried by this Office: Nor Infants who dye Unbaptized and were never yet admitted into the Church; though [Page 423] this is designed to punish the Parents neglect, not to do the Infant any harm, whom God may receive though we cannot call it a Christian. The other Circumstances of Burial are, 1. The Place, which of old among Jews and Gentiles (who believed the Touch of a Dead Body did pollute) was without the City, Luke vii. 12. But among Christians the dead were buried in the Churchyard, to put those in mind of their Mortality who came to the House of Prayer: And of later time some Eminent Per­sons began to be buried in the Church, which was not allowed in the best Ages. 2. The Time was generally in the Night, the first Christians being forced so to bury, and later Ages imitated them, only adding divers Lights, to shew their Hope of the Parties being gone to Light Everlasting. 3. The Manner hath from ancient time been among the Christians, for the Priest to go before the Corps with Hymns and Psalms of Joy (a Custom yet used in some places) and the most considerable Friends to bear the Body; the Chief Mourners first, and all the Company following the Bier, to mind them that they must shortly follow this deceased Person in the same Path of Death. 4. The Office of Bu­rial was grosly corrupted in the later times by the Roman Church from their gainful Fiction of Pur­gatory, with Prayers for the Party deceased: But we being assured by Scripture and Antiquity, that the Living only can have profit by this Office, have cast away all those Corruptions, and reduced this Holy Rite to its Primitive Form and Use. And the Method is, 1. In the Way there are Sentences read, to excite the Company to Faith, Patience, and Thankfulness. 2. In the Church they are as­sisted with devout and pertinent Meditations from [Page 424] the Proper Psalms, and instructed concerning the Resurrection by the Proper Lesson. 3. At the Grave there is, a Preparatory Meditation, the So­lemn Interring, with divers Consolations annex­ed in the Words of Scripture, and the Concluding Prayers.

Partition I. OF THE SENTENCES Used in the WAY.

§. 1. TO allay the Sorrow which naturally seizeth on us when we follow a dear Friend to the Grave, the Priest meets us in White (the colour of Joy) at the Church­gate, and as the Angels in white Garments go out to receive the Soul, so doth the Priest to receive the Body of the Faithful: and he comes with the Gospel of Peace and other choice Sentences of Ho­ly Scripture, to perswade us to Faith, Patience, and Thanksgiving. He begins with John xi. 25, 26. being the Words which Christ spake going to­ward Lazarus his Grave to comfort Martha for the loss of her Brother, bidding her neither grieve nor doubt concerning her deceased Brother; for, saith he, [I am] the Author both of [the resur­rection and the life;] I gave him life at first, and can restore it; [He] therefore [that] did [believe in me] while he was alive [though he be dead, yet [Page 426] shall he live,] his Soul and Body shall be united a­gain at the Resurrection; [and whoever] of you that now live, if you [believe in me, you shall never dye] as to your better part your Soul, that shall live eternally, and is alive when the Body is laid in the Dust: Why then do you mourn so much for them that believed in me? The second Sen­tence is, Job xix. 25, 26, 27. As for the Body, e­ven Job who lived long before Christs Resurrection, he believed that should rise again; for he said, Though I must dye, [I know that my Redeemer liveth,] and though I cannot raise my self from the Grave, I believe [he shall stand at the later day upon the Earth,] when he comes to Judgment; wherefore [though after my skin] and flesh be laid in the Grave [Worms destroy this Body,] reducing it to Dust; yet He shall raise up and restore this Body again, [so that in my flesh] and in this very Body [I shall see God,] yea [I my self] shall see him with these Eyes, and not be beholding to others Testimony. Now if we believe that our deceased Friend shall with his own Body see God and see us again, we ought not to mourn too much. The third Sentence is, 1 Tim. vi. 7. and it is designed to make us Patient: For whereas we are apt to grieve either for the deceased who hath now left all his Earthly Comforts; or for our selves that we have lost him: Here we are ad­monished, that it is no wonder that he or we are stript of these things by Death, for [we brought nothing with us into this World,] but were born naked and destitute of Friends, Wealth and all these things, God lent us all these for our use here. [And it is certain] he will take all away when we go from hence, so that [we can carry [Page 427] nothing out,] we must return naked as we came, Eccles. v. 15. 'Tis Gods just Decree, it is his Lot now, and must be ours shortly; wherefore we must submit to it, and not be impatient for the loss of one Friend, when shortly we must part with all. The fourth Sentence, Job i. 21. goes higher and teaches not only to be Patient, but Thankful, by the Example of Holy Job; who lost all his Chil­dren and his Wealth too at once: Yet he consider­ed [The Lord gave] him Children and Wealth freely, and while they were with him he had Com­fort in them; And now the] same Lord had [ta­ken them away,] being his own. So that he was not to grieve that they were now gone, but to thank him for the lending them so long: Where­fore he saith, [Blessed be the Name of the Lord,] and you must do so also, since God acts wisely and justly even in this Dispensation.

Partition II. OF THE PSALMS AND THE PROPER LESSONS.

§. 1. SOme of the wiser Heathens considering only the Miseries of this Life from which their Friends were freed, celebrated their Funerals with Joy: But Christians who also consi­dered the Joys they gained by Death, followed them generally to the Grave with Psalms and Hymns. And we have two very proper Psalms: First, Psal. xxxix. which was Davids Funeral Elegy upon Ab­soloms Death, when Joab checkt him for his open Grief, he then retired, and applying himself to God, said, Ver. i. Lest I should dishonour thee by any rash words in my Grief on this Occasion, I have resolved [I will take heed] to my Behaviour, and beware not [to offend] God or Man [with my Tongue] by any murmurs or complaining. Ver. ii. I know the Tongue, especially in time of Grief, [Page 429] is a sort of unruly Creature, therefore [I will keep] it as [with a Bridle] however [while the ungodly] is with me, who will mis-interpret my Complaints as accusations of Providence. Ver. iii. Wherefore though my loss was great I performed my Resolution and [held my tongue] before Men, [keeping silence even from good words,] which might be misconstrued, but this increased my [pain and grief] since I was forced to smother it. Ver. iv. By secret Meditation and inward Mourn­ing [My heart was hot] within me, and at [last] by this [musing, the fire] of my Passion kindled, and breaking forth, as soon as I was by my self, [I spake] thus. Ver. v. I will not complain to Men, but to thee, and turning my Grief to Prayer, will beg of thee [O Lord] to [let me know my] own end, and consider the small [number of my days,] that I may spend them well [when I am certified] by those who dye younger than I am, that I have not [long to live.] Ver. vi. Instead of grieving for others, I had more need consider how near my own death is; [for behold thou hast made my days at is were one span] in length; my longest term of [Age] is like [nothing] com­pared to [thee] who art Eternal: [and verily] it is not the Dead only who are to be lamented, but [every Man living is] always and [altogether vanity,] being lyable to Diseases and Death in his best Estate. Ver. vii. We hope for Pleasure under the shades of Riches and Honours, but they soon fail, and we find [we walked in a vain sha­dow.] We [disquiet our selves in vain] to get [and heap up Riches] here, and suddenly are ta­ken away, so that we neither enjoy the Fruits of this Labour our selves, nor can we tell [who shall [Page 430] gather them,] our own Family, or Strangers. Ver. viii. I see all my worldly Hopes sail, [And] there­fore [now Lord] that I am thus disappointed by this Friends death, [what is my Hope?] not any earthly thing; [truly my Hope is,] not in my self or any Creature, but only [in thee.] Ver. ix. I confess thou hast corrected me now very sharp­ly, but it is for my Sins; [Deliver me therefore from my Offences,] the true Causes of this Affli­ction, and lay not too many Calamities on me, lest [the foolish] and carnal Men scorn and reproach me, as if thou wert my Enemy. Ver. x. I was as sensible as any of my loss, yet I was as mute as if I had [been dumb] and never murmured, because I knew [it was thy doing,] and so must needs be a wise and just Act in it self, how sad soever it pro­ved to me. Ver. xi. Yet though I did not com­plain to Men, I may address my self to thee, and pray thee to [take thy Plague] even this grievous Chastisement [away from me] and mine, [for I am] almost [consumed] by the Grief and the Losses which I suffer under [thy heavy Hand,] one touch whereof (as we see in this deceased Friend) brings us to the Grave. Ver. xii. [When thou with] Sickness and other [sharp] but just [Rebukes dost chasten Man, for] his [Sins,] he cannot endure the Stroke, were he never so beau­tiful and strong before, his [beauty fades away,] and his strength is no more than that of a rotten [moth-eaten Garment,] he decays and dyes pre­sently; [therefore every Man is but vanity] and cannot be relyed on. Ver. xiii. To thee will I apply my self, and pray to thee to spare me & mine; [Hear my Prayer, O Lord,] and consider the impor­tunity of [my calling;] have compassion on my [Page 431] [tears] which flow on this sad Occasion; make not my Life shorter nor more uncomfortable by thy Displeasure. Ver. xiv. I will not set my Heart on earthly things, [for I am a stranger with thee] my Father, while I live in this World, Heaven is my home, and I am but [a Sojourner] here, as all my Pious Ancestors esteemed themselves: I have not long to stay, let my time therefore be comfortable, though it be short. Ver. xv. [O] Lord [spare me a little] while [that I may re­cover] this sad loss of [my strength,] and settle my temporal and spiritual Affairs better [before I go hence] by death [and be no more seen] by mortal Eyes, and so long as thou permittest me to live I will sing [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

§. 2. The other is the xc. Psalm, made by Moses in the Wilderness, upon the death of that great Multitude which came out of Egypt, and it con­tains Meditations concerning the Power of God and the Frailty of Man, and Prayers for Grace to make a right use of his Dispensations, and for Pros­perity to them that did survive. Psal. xc. Ver. i. When we see many others dye, we flye to thee [O Lord] to preserve us, for thou hast been [our Re­fuge] and the Defence of our Families [from one generation to another;] we are daily changing, but thou art ever the same. Ver. ii. Thou art E­ternal, [before any] part of the [Earth] or the [World was made] thou the Maker thereof must needs exist; we cannot say thou wast, but [thou art God from Everlasting] and shall be God for ever [world without end,] therefore we will trust in thee. Ver. iii. Our Life and Death is in thy Power, [thou turnest Man to destruction,] he [Page 432] dyes when thou dost order it, and shall rise [again] when [thou sayest Come again ye Children of Men,] for all in the Graves shall hear thy Voice, whether we live or dye therefore we depend on thee. Ver. iv. We indeed think it long before that great Day comes, when we and all our deceased Friends shall meet, but [a thousand years] in respect to thee who art Eternal [are but as yesterday,] which seems short when it is gone. And in respect to our Friends that sleep in the Grave it cannot seem long, [seeing it] passes as [a Watch] of three or four hours [in the Night,] the length of which is not perceived by those who sleep. Ver. v. It is only the next World in which we can truly enjoy our Friends, for [as soon as thou scatterest them] with thy Anger for Sin, they dye, [and are even as a sleep] without sense or motion; and if raging Sickness come, [they fade away suddenly like the Grass,] untimely cut down by the hasty Scythe. Ver. vi. Man like Grass [in the morning] of Youth grows up and is green till the Noon of Middle-Age, and then declines; so that if no un­timely Disease crop it, [in the evening] of Old-Age he is [cut down] by death, and then dryes and withers. Ver. vii. Our Sins also make this short Period to be shorter, [for we consume away] daily and grow fewer [by thy displeasure;] so that we who survive have reason to be [afraid] to offend thee, lest we be also cut off by [thy wrathful Indignation.] Ver. viii. We see ma­ny Examples, and may justly fear [thou hast] be­gun to set our [misdeeds] before thee, [and] to bring [our secret sins to light,] for some of us are already summoned to thy Tribunal, and whose turn may be next we know not. Ver. ix. Where­fore [Page 433] we will immediatly take warning and prepare, [For when thou art angry] at us for our Sins, [all our days are gone,] we can live no longer, this [brings our years to an end] so suddenly, that our time passed seems [like a Tale that is told,] which is done so soon, that we cannot say what space was taken up in relating it. Ver. x. Nor is there any reason to defer preparing, though we should live to our utmost period, for [The days of our Age are] usually but [threescore years and ten,] many of which are past already, and the rest will soon be run while we rest secure; [and though] some of us be so well tempered [as to come to fourscore years,] the latter part of our time is no season for repentance, because our old age is full of [labour and sorrow,] and even that also [soon passeth away and is gone.] Ver. xi. Indeed if men would fear this and repent soon, they might dye happy though they dyed young, [but who] is there that thus [regardeth the power of thy wrath,] so as by speedy repentance to prepare for the worst? Very few alas! [though thereafter as men fear] so is [thy displeasure] great against those who fear it least, and if they would thus fear, they should never feel it. Ver. xii. But whatever others do, O Lord so [Teach us to number] the shortness and uncertainty [of our days, that we may] presently [apply our hearts] to make our Peace with thee, for that is true [wisdom.] Ver. xiii. And while we are doing this great work, let us not be cut off as we see others have been, but [Turn thee again O Lord] now [at last, and be] so [gracious unto thy Servants] who yet remain, as to spare our lives. Ver. xiv. [O sa­tisfie] our trembling Souls that thou wilt shew us [Page 434] [mercy, and] do it [soon] before despair or death seize us, for if we find thou hast favour for us, [we shall] spend the rest of our time in [joy] and gladness. Ver. xv. We have lost many Neigh­bours and Friends, wherefore [Comfort us again now,] for as long a time as [thou hast plagued us:] And let us have a space of health as large as [the years wherein we have suffered adversi­ty.] Ver. xvi, We know thou only canst work this blessed Change, therefore [Shew thy Ser­vants] who are now alive [thy work,] and con­tinue this prosperity till the next generation, that [their Children may see thy Glory.] Ver. xvii. Let thy visible Presence appear, [And the glorious Majesty of the Lord our God be upon us] for our Protection and Comfort: and since we are re­solved to work out our own Salvation, [Prosper] O Lord [this work of our Hands,] that we may live to secure our Souls, and then we shall be ob­liged to sing [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

§. 3. After these Psalms out of the Old Testa­ment follows the Proper Lesson out of the New, 1 Corinth. xv. 20, &c. wherein 1. the certainty of the Resurrection is proved from ver. 20, to ver. 34. 2. The Manner of it is described, ver. 35, to ver. 54. 3. The whole is applyed, ver. 55. to the end. And all this is designed to Arm us against excess of Grief for our Friends Death, or Fear of our own.

1 Corinth. xv. ver. 20. If Christ had not con­quered Death, it would have been dreadful indeed to us, but [now] we are sure by infallible Testi­mony that [Christ is risen from the dead,] and since he hath a Body of the same Nature with ours, he is [become the first Fruits] of those [Page 435] good Men who slept in death, and his being first presented to God, is an assurance the rest shall fol­low in due time. Ver. xxi. And this is reasonable enough, [For since by] one [Man,] even the first Adam [death came] upon all, so by another who was both God and [Man, came the resurrection of the dead,] and by the second Adam we shall all live again. Ver. 22. Christ and Adam were common Persons, and [as in Adam all] Men [die] and are mortal, [so in Christ shall all be made a­live] and become immortal, the Benefit reaches as far as the Mischief did. Ver. 23. Good and Bad shall rise, [but] there shall be great difference, and [every man] shall rise in [his own order,] as Christ the first Fruits] rose first, so [they that are Christs] shall be first raised in a glorious con­dition, though these also must stay in the Grave till [his coming.] Ver. 24. For [then cometh the End] of the World, and of that Office which Christ undertook till he had brought all, both good and bad, to a voluntary or involuntary subjection to God, and then [he shall deliver up] the Admi­nistration of this [Kingdom to God the Father,] when by his Grace in the Righteous and his Judg­ment on the Wicked, [he shall have put down all] that [Rule, Authority and Power] which Sin and Satan exercised over Mankind. Ver. 25. For Christ was promised, Psal cx. 1. that he should [reign] as Mediator, [till he had] got a perfect Victory over all his [Enemies,] and put them [under his Feet.] Ver. 26. But when the World, Sin and Satan are suppressed, Death will still hold many of Christs own in his Power, so that [the last Enemy that shall be destroyed is Death,] which will be utterly vanquished by the [Page 436] Resurrection, which sets all its Prisoners free. Ver. 27. And then what is literally said of Gods putting all things under Mans Feet, Psal. viii. 6. will be mystically verified in Christ God and Man, [under whose Feet all things are then put,] except [God] the Father [who did put all things] under Christ. Ver. 28. His Glory shall not be e­clipsed by the Resurrection nor by our Saviours Vi­ctory, for [when all things are thus subdued] to Christ, [then shall the Son himself] resign up his Mediators Office, and declare that in the whole Administration of it he was [subject] to the Will of [his Father who put all things under him;] and then the different Dispensations undertaken by the Persons of the Trinity for our Salvation ceas­ing, [God] the Father, Son and Holy Ghost [shall be all in all.] Ver. 29. But to leave these Myste­ries and argue more plainly: Certainly you Bap­tized Christians do believe the Resurrection, or [else what shall they do that are baptized] into this Faith, and by divers Rites and express Words declare they look [for] the Resurrection of [the Dead,] and as being dead in Sin by Nature, are washed in hopes to live for ever after death? [If the Dead rise not at all,] why did they not keep their old Religion, or [why are they baptized for] the hope of somewhat to befal them when they are [dead?] Christ would not have appointed nor you observed such an Institution, if there were no Resurrection. Ver. 30. And if we the Apostles did not firmly believe this, why do we lose the Pleasures of this World, and [stand in jeopardy] to lose our lives [every hour?] it were madness to cast away this Life thus if there were no other after it. Ver. 31. I dare solemnly to swear [by [Page 437] Christ] who is your [rejoycing,] that I am as mise­rable in this World as any, and [daily] expect [to dye] a cruel death. Ver. 32. [After the man­ner of Men] condemned to the Lyons [I fought with Beasts] in humane shape at Ephesus, who in their rage were like to tear me in pieces, [and] what [advantage] have I by making my Life thus uneasie, and putting it into such danger, [if the dead rise not?] I had better live as long and as pleasantly as I can, saying with those Atheists, Isai. xxii. 13. [Let us eat and drink] and take our fill of Pleasure to day, [for to morrow] per­haps [we] may [dye,] and then there is an end of us for ever; thus they live, and speak. Ver. 33. But this never makes me repent of my Sufferings which I am so sure will be rewarded, only [be not] ye [deceived] into living wickedly upon their de­nying the Resurrection, listen not to such Atheisti­cal Discourse, for [evil communications cor­rupt good manners.] Ver. 34. Let them dream on, till they drop into that Hell which they would not fear, but do you [awake to] do that which is [righteous and sin not,] remembring there is another Life, which I must mind you of, because [some] among you seem not [to know] the Power of [God,] which if they considered, they could not doubt but he is able to raise us again; and therefore [it is your shame] that any of you should question, or I need to prove a Resurrecti­on. Ver. 35. But others among you pretend not to deny the Resurrection, only to enquire the man­ner of it, and [some man] will [say, how are the dead raised, and with what bodies do they come] again, with the same they have here, or with other Bodies? Ver. 36. I reply, Such a [Page 438] Captious Inquirer is [a Fool,] for he might learn this from Natural things, the [Corn he sows] un­der the Clods (as we do dead Bodies) [is not quickned] nor springs again, [except it] first [dye] and begin to rot in the Earth. Ver. 37. And as [he sows not] Corn in such a Form with such a kind of [body,] as it [shall be,] when it springs again, but a [bare grain of Wheat or other grain,] threshed and stript of Straw, Chaff, and all its Coverings, as the dead are when put into the Grave. Ver. 38. Yet [God giveth it a Bo­dy] with Straw, Ears, and all its decent Coverings, when it springs again, it is in such a Figure as [pleaseth him,] and [every seed] for all this, pro­duceth a [Body] of its own kind, Wheat produ­ceth Wheat, and Barly, Barly: So the Bodies of Men raised are more glorious, yet of the same Na­ture after the Resurrection. Ver. 39. But as every Seed produceth its own kind, so though the Bodies of good and bad do corrupt alike, they shall be very different when they rise again, [all flesh] was made out of one Matter in the first Creation, yet it [is not the same,] for [the Flesh of Men, of Beasts, of Fish and Birds] are different, even so out of the same corrupted Matter God can raise more Glorious Bodies for the Righteous than for the Wicked. Ver. 40. God made [celestial bodies] such as the Sun, Moon, and Stars; and he also made [terrestrial bodies, but the celestial] far exceed the [terrestrial in Glory,] though all were made of one Matter; so shall the Bodies of the Righteous far excel those of the Wicked, and those we have at the Resurrection, shall far exceed these we have now. Ver. 41. Yea there shall be difference among Good Men and Degrees of Glo­ry, [Page 439] as [there is one Glory of the Sun,] another and less of [the Moon,] and the least of all of [the Stars,] yet all shine in one Heaven; so all the Righteous shall be glorified, but some more glorious than others [at the Resurre­ction of the Dead.] Ver. 42. It is therefore the same Body which is raised, only very much improved in Qualities, especially with respect to the State in which Death leaves it; for [it is] laid under ground, and as it were [sown] in a state of [corruption, it is raised] in a state of [incor­ruption,] so as it can decay no more. Ver. 43. [It is sown] and buried a contemptible Carcase [in dishonour,] but [it is] to be [raised] in a state of [glory,] bright and lovely: [It is sown] and cast into the Grave [in] a state of [weakness] and aptness to turn to dust, but [it is] to be [raised in] a state of [power,] strong and vigorous. Ver. 44. [It is sown a natural body] of corruptible flesh, but it is to be [raised a spiritual body,] pure and unmixed like the Lights of Heaven which suffer no corruption: and if in this World [there] be such difference between [natural and spiritual Bo­dies,] we may well believe there shall be as great difference between those bodies we have here, and those we shall have hereafter. Ver. 45. These Bo­dies come from the first Adam, and those from the second: Now the Scripture only saith, [The first Adam was made a living Soul,] Gen. ii. 7. so the bodies derived from him, corrupt when the soul is gone: But Christ [the last Adam was made a quickning Spirit,] Rom. viii. 10, 11. and so is able to give us bodies that shall never dye. Ver. 46. Yet as Adam was before Christ in time, so [that body was not first] which is the best, even the [Page 440] [spiritual] body: But first we are born [with a natural] body, and [afterwards] at the Resurre­ction we have [that which is spiritual,] being most fit for our perfect State. Ver. 47. Adam the first [Man] the Parent and Pattern of the Bodies we have now, was made [of the Earth,] and so his Body was [Earthy] and corruptible; but Christ [the second Adam is] not only Man, but [the Lord from Heaven] who glorified his own Huma­nity. Ver. 48. Now as [Adams Body] was frail and corruptible, so are ours while we live in this world and [are earthy:] And as Christs Body when raised again was glorious and incorruptible, [so] shall our bodies be when we rise and [are hea­venly,] that is, designed for to live in Heaven. Ver. 49. We must be like both these Originals, and [as we have born the Image of] the first [earthy] Man here, being born like Adam, [so we shall also bear the Image of Christ the Heavenly] Adam, and be born again at our Re­surrection with a body like his glorious Body. Ver. 50. Yea I affirm it is absolutely necessary we should have a better body before we go to dwell with God, for [Flesh and Blood,] mortal bodies lyable to hunger and thirst, sickness and death, as the bo­dies which we have here are; [these cannot inhe­rit the Kingdom of God,] where there is no meat nor drink; Heaven is a place of [incorruption,] and bodies lyable to [corruption] cannot dwell there; we must dye therefore before we can go to Heaven. Ver. 51. It is so necessary we should have a better body than this, that I assure you ([though it be a mystery] and a secret never writ before) though [we shall not all dye] before the day of Judgment, yet [we shall all be chang­ed,] [Page 441] even they then alive must have their bodies glorified. Ver. 52. And this great work shall be done [in a moment, in the twinkling of an eye,] extream suddenly, as soon as the [last Trump] calls the Dead to Judgment. For at the end of the World [the Trumpet] shall be [sounded] by an Angel so loud, that [the dead] shall hear it, and they [shall be raised] with bodies [incorrupti­ble,] and [we] who are then alive [shall be changed] and our bodies made glorious. Ver. 53. For before we can come to Heaven [this] fleshly [corruptible] body, [must put on incorruption,] and be freed from all decays; [this mortal] body which must dye, shall [put on immortality] and live for evermore: But as a man who puts on finer Cloaths remains the same man still, so our bodies shall be the same, invested only with new Quali­ties. Ver. 54. And when this comes to pass that our [corruptible mortal body] is by Christ invest­ed with [incorruption and immortality, then] that Scripture shall be fulfilled, Hos. xiii. 14. which prophesieth that [death shall] be utterly destroy­ed, and [swallowed up] by the [victory] Jesus gets over it, so that it can never exercise its power any more. Ver. 55. Wherefore we may triumph over it, and say, [O death where is thy sting;] or wherein art thou now so terrible? [O grave where are] the fruits of [thy victory?] the bo­dies of the Saints which thou hadst in thy Prison, are all to be set at liberty. Ver. 56. [The sting of death is sin,] and as it is the wages of that, it is very terrible, for [the strength of] that sting [is the Law] of God, which being broken by us, we are by this Law condemned to dye temporally and eternally. Ver. 57. But [thanks be to God,] [Page 442] our Redeemer by dying for us, hath satisfied the Law and delivered us from eternal death, and now it can only make us immortal, for God [giveth us the victory,] and we shall rise again so as to be for ever free from it, [through our Lord Iesus Christ.] Ver. 58. Since therefore the Resurre­ction is so certain, and the Righteous shall then be so infinitely happy, I shall apply this to desire you [my beloved brethren, to be stedfast] in your belief of it, and [unmoveable] as to your ho­ping for it, living as well and as religiously as you can, yea [always abounding] in piety and ver­tue, which is [the work] set you by your great [Lord;] for now ye [know your labour in the Lords work is not in vain,] but you shall be fully rewarded for it when this Resurrection comes; and thus this one Principle firmly believed and made the Rule of your Life, will secure you in the practice of all Vertue, and bring you to the Re­wards of it in Eternal Glory.

Partition III. OF THE DEVOTIONS USED AT THE GRAVE.

§. 1. WE brought the Body into the Church, to shew the Party dyed in the Communion thereof; and now we carry it to its long home the Grave: and since the sight of that Place and of the Corps now ready to be put into it, is wont to make great im­pression on us, the Church takes this occasion to fit us with Devotions at the Grave: First, Here is a Meditation of the shortness and uncertainty of our Lives, Job xiv. 1, 2. This dead Body is a lively Monitor to us how truly Job spake when he said, [Man that is born of a Woman,] who is mor­tal her self, [hath but a short time to live,] while it spends we do not perceive it, and when it is gone it seems as nothing; yet our days are not only few but evil, and [full of misery,] for we are ever fearing or feeling some Calamity; and since they [Page 444] are no better, it is a Mercy they are no longer: [We] spring up hopefully and seem fair [as a Flower,] but death soon [cuts us down] and then we wither; [we flee] and pass away as swiftly and silently as [the shadow] of a Cloud, being al­ways changing from Childhood to Youth, and so down to Old Age; we [never continue in one stay] nor have any certainty in our Condition. [In the midst of life,] while we are healthful and strong, [we are in] continual danger of [death,] and every day drawing nearer to it; [of whom therefore should] such changeable Creatures as we [seek for succour but of thee, O Lord,] who art ever the same? thou only canst preserve our lives, and we might be full of hope thou wouldest do so, had we not by [our sins justly displeased thee;] But we will now heartily repent of them, and importunately pray unto thee for deliverance from the Punishment due to them, saying, [O Lord God most holy, O Lord most mighty, O holy and most merciful Saviour,] pardon us; and though we must dye temporally, yet [do not] thou deliver us [into the bitter pains of eternal death,] which is so infinite, endless and intolerable, that we are willing to submit to natural death, and only concerned to escape that which is eternal: That is terrible to us indeed, as God [who knows our hearts] can tell, and therefore we again be­seech him [not to shut his merciful ears to our Prayers,] but to grant our Request, and [spare us] from this lost and worst kind of death, [as he is a holy Lord, a mighty God, a merciful Sa­viour, a worthy] and [eternal Iudge,] we beg of him not to condemn us to Hell Torments how­ever: Yea we pray that [no pains] or terror of [Page 445] temporal death may make us [fall] off from [God] by a dangerous despair; and if we can prevail we shall escape all that is evil in natural death, and be wholly free from eternal death. And here we must note, that our Church hath wholly rejected the needless and vain Prayers for the Dead, and by all these Meditations and Prayers strives to make the occasion as profitable as may be to the Living.

§. 2. The solemn Interring of the Body next fol­lows, immediately before which the Ancients bid them Farewel, and took their last leave of them with a Kiss. The Posture of Christian Bodies was always with the Feet Eastward and the Face Up­ward, that so they might be ready to meet Christ who is to come from the East, and that they might be in the posture of Prayer, as soon as they are raised. Upon the Body thus laid in the Grave the Priest casts Earth, with these pious and proper words, [Forasmuch as it hath pleased Almigh­ty God to take unto himself the Soul of our dear] Brother here [departed;] the Soul is gone to him that gave it, it needs not our Prayers, nor can our Tears recal that; and since it was Gods Will and Pleasure, we must not grieve too much though he were a Dear Friend; the Lord hath disposed of the better part, and left the Body to our Care, [We therefore] knowing it came from the Earth, and by Gods Order must return thi­ther, Eccles. xii. 7. do [commit this Body to the ground,] which is no more than putting [earth to earth, ashes to ashes, and dust to dust,] to which it will turn very shortly: Yet we do thus solemnly commit it to the Grave, to keep it safe till God call for it; we leave it here [in sure and cer­tain [Page 446] hope of the resurrection to eternal life,] we believe both good and bad shall live again and be raised to a life without end, and we hope this our Brother shall have the better part in that Re­surrection: And if any ask how we can hope, a dis­solved corrupted body can live again, we say, our hope is grounded on the Power of the great Effi­cient, even [through our Lord Iesus Christ,] Philip. iii. 21. who raised his own dead body [and shall change our vile body,] making it like unto his [glorious body, according to his Almighty power,] to which all things must submit, and by which he can give all matter such a Form as he plea­seth; and since we expect this, we will not grieve excessively.

§. 3. To this is added a Consolatory Sentence from Revel. xiv. 13. being a special Revelation from Heaven made to S. John to comfort those who dyed in Gods Favour, and was to be writ for the encouragement of all: Since Jesus hath now con­quered Death, [from henceforth blessed are the dead that dye in the Lord,] they are not to be la­mented, but rejoyced over; for Gods Spirit assures us, that [they rest from their labours,] their work is done, their warfare accomplished, and now they enjoy the crowns of their Victory, and the re­ward of all their Pains, and shall we grieve at their happiness?

§. 4. Finally, we now turn to God and pray, not for the deceased, who would be no better for it, but for our selves, that we may live holily and dye happily, as we hope he hath done. And first we begin with the Lesser Litany, to crave of the [Page 447] Lord to [have mercy upon us;] and then we add the Lords Prayer, [hallowing] and praising the [Name] of our Heavenly [Father] even in our affliction, desiring [his Kingdom may come] wherein we shall all meet again, and [his Will be done] though it seem to cross our natural desires; praying also for the relief of our [daily] wants, the pardon of our [sins,] and a deliverance from [temptation and all evil.]

§. 5. The way thus prepared, the Priest uses the two Collects, the first of which contains a Profes­sion of our Faith concerning the state of dead Chri­stians, a Thanksgiving for the Mercy shewed to the deceased Man, and a Prayer for the coming of Christs Kingdom: 1. We profess to believe that [the Spirits of them that depart hence in the Lord do live] with God, Luk. xx. 38. and so do not lament them as persons dead and gone for ever; they live in their better part, the Soul, yea live hap­pily; for [with God] (we believe) these [Souls of the Faithful after they are delivered from the burden of the Flesh, are in joy and felici­ty:] They counted the Flesh a burden and prison to their Soul, from which being now set free, we learn from the Scripture now read, they are in a blessed estate: Wherefore we are so far from mur­muring, that we [give thee hearty thanks, for that it hath pleased thee to deliver this our Brother out of the miseries of this sinful World,] wherein the longer he had stayed the more evil he would have done and suffered, and therefore we cannot but reckon it a Mercy to him to be taken from all these Calamities and Dangers. And as to [Page 448] our selves we are not so much in love with this World to desire to stay long here, but [beseech thee] that it may be thy pleasure, [shortly to ac­complish the number of thine Elect,] for whose sake the World endures; but when thou hast brought all these to Heaven, then we desire thou wilt [hasten thy Kingdom, that we] who are yet alive, [with all those that are departed in thy Faith] and fear, may all together [have our perfect consummation and bliss both in body and soul,] for we are yet in a miserable sinful World, and they have not the full fruition of thy Glory till their bodies be raised, wherefore Lord make us all perfect, that we may meet again [in thy eternal and everlasting Glory, through Ie­sus Christ:] Amen.

§. 6. The last Collect, is to prevent excessive grief, and to turn our thoughts to a due care of our own Souls: The Introduction of it being the grounds of our Hope concerning the Resurrection, for we call upon our [Merciful God the Father of our Lord Iesus Christ,] who (as we heard before) hath declared [he is the Resurrection and the Life,] so that they who have believed in him [though they] must [dye] temporally, [shall live again,] and whoever lives according to his Will and [believes in him shall never dye eternally,] and therefore such gain much and lose nothing by death, John xi. 25, 26. and so are not excessively to be lamented. We remember also that though Christianity denies us not to shed a few pious Tears of affection, yet we are strictly forbidden by God, 1 Thess. iv. 3. [to be sorry] for the death of our Christian Friends, in that extream manner that Pa­gans [Page 449] are, and [men without the hope] of a Re­surrection, they think their Friends utterly extinct, and never expect to see them more: But we know good Men when they dye, do but [sleep in him,] who shall awaken them again after a while; where­fore we will moderate our sorrow for them, and [meekly beseech thee for our selves,] who are in danger of a worse death, even a [death in sin,] Lord give us a part in this first Resurrection, and while we live [raise us to the life of Righteous­ness,] and help us to live religiously and spend our time well, for we must dye temporally, and when the time comes that we [must depart] hence, no­thing but a holy life can bring us to a happy death, and to [rest in Christ, as we hope this our bro­ther doth;] of whose final Estate being not abso­lutely certain, we are bound in charity to hope the best: Lord therefore grant, that whenever we dye we may have a happy end, [and at the gene­ral resurrection] when the living and dead shall all meet again, [we may be found] upon our great Tryal, [acceptable in thy sight, and receive that] inexpressible [blessing] to hear our Pardon [pronounced] from thy Sons Mouth, even that he may say to us, as he will [to all that love and fear thee, Come ye blessed Children of my Fa­ther receive the Kingdom,] which, though not merited by you, was purchased by me [and prepa­red] by my Father [for you from the beginning of the World,] and then we shall enter upon ever­lasting Joy, and praise our God for ever; this there­fore we [beseech him to grant,] that we may be thus made holy here in order to our being happy hereafter, [for Iesus Christ his sake:] Amen.

THE THANKSGIVING OF WOMEN AFTER CHILD-BIRTH.

The Introduction.

§. 1. THe Birth of Man is little less than a Miracle, and lest the frequency should diminish our Sense of it, the Woman who hath received this wonderful Mercy is order­ed to come to Church and offer up her publick Praises: The Original of which is from the Law of Moses, Levit. xii. which commands all Women after they had born a Child, to come to the House of God within a certain number of days, and with a Sacrifice to praise God for this great Mercy: And though nothing but Sin makes any person un­clean [Page 451] under the Gospel, and so the Ceremonial Reason be ceased; yet the Obligation to make a publick acknowledgment of so eminent a Favour remains still. And therefore the Blessed Virgin (who was not defiled by Christs Birth) observed this Holy Rite, and in all Ages Christian Mothers have followed her Example; yea in the Eastern Church they bring their Child in their Arms, as she did, to present it to God, and there they do this after forty days: But in the Western Church there is no time set down by any Law, only the Mother is to come as soon as she is able, and the accustomed Time is after one Month; Necessity and Modesty oblige them to stay so long at least, and if they be not recovered then, they must forbear longer, since they cannot praise God for a Mercy before they have received it. The Place to do this in is the Church, and thence it is called Churching of Women, and it must be done so publickly, First, for Gods Honour, whose work of Creation and his Preser­ving the poor Woman ought to be publickly own­ed. Secondly, to satisfie the Womans Duty who is bound to let Gods Goodness be shewed forth, that others may learn to trust in him. Thirdly, And by this means many are brought to joyn in Gods Praises for so publick a Mercy, which all Men and Women are concerned to own with Gratitude, and there­fore to do this in a private House is absurd and con­trary to the main End of the Office.

Sect. I. Of the Preface and Psalms.

§. 1. THe Preface is designed to assist the Wo­man to do this Duty with understand­ing, and she is therein taught, First, who is the Au­thor of this Mercy, viz. [Almighty God:] Se­condly, what was the Motive thereunto, not her de­serts, but [his goodness:] Thirdly, what Effect followed thereon, [the safe deliverance] of the Woman, and [preserving] her in [Childbirth] notwithstanding the great [pains] she endured, and the extream [peril] of death she was in: Fourth­ly, what is the consequence of all this, viz. That she who is thus preserved and delivered, is bound [to give hearty thanks to God] her gracious Deliverer, and [say] in Davids Words:

§. 2. Psalm cxvi. ver.. 1 I prayed earnestly in my late danger, and am well [pleased] that the [Lord] hath heard the [voice of my prayer.] Ver. 2. I could scarce speak I was so faint, but [he inclined his ear to me] and heard my inward and secret groans, and delivered me, as I desired, [therefore will] I call upon him [as long as I live.] Ver. 3. I see that is the way to get relief, [for the snares of death] like a Net [compassed me about,] so that there seemed no way open to escape: [The pains] that are the most terrible next to those [of Hell] violently [got hold upon me.] Ver. 4. And when [I found] this outward [trouble] of Body [Page 453] and inward [heaviness] of Mind seize on me, then [I called] upon the [Name] of the Lord, and prayed, saying, [O Lord I beseech thee] free me from my bodily pain as soon as may be, however [deliver my Soul] from eternal pains. Ver. 5. And he was pleased to hear me an unworthy Sinner, therefore I do here openly declare [the Lord is] very [gracious,] and [our God is] exceeding [merciful,] he was [righteous] in laying this Pu­nishment of the first Sin upon me, and it was pure­ly his free Mercy to support me, and take it off from me. Ver. 6. I am an Example that [the Lord pre­serveth] the meanest and simplest of his Servants, for [I was in misery] who had no worth in me to deserve his Favour, yet [he helped me.] Ver. 7. Wherefore despair no more, but [turn] again and [rest] upon Gods Mercy [O my Soul,] for [the Lord hath rewarded] thee well for trusting in him. Ver. 8. [Why] should I ever distrust him a­gain, who hath [delivered my Soul] from eter­nal, and my Body from temporal [death,] and by removing my fears and my pains, hath freed [my eyes from tears] and [kept my feet from fal­ling] into the Pit of despair. Ver. 9. And since he hath given me a new Life, [I] am resolved to spend it holily, and always to [walk] as it were [before God, in the Land of the Living,] to which his Mercy hath restored me. Ver. 10. [I believed] always he was able to help me, and therefore I may [speak] thus much, [but I was sore troubled] in my extremity for fear he should not be willing to deliver me, and when all about me gave me hopes, [I said in my hast] and impatience, these and [all men are lyars,] and do but deceive me. Ver. 11. But now he hath out-done my hopes [what [Page 454] reward shall I give] unto the [Lord for] my ease, my life, my health, and [all] other [benefits] which he hath bestowed on me? Ver. 12. I cannot requite him, but I would do what I can, [I will] go to his Holy Table and [take the Cup of Sal­vation,] and will not only bless him at that Sacra­ment for this and all his Mercies, but will [call upon the Name] of the [Lord] there, and beseech him for Jesus sake to continue them. Ver. 13. I promised if he restored me, to praise him for this Mercy, and to live answerable to it; and [I will pay my vows] just now, and am come hither [in the presence] of all his [people,] into the [Courts] of the Lords [House,] the spiritual [Ierusalem,] to bless his Name and to cause others to joyn with me; wherefore O let us all [praise the Lord] and say, [Glory be to the Father, &c.]

Psal. cxxvii. The former Psalm respected the Safety of the Mother, and this the Benefit the Fa­mily hath received in the birth of the Child.

Ver. 1. Children are the support of Families, but [except the Lord] please by giving Children and preserving them [to build] up [a House] or Fa­mily, [their labour] is but [lost] who go about to secure the Succession in it. Ver. 2. If they should multiply into a City [except] the [Lord keep] that [City] from its Enemies, [the Watchman wakes in vain,] for he cannot foresee or prevent the ruin of it. Ver. 3. And when we have Children, we can­not provide for them without Gods Blessing, [it is but lost labour] to rise very [early] and go to bed [late,] to work hard and [eat] your very [bread] with [carefulness] if God do not prosper you, for they whom he loves do thrive well, yet sleep [Page 455] soundly, and take not so much carking care. Ver. 4. 'Tis plain that Wealth comes from God, and the [Children] we leave it to, though naturally they are [the fruit of the Womb,] yet it is by the Di­vine Providence, for we must receive them [as a heritage and gift that cometh] from the [Lord.] Ver. 5. And truly they are an Ornament and a De­fence to their Parents [like as Arrows] in the [Hand] of a mighty Man, so [are young Chil­dren,] they grace our Persons and keep our Foes in awe. Ver. 6. [Happy] therefore is that Man whose House like a [Quiver is full of them,] in Peace they will plead and in War fight for their Parents, so that [they shall not] be worsted when they are to answer [their Enemies in the Gates:] And since this Mercy is now bestowed on your Fami­ly, you must own it and say, [Glory be to the Fa­ther, &c.]

Sect. II. Of the Prayers.

§. 1. THe Woman promised among other things to call upon Gods Name, and so must now joyn with the Priest in that Duty, to which he excites her by saying, Let us pray: And that the Address may be humble, it is begun with the short Litany, Lord have mercy upon us, &c. That it may be effectual, it is continued in the Lords Prayer; and that all may bear a part, here are Proper Responses from Psal. lxxxvi. 2. & lxiii. 3. & lxi. 1. desiring God to save and preserve this Woman which trusts in him, to defend her from Satans Temptations, and [Page 456] finally to hear our Prayers for her: Especially the Collect of Thanksgiving, wherein the Priest first owns [Almighty God] to be the Author of this Mercy, and then returns him [humble thanks for it,] shewing what reason there is for it, viz. be­cause it was great condescension in God to [vouch­safe] to regard her; and also because it was an Act of infinite Power and Goodness [to deliver] her from those intolerable [pains] and that extream [peril] of death she was under in her [Childbirth.] Secondly, he prays she may live sutably to this Mer­cy here, desiring our [merciful Father] to grant that [she] by the [help] of his Grace [may live faithfully,] and spend this new Life according to [Gods Will] who gave it to her, in all purity, piety and vertue, and that she may have the reward of it hereafter, and [be partaker of everlasting glory in the life to come;] and this he desires through the Merits of [Iesus Christ] our Lord: Amen.

The Office being thus devoutly performed, the Rubric admonisheth the Woman to own Gods great Mercy by the usual small acknowledgment to his Minister, to which she should add some Offering to the Poor, which is the only Sacrifice under the Gos­pel; and it adviseth her as soon as may be to re­ceive the Holy Sacrament, as the most solemn way of praising God for him by whom she received this Deliverance and all other Mercies, and as a means to bind her self more strictly to spend the days in Gods Service which he hath added to her Life.

THE COMMINATION.

§. 1. BOth Scripture and Primitive Practice have made Fasting a Companion of Re­pentance, and therefore this Peniten­tial Office is to be used on the days of Solemn Fast­ing, Ordinary or Extraordinary; because we are then in the best Disposition to humble our Souls for our Offences: For the effecting whereof, here is First a Proper Preface: Secondly, an Homily or Discourse: Thirdly, Several Forms of Prayer, all tending to bring us to Repentance.

Sect. I. Of the Preface.

§. 1. THis Preface shews the Reason and Occa­sion of composing this Office, viz. To supply the Want of Primitive Discipline, that every Man may judge himself, since the Church now judgeth so few Offenders. [In the Primitive Church] all manifest Sinners, Adulterers, Drun­kards, Blasphemers, &c. were presently Excommu­nicated, [Page 458] and not received into the Church again, till by some years of Penitence and Mortification they had made their Repentance appear to be sin­cere. And lest any other Sinners should escape, they had [a godly Discipline,] all Christians came to the Bishop [in the beginning of Lent,] that is up­on Ash-Wednesday; and all who by their own Free Confession or by others Discovery were guilty of any great Crimes, had a strict Penance laid upon them for the forty days of Lent, that the Hardships they endured might help to bring the Offenders to Repentance and [Salvation;] and be [a warn­ing to others to be more afraid to offend:] But this in the Roman Church is turned into a meer Ce­remony of sprinkling Ashes upon all that come to confess on Ash-Wednesday: And in our Church, since Custom hath discontinued the Primitive U­sage, the only Remedy [until the said Discipline be restored] (which we may rather wish than ex­pect in these Licentious Days) is, To endeavour to bring every Man to judge and condemn himself, by setting before him the Curses due to all Sin, and minding him of Gods dreadful Tribunal, where the Impenitent, though they be never censured here, shall certainly be condemned: And it is hoped this may first bring every Sinner [to true Repentance] for that which is past; and secondly, make them carefully [to flee those Vices] unto which Gods Curse is due, as they themselves do here acknow­ledge.

Sect. II. Of the Homily or Discourse.

§. 1. LEst the Jews should go on securely in breaking Gods Law, and forget the Curse due to those Transgressions, God himself appoint­ed the People should yearly assemble; and when the Priest did proclaim the Law with the Curse annex­ed, every Person present was to declare his Belief of that Threatning, by saying, [Amen,] Deut. xxvii. Josh. viii. 33. And though Christ hath now taken away the Curse of the Law, Galat. iii. 13. yet that is only with respect to those that truly repent: But as to all others the Curse is still in force. And a true Penitent doth not wish any Curse to himself, because this [Amen] is no Adverb of wishing, but signifies, Verily it is [True,] 2 Cor. i. 20. So that when the Priest declares that Idolaters, and such as are undutiful to Parents, Unjust Men, and such as despise the miserable, Oppressors and Malicious Per­sons, Adulterers, and those that are guilty of Bribe­ry, with those who rely only upon Men, as also the Uncharitable, Lascivious, Covetous, Slandering, De­bauched and Extortioners are accursed: When this is declared (I say) every Man may say, [Amen,] that is, He may affirm he verily believes the Truth of this which God hath said both in the Law and the Gospel, yea his believing this, is the true cause why he now so heartily repents and begs Pardon, that he may avoid it.

[Page 460]§. 2. And that this is the Churches Design, ap­pears by the following [Application,] wherein, from the certain Truth that these Curses shall be ex­ecuted on the Offenders in these kinds who remain Impenitent; There is, First, A general [Exhorta­tion to Repentance;] because we all have sinned, and so are in danger of Gods Wrath, we ought all to go to him with inward grief and outward Ex­pressions of Sorrow, confessing our Sins before him now, and resolving to forsake them for the time to come. Secondly, Here are divers Motives to bring us to this hearty Repentance; First, The Conside­ration of Gods Wrath against Impenitent Sinners, he proceeds strictly when he begins with them, Math. iii. 10. his Judgments are [fearful,] Hebr. x. 31. terrible and unavoidable, Psal. xi. 6. He him­self will manage it, Isai. xxvi. 21. And no guilty Person can either [abide,] Malach. iii. 2. or [escape] discovery, Math. iii.12. Nor will there be any time to repent then, for his Wrath comes [suddenly,] 1 Thess. v. 1, 2. like a Thief in the Night, or Pains on a Labouring Woman. Nor can they make any Excuse, because it is so justly deserved by them, Rom. ii. 3, 4, 5. Or if they do entreat, they shall not then be heard, Prov. i. 28, 29, 30. For Christ comes then not to argue but to condemn and pronounce the dreadful Sentence, Math. xxv. 41. which con­signs them over to Eternal Misery. Wherefore, Se­condly, Here are other Motives taken from Gods Mercy to the Penitent, who may be forgiven if they repent presently, Hebr. iii. 7. before the time be past, Joh. xii. 35, 36. For he hath promised upon these Terms to forgive, Isai. lv. 7. So that if our Sins be never so hainous, they may be pardoned, Isai. i. 18. Yea they shall be forgiven if we forsake them, E­zek. [Page 461] xviii. 30. And the Reason is, because Christ who died for our Sins on Earth, is [now our Ad­vocate] to beg our Pardon in Heaven, 1 John ii. 1, 2. Thirdly, Upon these grounds we exhort all pre­sent to [turn to him,] firmly assured of his wil­lingness to receive us, and fully resolved to amend our Lives, and [take the easie Yoke] of his Com­mandments upon us for the time to come, Math. xi. 28, 29, 30. And lastly, Here is shewed the Benefit of so doing, for hereby we shall certainly be deli­vered from the Curses of the Law, Gal. iii. 13. and be acquitted at Christs last Tribunal by that joyful Sentence, Math. xxv. 33, 34. which shall consign us unto Eternal Happiness.

Sect. III. Of the Penitential Psalm.

§. 1. NOw if upon all these rational Grounds we be resolved to repent, here is a Me­thod prescribed; First, by using the li. Psalm as David did upon his Repentance: And therein we have First, The things to be done with respect to our selves, viz. 1. By way of Petition, viz. An earnest Supplication for Pardon, Ver. i. [Have mercy on me, &c.] and purifying Grace, Ver. ii. [Wash me, &c.] A Confession of Sin both actual and ori­ginal, Ver. iii. [I acknowledge, &c.] Ver. iv. [A­gainst thee only, &c.] Ver. v. [For behold, &c.] Ver. vi. [But lo thou requirest, &c.] And a firm [Page 462] Perswasion that God will Pardon and Cleanse us. Ver. vii. [Thou shalt purge me, &c.] Ver. viii. [Thou shalt make me hear, &c.] To which are added divers Proper Petitions on this Occasion; For Remission, Ver. ix. [Turn thy Face, &c.] For Sanctification, Ver. x. [Make me a clean Heart, &c.] For Comfort, Ver. xi. [Cast me not away, &c.] And Confirmation in our good Purposes, Ver. xii. [O give me the Comfort, &c.] Secondly, By way of Vow and promise, that if God please to grant these Requests, his Mercy shall engage us to labour to convert others, Ver. xiii. [Then shall I teach, &c.] And to praise him with real Re­turns of Gratitude, Ver. xiv. [Deliver me from, &c.] Ver. xv. [Thou shalt open my Lips, &c.] And though no legal Sacrifice be needful now, Ver. xvi. [For thou desirest no Sacrifice, &c.] Yet we will offer our Hearts to God full of trouble that we did offend him, Ver. xvii. [The Sacrifice of God, &c.] The Second Part of the Psalm respects the Publick, praying for the Churches Prosperity, Ver. xviii. [O be favourable, &c.] And promising Pub­lick Returns of Praise for it, Ver. xix. [Then shalt thou be pleased, &c.]

Sect. IV. Of the Penitential Prayers.

§. 1. FInally, We have some Proper Forms of Devotions suted to this Occasion, being Importunate Supplications for Mercy, viz. [The [Page 463] Domine miserere, The Lords Prayer, and Suf­frages,] all explained before. To which is ad­ded, First, a [Collect] desiring that the [Prayers] we make for Pardon may be [heard,] and the Judgments deserved by our Sins [averted,] in or­der to the Quiet of our [Consciences,] and our final [Absolution.] Secondly, Here is another [Collect,] wherein [Almighty God] is desired by his universal [Compassion] to all his Creatures, and his unwillingness that any Sinners [should dye] if they would repent. On these grounds he is de­sired to [forgive, receive and comfort us] who are now deeply sensible of our Sins: And also he is intreated to [spare us] from the Punishment we have deserved, because he hath [redeemed] us, and we acknowledge [our frailty and vileness,] and truly [repent of our Faults]. Finally, We beg of him to be speedy [in helping us here,] that we may not dye in our Sins, but ever live with him hereafter in Glory. Thirdly, Here is a gene­ral [Supplication,] First, For Grace to convert and [turn us,] and the Motives are taken, from our present Temper who are now [weeping, fast­ing and praying:] And from Gods gracious Na­ture who is [a merciful and compassionate, a patient and gentle Lord, apt to spare and lay aside his Wrath.] Secondly, We intreat him to spare us who are [his own People,] and the Mo­tives are, because [his Mercies are great,] and because his dear Son intercedes with us and for us, by whose [Merits and Mediation] we hope to prevail, Amen. And after all this be performed devoutly by the whole Congregation, the Church thinks it very fit the Priest should comfort and dis­miss them with [his Blessing,] wherein he begs [Page 464] of God to [bless them] with all good things, and [keep] them from all Evil; and that he will declare he is pleased with them, and give them [Peace] in this World and in that which is to come: And this shall all be made good to those who have truly repented: Amen.

FINIS.

This keyboarded and encoded edition of the work described above is co-owned by the institutions providing financial support to the Early English Books Online Text Creation Partnership. This text is available for reuse, according to the terms of Creative Commons 0 1.0 Universal licence. The text can be copied, modified, distributed and performed, even for commercial purposes, all without asking permission.